Produced by Al Haines










The White Ladies of Worcester


A Romance of the Twelfth Century



by

Florence L. Barclay




Author of "The Rosary," "The Mistress of Shenstone," etc.






G. P. Putnam's Sons

New York and London

The Knickerbocker Press

1917




COPYRIGHT, 1917

BY

FLORENCE L. BARCLAY






The Knickerbocker Press, New York




TO

FAITHFUL HEARTS

ALL THE WORLD OVER




CONTENTS

CHAPTER

       I.  THE SUBTERRANEAN WAY
      II.  SISTER MARY ANTONY DISCOURSES
     III.  THE PRIORESS PASSES
      IV.  "GIVE ME TENDERNESS," SHE SAID
       V.  THE WAYWARD NUN
      VI.  THE KNIGHT OF THE BLOODY VEST
     VII.  THE MADONNA IN THE CLOISTER
    VIII.  ON THE WINGS OF THE STORM
      IX.  THE PRIORESS SHUTS THE DOOR
       X.  "I KNOW YOU FOR A MAN"
      XI.  THE YEARS ROLL BACK
     XII.  ALAS, THE PITY OF IT!
    XIII.  "SEND HER TO ME!"
     XIV.  FAREWELL HERE, AND NOW
      XV.  "SHARPEN THE WITS OF MARY ANTONY"
     XVI.  THE ECHO OF WILD VOICES
    XVII.  THE DIMNESS OF MARY ANTONY
   XVIII.  IN THE CATHEDRAL CRYPT
     XIX.  THE BISHOP PUTS ON HIS BIRETTA
      XX.  HOLLY AND MISTLETOE
     XXI.  SO MUCH FOR SERAPHINE
    XXII.  WHAT BROTHER PHILIP HAD TO TELL
   XXIII.  THE MIDNIGHT ARRIVAL
    XXIV.  THE POPE'S MANDATE
     XXV.  MARY ANTONY RECEIVES THE BISHOP
    XXVI.  LOVE NEVER FAILETH
   XXVII.  THE WOMAN AND HER CONSCIENCE
  XXVIII.  THE WHITE STONE
    XXIX.  THE VISION OF MARY ANTONY
     XXX.  THE HARDER PART
    XXXI.  THE CALL OF THE CURLEW
   XXXII.  A GREAT RECOVERY AND RESTORATION
  XXXIII.  MARY ANTONY HOLDS THE PORT
   XXXIV.  MORA DE NORELLE
    XXXV.  IN THE ARBOUR OF GOLDEN ROSES
   XXXVI.  STRONG TO ACT; ABLE TO ENDURE
  XXXVII.  WHAT MOTHER SUB-PRIORESS KNEW
 XXXVIII.  THE BISHOP KEEPS VIGIL
   XXXIX.  THE "SPLENDID KNIGHT"
      XL.  THE HEART OF A NUN
     XLI.  WHAT THE BISHOP REMEMBERED
    XLII.  THE WARNING
   XLIII.  MORA MOUNTS TO THE BATTLEMENTS
    XLIV.  "I LOVE THEE"
     XLV.  THE SONG OF THE THRUSH
    XLVI.  "HOW SHALL I LET THEE GO?"
   XLVII.  THE BISHOP is TAKEN UNAWARES
  XLVIII.  A STRANGE CHANCE
    XLIX.  TWICE DECEIVED
       L.  THE SILVER SHIELD
      LI.  TWO NOBLE HEARTS GO DIFFERENT WAYS
     LII.  THE ANGEL-CHILD
    LIII.  ON THE HOLY MOUNT
     LIV.  THE UNSEEN PRESENCE
      LV.  THE HEART OF A WOMAN
     LVI.  THE TRUE VISION
    LVII.  "I CHOOSE TO RIDE ALONE"
   LVIII.  THE WARRIOR HEART
     LIX.  THE MADONNA IN THE HOME
      LX.  THE CONVENT BELL




The White Ladies of Worcester


CHAPTER I

THE SUBTERRANEAN WAY

The slanting rays of afternoon sunshine, pouring through stone arches,
lay in broad, golden bands, upon the flags of the Convent cloister.

The old lay-sister, Mary Antony, stepped from the cool shade of the
cell passage and, blinking at the sunshine, shuffled slowly to her
appointed post at the top of the crypt steps, up which would shortly
pass the silent procession of nuns returning from Vespers.

Daily they went, and daily they returned, by the underground way, a
passage over a mile in length, leading from the Nunnery of the White
Ladies at Whytstone in Claines, to the Church of St. Mary and St.
Peter, the noble Cathedral within the walls of the city of Worcester.

Entering this passage from the crypt in their own cloisters, they
walked in darkness below the sunny meadows, passed beneath the
Fore-gate, moving in silent procession under the busy streets, until
they reached the crypt of the Cathedral.

From the crypt, a winding stairway in the wall led up to a chamber
above the choir, whence, unseeing and unseen, the White Ladies of
Worcester daily heard the holy monks below chant Vespers.

To Sister Mary Antony fell the task of counting the five-and-twenty
veiled figures, as they passed down the steps and disappeared beneath
the ground, and of again counting them as they reappeared, and moved in
stately silence along the cloister, each entering her own cell, to
spend, in prayer and adoration, the hours until the Refectory bell
should call them to the evening meal.

This counting of the White Ladies dated from the day, now more than
half a century ago, when Sister Agatha, weakened by prolonged fasting,
and chancing to walk last in the procession, fainted and, falling
silently, remained behind, unnoticed, in the solitude and darkness.

It was the habit of this saintly lady to abide in her own cell after
Vespers, dispensing with the evening meal; thus her absence was not
discovered until the following morning when Mary Antony, finding the
cell empty, hastened to report that Sister Agatha having long, like
Enoch, walked with God, had, even, as Enoch, been translated!

The nuns who flocked to the cell, inclining to Mary Antony's view of
the strange happening, kneeled upon the floor before the empty couch,
and worshipped.

The Prioress of that time, however, being of a practical turn of mind,
ordered the immediate lighting of the lanterns, and herself descended
to search the underground way.

She did not need to go far.

The saintly spirit of Sister Agatha had indeed been translated.

They found her frail body lying prone against the door, the hands
broken and torn by much wild beating upon its studded panels.

She had run to and fro in the dank darkness, beating first upon the
door beneath the Convent cloisters, then upon the door, a mile away,
leading into the Cathedral crypt.

But the nuns were shut into their cells, beyond the cloister; the good
people of Worcester city slept peacefully, not dreaming of the
despairing figure running to and fro beneath them--tottering,
stumbling, falling, arising to fall again, yet hurrying blindly
onwards; and the Cathedral Sacristan, when questioned, confessed that,
hearing cries and rappings coming from the crypt at a late hour, he
speedily locked the outer gate, said an "Ave," and went home to supper;
well knowing that, at such a time, none save spirits of evil would be
wandering below, in so great torment.

Thus, through much tribulation, poor Sister Agatha entered into rest;
being held in deepest reverence ever after.

More than fifty years had gone by.  The Prioress of that day, and most
of those who walked in that procession, had long lain beside Sister
Agatha in the Convent burying-ground.  But Mary Antony, now oldest of
the lay-sisters, never failed to make careful count, as each veiled
figure passed, nor to impart the mournful reason for this necessity to
all new-comers.  So that the nun whose turn it was to walk last in the
procession, prayed that she might not hear behind her the running feet
of Sister Agatha; while none went alone into the cloisters after dark,
lest they should hear the poor thin hands of Sister Agatha beating upon
the panels of the door.

Thus does the anguish of a tortured brain leave its imperishable
impress upon the surroundings in which the mind once suffered, though
the freed spirit may have long forgotten, in the peace of Paradise,
that slight affliction, which was but for a moment, through which it
passed to the eternal weight of glory.

Of late, the old lay-sister, Mary Antony, had grown fearful lest she
should make mistake in this solemn office of the counting.  Therefore,
in the secret of her own heart, she devised a plan, which she carried
out under cover of her scapulary.  Twenty-five dried peas she held
ready in her wallet; then, as each veiled figure, having mounted the
steps leading from the crypt doorway, moved slowly past her, she
dropped a pea with her right hand into her left.  When all the holy
Ladies had passed, if all had returned, five-and-twenty peas lay in her
left hand, none remained in the wallet.

This secret dropping of peas became a kind of game to Mary Antony.
She kept the peas in a small linen bag, and often took them out and
played with them when alone in her cell, placing them all in a row, and
settling, to her own satisfaction, which peas should represent the
various holy Ladies.

A large white pea, of finer aspect than the rest, stood for the noble
Prioress herself; a somewhat shrivelled pea, hard, brown, and wizened,
did duty as Mother Sub-Prioress, an elderly nun, not loved by Mary
Antony because of her sharp tongue and strict fault-finding ways; while
a pale and speckled pea became Sister Mary Rebecca, held in high scorn
by the old lay-sister, as a traitress, sneak, and liar, for if ever
tale of wrong or shame was whispered in the Convent, it could be traced
for place of origin to the slanderous tongue and crooked mind of Sister
Mary Rebecca.

When all the peas in line upon the floor of her cell were named, old
Mary Antony marked out a distant flagstone, on which the sunlight fell,
as heaven; another, partially in shadow, purgatory; a third, in a far
corner of exceeding darkness, hell.  She then proceeded, with
well-directed fillip of thumb and middle finger, to send the holy
Ladies there where, in her judgment, they belonged.

If the game went well, the noble Prioress landed safely in heaven,
without even the most transitory visit to purgatory; Mother
Sub-Prioress, rolling into purgatory, remained there; while the pale
and speckled pea went straight to hell!

When these were safely landed, Mary Antony rubbed her hands and,
chuckling gleefully, finished the game at gay hap-hazard, it being of
less importance where the rest of the holy Ladies chanced to go.




CHAPTER II

SISTER MARY ANTONY DISCOURSES

As Mary Antony shuffled slowly from the shadow into the sunshine, a gay
little flutter of wings preceded her, and a robin perched upon the
parapet behind the stone seat upon which it was the lay-sister's custom
to await the sound of the turning of the key in the lock of the heavy
door beneath the cloisters.

"Thou good-for-nothing imp!" exclaimed Mary Antony, her old face
crinkling with delight.  "Thou little vain man, in thy red jerkin!
Beshrew thine impudence, intruding into a place where women alone do
dwell, and no male thing may enter.  I would have thee take warning by
the fate of the baker's boy, who dared to climb into a tree, so that he
might peep over the wall and spy upon the holy Ladies in their garden.
Boasting afterward of that which he had done, and making merry over
that which he pretended to have seen, our great Lord Bishop heard of
it, and sent and took that baker's boy, and though he cried for mercy,
swearing the whole tale was an empty boast, they put out his bold eyes
with heated tongs, and hanged him from the very branches he had
climbed.  They'd do the like to thee, thou little vain man, if Mary
Antony reported on thy ways.  Wouldst like to hang, in thy red doublet?"

The robin had heard this warning tale many times already, told by old
Mary Antony with infinite variety.

Sometimes the tongue of the baker's boy was cut out at the roots;
sometimes he lost his ears, or again, he was tied to a cart-tail, and
flogged through the Tything.  Often he became a pieman, and once he was
a turnspit in the household of the Lord Bishop himself.  But, whatever
the preliminaries, and whether baker, pieman, or turnspit, his final
catastrophe was always the same: he was hanged from a bough of the very
tree into which, impious and greatly daring, he had climbed.

This was an ancient tale.  All who might vouch for it, saving the old
lay-sister, had passed away; and, of late, Mary Antony had been
strictly forbidden by the Reverend Mother, to tell it to new-comers, or
to speak of it to any of the nuns.

So, daily, she told it to the robin; and he, being neither baker's lad,
pieman, nor turnspit, and having a conscience void of offence, would
listen, wholly unafraid; then, hopping nearer to Mary Antony, would
look up at her, eager inquiry in his bright eyes.

On this particular afternoon he flew up into the very tree climbed by
the prying and ill-fated baker's lad, settled on a bough which branched
out over the Convent wall, and poured forth a gay trill of song.

"Ha, thou little vain man, in thy brown and red suit!" chuckled Mary
Antony, leaning her gnarled hands on the stone parapet, as she stood
framed in one of the cloister arches overlooking the garden.  "Is that
thy little 'grace before meat'?  But, I pray thee, Sir Robin, who said
there was cheese in my wallet?  Nay, is there like to be cheese in a
wallet already containing five-and-twenty holy Ladies on their way back
from Vespers?  Out upon thee for a most irreverent little glutton!  I
fear me thou hast not only a high look, thou hast also a proud stomach;
just the reverse of the great French Cardinal who came, with much pomp,
to visit us at Easter time.  He had a proud look and a--  Come down
again, thou little naughty man, and I will tell thee what the Lord
Cardinal had under his crimson sash.  'Tis not a thing to shout to the
tree-tops.  I might have to recite ten Paternosters, if I let thee
tempt me so to do.  For whispering it in thine ear, I should but say
one; for having remarked it, none at all.  Facts are facts; and, even
in the case of so weighty a fact, the responsibility rests not upon the
beholder."

Mary Antony leaned over the parapet, looking upward.  The afternoon
sunlight fell full upon the russet parchment of her kind old face,
shewing the web of wrinkles spun by ninety years of the gently turning
wheel of time.

But the robin, perched upon the bough, trilled and sang, unmoved.  He
was weary of tales of bakers and piemen.  He was not at all curious as
to what had been beneath the French Cardinal's crimson sash.  He wanted
the tasty morsels which he knew lay concealed in Sister Mary Antony's
leathern wallet.  So he stayed on the bough and sang.

The old face, peering up from between the pillars, softened into
tenderness at the robin's song.

"I cannot let thy little grace return unto thee void," she said, and
fumbled at the fastenings of her wallet.

A flick of wings, a flash of red.  The robin had dropped from the
bough, and perched beside her.

She doled out crumbs, and fragments of cheese, pushing them toward him
along the parapet; leaving her fingers near, to see how close he would
adventure to her hand.

She watched him peck a morsel of cheese into five tiny pieces, then
fly, with full beak, on eager wing, to the hidden nest, from which five
gaping mouths shrieked a shrill and hungry welcome.  Then, back
again--swift as an arrow from the archer's bow--noting, with bright
eye, and head turned sidewise, that the hand resting on the coping had
moved nearer; yet brave to take all risks for the sake of those yellow
beaks, which would gape wide, in expectation, at sound of the beat of
his wings.

"Feed thyself, thou little worldling!" chuckled old Antony, and covered
the remaining bits of cheese with her hand.  "Who art thou to come here
presuming to teach thy betters lessons of self-sacrifice?  First feed
thyself; then give to the hungry, the fragments that remain.  Had I
five squealing children here--which Heaven forbid--I should eat mine
own mess, and count myself charitable if I let them lick the dish.  The
holy Ladies give to the poor at the Convent gate, that for which they
have no further use.  Does thy jaunty fatherhood presume to shame our
saintly celibacy?  Mother Sub-Prioress did chide me sharply because, to
a poor soul with many hungry mouths to feed, I gave a good piece of
venison, and not the piece which was tainted.  Truth to tell, I had
already made away with the tainted piece; but Mother Sub-Prioress was
pleased to think it was in the pot, seething for the holy Ladies'
evening meal; and wherefore should Mother Sub-Prioress not think as she
pleased?

"'Woman!' she cried; 'Woman!'--and when Mother Sub-Prioress says
'Woman!' the woman she addresses feels her estate would be higher had
God Almighty been pleased to have let her be the Man, or even the
Serpent, so much contempt does Mother Sub-Prioress infuse into the
name--'Woman!' said Mother Sub-Prioress, 'wouldst thou make all the
Ladies of the Convent ill?'

"'Nay,' said I, 'that would I not.  Yet, if any needs must be ill,
'twere easier to tend the holy Ladies in their cells, than the Poor, in
humble homes, outside the Convent walls, tossing on beds of rushes.'

"'Tush, fool!' snarled Mother Sub-Prioress.  "'The Poor are not easily
made ill.'

"Tush indeed!  I tell thee, little bright-eyed man, old Antony, can
'tush' to better purpose!  That night there were strong purging herbs
in the broth of Mother Sub-Prioress.  Yet she did but keep her bed for
one day.  Like the Poor, she is not easily made ill! . . .  Well, have
thy way; only peck not my fingers, Master Robin, or I will have thee
flogged through the Tything at the cart-tail, as was done to a certain
pieman, whose history I will now relate.

"Once upon a time, when Sister Mary Antony was young, and fair to look
upon--Nay, wink not thy naughty eye----"

At that moment came the sound of a key turning slowly in the lock of
the door at the bottom of the steps leading from the crypt to the
cloister.




CHAPTER III

THE PRIORESS PASSES

A key turned slowly in the lock of the oaken door at the entrance to
the underground way.

The old lay-sister seized her wallet and pulled out the bag of peas.

Below, the heavy door swung back upon its hinges.

Mary Antony dropped upon her knees to the right of the steps, her hands
hidden beneath her scapulary, her eyes bent in lowly reverence upon the
sunlit flagstones, her lips mumbling chance sentences from the Psalter.

The measured sound of softly moving feet drew near, slightly shuffling
as they reached the steps and began to mount, up from the mile-long
darkness, into the sunset light.

First to appear was a young lay-sister, carrying a lantern.  Hastening
up the steps, she extinguished the flame, grown sickly in the sunshine,
placed the lantern in a niche, and, dropping upon her knees, opposite
old Mary Antony, sought to join in the latter's pious recitations.

"_Adhaesit pavimento anima mea_," chanted Mary Antony.  "Wherefore are
the holy Ladies late to-day?"

"One fell to weeping in the darkness," intoned the young lay-sister,
"whereupon Mother Sub-Prioress caused all to stand still while she
strove, by the light of my lantern held high, to discover who had burst
forth with a sob.  None shewing traces of tears, she gave me back the
lantern, herself walking last in the line, as all moved on."

"_Convertentur ad vesperam_, and the devil catch the hindmost," chanted
Mary Antony, with fervour.

"Amen," intoned Sister Abigail, eyes bent upon the ground; for the tall
figure of the Prioress, mounting the steps, now came into view.

The Prioress passed up the cloister with a stately grace of motion
which, even beneath the heavy cloth of her white robe, revealed the
noble length of supple limbs.  Her arms hung by her sides, swaying
gently as she walked.  There was a look of strength and of restfulness
about the long fingers and beautifully moulded hands.  Her face, calm
and purposeful, was lifted to the sunlight.  Suffering and sorrow had
left thereon indelible marks; but the clear grey eyes, beneath level
brows, were luminous with a light betokening the victory of a pure and
noble spirit over passionate and most human flesh.

No sinner, in her presence, ever felt crushed by hopeless weight of
sin; no saint, before the gaze of her calm eyes, felt sure of being
altogether faultless.

So truly was she woman, that all humanity seemed lifted to her level;
so completely was she saint, that sin did slink away abashed before her
coming.

They who feared her most, were most conscious of her kindness.  They
who loved her best, were least able to venture near.

In the first bloom of her womanhood she had left the world, resigning
high rank, fair lands, and the wealth which makes for power.  Her faith
in human love having been rudely shattered, she had sought security in
Divine compassion, and consolation in the daily contemplation of the
Man of Sorrows.  In her cell, on a rough wooden cross, hung a life-size
figure of the dying Saviour.

She had not reached her twenty-fifth year when, fleeing from the world,
she joined the Order of the White Ladies of Worcester, and passed into
the seclusion and outward calm of the Nunnery at Whytstone.

Five years later, on the death of the aged Prioress, she was elected,
by a large majority, to fill the vacant place.

She had now, during two years, ruled the Nunnery wisely and well.

She had ruled her own spirit, even better.  She had won the victory
over the World and the Flesh; there remained but the Devil.  The Devil,
alas, always remains.

As she moved, with uplifted brow and mien of calm detachment, along the
sunlit cloister to the lofty, stone passage, within, the Convent, she
was feared by many, loved by most, and obeyed by all.

And, as she passed, old Mary Antony, bowing almost to the ground,
dropped a large white pea, from between her right thumb and finger,
into the horny palm of her left hand.

Behind the Prioress there followed a nun, tall also, but ungainly.  Her
short-sighted eyes peered shiftily to right and left; her long nose
went on before, scenting possible scandal and wrong-doing; her weak
lips let loose a ready smile, insinuating, crafty, apologetic.  She
walked with hands crossed upon her breast, in attitude of adoration and
humility.  As she moved by, old Mary Antony let drop the pale and
speckled pea.

Keeping their distances, mostly with shrouded faces, bent heads, and
folded hands, all the White Ladies passed.

Each went in silence to her cell, there kneeling in prayer and
contemplation until the Refectory bell should call to the evening meal.

As the last, save one, went by, the keen eyes of the old lay-sister
noted that her hands were clenched against her breast, that she
stumbled at the topmost step, and caught her breath with a half sob.

Behind her, moving quickly, came the spare form of the Sub-Prioress,
ferret-faced, alert, vigilant; fearful lest sin should go unpunished;
wishful to be the punisher.

She must have heard the half-strangled sob burst from the slight figure
stumbling up the steps before her, had not old Mary Antony been
suddenly moved at that moment to uplift her voice in a cracked and
raucous "Amen."

Startled, and vexed at being startled, the Sub-Prioress turned upon
Mary Antony.

"Peace, woman!" she said.  "The Convent cloister is not a hen-yard.
Such ill-timed devotion well-nigh merits penance.  Rise from thy knees,
and go at once about thy business."

The Sub-Prioress hastened on.

Scowling darkly, old Antony bent forward, looking, past Mother
Sub-Prioress, up the cloister to the distant passage.

Sister Mary Seraphine had reached her cell.  The door was shut.

Old Antony's knees creaked as she arose, but her wizened face was once
more cheerful.

"Beans in her broth to-night," she said.  "One for 'woman'; another for
the hen-yard; a third for threatening penance when I did but chant a
melodious 'Amen.'  I'll give her beans--castor beans!"

Down the steps she went, pushed the heavy door to, locked it, and drew
forth the key; then turned her steps toward the cell of the Reverend
Mother.

On her way thither, she paused at a certain door and listened, her ear
against the oaken panel.  Then she hurried onward, knocked upon the
door of the Reverend Mother's cell and, being bidden to enter, passed
within, closed the door behind her, and dropped upon her knees.

The Prioress stood beside the casement, gazing at the golden glory of
the sunset.  She was, for the moment, unconscious of her surroundings.
Her mind was away behind those crimson battlements.

Presently she turned and saw the old woman, kneeling at the door.

"How now, dear Antony?" she said, kindly.  "Get up!  Hang the key in
its appointed place, and make me thy report.  Have all returned?  As
always, is all well?"

The old lay-sister rose, hung the massive key upon a nail; then came to
the feet of the Prioress, and knelt again.

"Reverend Mother," she said, "all who went forth have returned.  But
all is not well.  Sister Mary Seraphine is uttering wild cries in her
cell; and much I fear me, Mother Sub-Prioress may pass by, and hear
her."

The face of the Prioress grew stern and sad; yet, withal, tender.  She
raised the lay-sister, and gently patted the old hands which trembled.

"Go thy ways, dear Antony," she said.  "I myself will visit the little
Sister in her cell.  None will attempt to enter while I am there."




CHAPTER IV

"GIVE ME TENDERNESS," SHE SAID

The Prioress knelt before a marble group of the Virgin and Child,
placed where the rays of evening sunshine, entering through the western
casement, played over its white beauty, shedding a radiance on the pure
face of the Madonna, and a halo of golden glory around the Infant
Christ.

"Mother of God," prayed the Prioress, with folded hands, "give me
patience in dealing with wilfulness; grant me wisdom to cope with
unreason; may it be given me to share the pain of this heart in
torment, even as--when thou didst witness the sufferings of thy dear
Son, our Lord, on Calvary--a sword pierced through thine own soul also.

"Give me this gift of sympathy with suffering, though the cross be not
mine own, but another's.

"But give me firmness and authority: even as when thou didst say to the
servants at Cana: 'Whatsoever He saith unto you, do it.'"

The Prioress waited, with bowed head.

Then, of a sudden she put forth her hand, and touched the marble foot
of the Babe.

"Give me tenderness," she said.




CHAPTER V

THE WAYWARD NUN

Sister Mary Seraphine lay prone upon the floor of her cell.

Tightly clenched in her hands were fragments of her torn veil.

She beat her knuckles upon the stones with rhythmic regularity; then,
when her arms would lift no longer, took up the measure with her toes,
in wild imitation of a galloping horse.

As she lay, she repeated with monotonous reiteration: "Trappings of
crimson, and silver bells: mane and tail, like foam of the waves; a
palfrey as white as snow!"

The Prioress entered, closed the door behind her, and looked
searchingly at the prostrate figure; then, lifting the master-key which
hung from her girdle, locked the door on the inside.

Sister Mary Seraphine had been silent long enough to hear the closing
and locking of the door.

Now she started afresh.

"Trappings of crimson, and silver bells----"

The Prioress walked over to the narrow casement, and stood looking out
at the rosy clouds wreathing a pale green sky.

"Oh! . . .  Oh! . . .  Oh! . . ." wailed Sister Mary Seraphine,
writhing upon the floor; "mane and tail, like foam of the waves; a
palfrey as white as snow!"

The Prioress watched the swallows on swift wing, chasing flies in the
evening light.

So complete was the silence, that Sister Mary
Seraphine--notwithstanding that turning of the key in the lock--fancied
she must be alone.

"Trappings of crimson, and silver bells!" she declaimed with vehemence;
then lifted her face to peep, and saw the tall figure of the Prioress
standing at the casement.

Instantly, Sister Mary Seraphine dropped her head.

"Mane and tail," she began--then her courage failed; the "foam of the
waves" quavered into indecision; and indecision, in such a case, is
fatal.

For a while she lay quite still, moaning plaintively, then, of a
sudden, quivered from head to foot, starting up alert, as if to listen.

"Wilfred!" she shrieked; "Wilfred!  Are you coming to save me?"

Then she opened her eyes, and peeped again.

The Prioress, wholly unmoved by the impending advent of "Wilfred,"
stood at the casement, calmly watching the swallows.

Sister Mary Seraphine began to weep.

At last the passionate sobbing ceased.

Unbroken silence reigned in the cell.

From without, the latch of the door was lifted; but the lock held.

Presently Sister Mary Seraphine dragged herself to the feet of the
Prioress, seized the hem of her robe, and kissed it.

Then the Prioress turned.  She firmly withdrew her robe from those
clinging hands; yet looked, with eyes of tender compassion, upon the
kneeling figure at her feet.

"Sister Seraphine," she said, "--for you must shew true penitence e'er
I can permit you to be called by our Lady's name--you will now come to
my cell, where I will presently speak with you."

Sister Seraphine instantly fell prone.

"I cannot walk," she said.

"You will not walk," replied the Prioress, sternly.  "You will travel
upon your hands and knees."

She crossed to the door, unlocked and set it wide.

"Moreover," she added, from the doorway, "if you do not appear in my
presence in reasonable time, I shall be constrained to send for Mother
Sub-Prioress."

The cell of the Prioress was situated at the opposite end of the long,
stone passage; but in less than reasonable time, Sister Seraphine
crawled in.

The unwonted exercise had had a most salutary effect upon her frame of
mind.

Her straight habit, of heavy cloth, had rendered progress upon her
knees awkward and difficult.  Her hands had become entangled in her
torn veil.  Each moment she had feared lest cell doors, on either side,
should open; old Antony might appear from the cloisters, or--greatest
disaster of all--Mother Sub-Prioress might advance toward her from the
Refectory stairs!  In order to attain a greater rate of speed, she had
tried lifting her knees, as elephants lift their feet.  This mode of
progress, though ungainly, had proved efficacious; but would have been
distinctly mirth-provoking to beholders.  The stones had hurt her hands
and knees far more than she hurt them when she beat upon the floor of
her own cell.

She arrived at the Reverend Mother's footstool, heated in mind and
body, ashamed of herself, vexed with her garments, in fact in an
altogether saner frame of mind than when she had called upon "Wilfred,"
and made reiterated mention of trappings of crimson and silver bells.

Perhaps the Prioress had foreseen this result, when she imposed the
penance.  Leniency or sympathy, at that moment, would have been fatal
and foolish; and had not the Prioress made special petition for wisdom?

She was seated at her table, when Sister Seraphine bumped and shuffled
into view.  She did not raise her eyes from the illuminated missal she
was studying.  One hand lay on the massive clasp, the other rested in
readiness to turn the page.  Her noble form seemed stately calm
personified.

When she heard Sister Seraphine panting close to her foot, she spoke;
still without lifting her eyes.

"You may rise to your feet," she said, "and shut to the door."

Then the waiting hand turned the page, and silence fell.

"You may arrange the disorder of your dress," said the Prioress, and
turned another page.

When at length she looked up, Sister Seraphine, clothed and apparently
in her right mind, stood humbly near the door.

The Prioress closed the book, and shut the heavy clasps.

Then she pointed to an oaken stool, signing to the nun to draw it
forward.

"Be seated, my child," she said, in tones of infinite tenderness.
"There is much which must now be said, and your mind will pay better
heed, if your body be at rest."

With her steadfast eyes the Prioress searched the pretty, flushed face,
swollen with weeping, and now gathering a look of petulant defiance,
thinly veiled beneath surface humility.

"What was the cause of this outburst, my child?" asked the Prioress,
very gently.

"While in the Cathedral, Reverend Mother, up in our gallery, I, being
placed not far from a window, heard, in a moment of silence, the
neighing of a horse in the street without.  It was like to the neighing
of mine own lovely palfrey, waiting in the castle court at home, until
I should come down and mount him.  Each time that steed neighed, I
could see Snowflake more clearly, in trappings of gay crimson, with
silver bells, amid many others prancing impatiently, champing their
bits as they waited; for it pleased me to come out last, when all were
mounted.  Then the riders lifted their plumed caps when I appeared,
while Wilfred, pushing my page aside, did swing me into the saddle.
Thus, with shouting and laughter and winding of horn, we would all ride
out to the hunt or the tourney; I first, on Snowflake; Wilfred, close
behind."

Very quietly the Prioress sat listening.  She did not take her eyes
from the flushed face.  A slight colour tinged her own cheeks.

"Who was Wilfred?" she asked, when Sister Seraphine paused for breath.

"My cousin, whom I should have wed if----"

"If?"

"If I had not left the world."

The Prioress considered this.

"If your heart was set upon wedding your cousin, my child, why did you
profess a vocation and, renouncing all worldly and carnal desires, gain
admission to our sacred Order?"

"My heart was not set on marrying my cousin!" cried Sister Seraphine,
with petulance.  "I was weary of Wilfred.  I was weary of everything!
I wanted to profess.  I wished to become a nun.  There were people I
could punish, and people I could surprise, better so, than in any other
way.  But Wilfred said that, when the time came, he would be there to
carry me off."

"And--when the time came?"

"He was not there.  I never saw him again."

The Prioress turned, and looked out through the oriel window.  She
seemed to be weighing, carefully, what she should say.

When at length she spoke, she kept her eyes fixed upon the waving
tree-tops beyond the Convent wall.

"Sister Seraphine," she said, "many who embrace the religious life,
know what it is to pass through the experience you have now had; but,
as a rule, they fight the temptation and conquer it in the secret of
their own hearts, in the silence of their own cells.

"Memories of the life that was, before, choosing the better part, we
left the world, come back to haunt us, with a wanton sweetness.  Such
memories cannot change the state, fixed forever by our vows; but they
may awaken in us vain regrets or worldly longings.  Therein lies their
sinfulness.

"To help you against this danger, I will now give you two prayers,
which you must commit to memory, and repeat whenever need arises.  The
first is from the Breviary."

The Prioress drew toward her a black book with silver clasps, opened
it, and read therefrom a short prayer in Latin.  But seeing no light of
response or of intelligence upon the face of Sister Seraphine, she
slowly repeated a translation.


_Almighty and Everlasting God, grant that our wills be ever meekly
subject to Thy will, and our hearts be ever honestly ready to serve
Thee.  Amen._


Her eyes rested, with a wistful smile, upon the book.

"This prayer might suffice," she said, "if our hearts were truly
honest, if our wills were ever yielded.  But, alas, our hearts are
deceitful above all things, and our wills are apt to turn traitor to
our good intentions.

"Therefore I have found for you, in the Gregorian Sacramentary, another
prayer--less well-known, yet much more ancient, written over six
hundred years ago.  It deals effectually with the deceitful heart, the
insidious, tempting thoughts, and the unstable will.  Here is a
translation which I have myself inscribed upon the margin."

The Prioress laid her folded hands upon the missal and as she repeated
the ancient sixth-century prayer, in all its depth of inspired
simplicity, her voice thrilled with deep emotion, for she was giving to
another that which had meant infinitely much to her own inner life.


_Almighty God, unto Whom all hearts be open, all desires known, and
from Whom no secrets are hid: Cleanse the thoughts of our hearts by the
inspiration of Thy Holy Spirit, that we may perfectly love Thee, and
worthily magnify Thy Holy Name, through Christ our Lord.  Amen._


The Prioress turned her face from Sister Seraphine's unresponsive
countenance and fixed her eyes once more upon the tree-tops.  She was
thinking of the long years of secret conflict, known only to Him from
Whom no secrets are hid; of the constant cleansing of her thoughts, for
which she had so earnestly pleaded; of the fear lest she should never
worthily magnify that Holy Name.

Presently--her heart filled with humble tenderness--she turned to
Sister Seraphine.

"These prayers, my child, which you will commit to memory before you
sleep this night, will protect you from a too insistent recollection of
the world you have resigned; and will assist you, with real inward
thoroughness, to die daily to self, in order that the Holy Name of our
dear Lord may be more worthily magnified in you."

But, alas! this gentle treatment, these long silences, this quiet
recitation of holy prayers, had but stirred the naughty spirit in
Sister Seraphine.

Her shallow nature failed to understand the deeps of the noble heart,
dealing thus tenderly with her.  She measured its ocean-wide greatness,
by the little artificial runnels of her own morbid emotions.  She
mistook gentleness for weakness; calm self-control, for lack of
strength of will.  Her wholesome awe of the Prioress was forgotten.

"But I do not want to die!" she exclaimed.  "I want to live--to
live--to live!"

The Prioress looked up, astonished.

The surface humility had departed from the swollen countenance of
Sister Seraphine.  The petulant defiance was plainly visible.

"Kneel!" commanded the Prioress, with authority.

The wayward nun jerked down upon her knees, upsetting the stool behind
her.

The Prioress made a quick movement, then restrained herself.  She had
prayed for patience in dealing with wilfulness.

"We die that we may live," she said, solemnly.  "Sister Seraphine, this
is the lesson your wayward heart must learn.  Dying to self, we live
unto God.  Dying to sin, we live unto righteousness.  Dying to the
world, we find the Life Eternal."

On her knees upon the floor, Sister Seraphine felt her position to be
such as lent itself to pathos.

"But I want to _live_ to the world!" she cried, and burst into tears.

Now Convent life does not tend to further individual grief.  Constant
devout contemplation of the Supreme Sorrow which wrought the world's
salvation lessens the inclination to shed tears of self-pity.

The Prioress was startled and alarmed by the pathetic sobs of Sister
Seraphine.

This young nun had but lately been sent on to the Nunnery at Whytstone
from a convent at Tewkesbury in which she had served her novitiate, and
taken her final vows.  The Prioress now realised how little she knew of
the inner working of the mind of Sister Seraphine, and blamed herself
for having looked upon the outward appearance rather than upon the
heart, taken too much for granted, and relied too entirely upon the
reports of others.  Her sense of failure, toward the Community in
general, and toward Seraphine in particular, lent her a fresh stock of
patience.

She raised the weeping nun from the floor, put her arm around her, with
protective gesture, and led her before the Shrine of the Madonna.

"My child," she said, "there are things we are called upon to suffer
which we can best tell to our blessèd Lady, herself.  Try to unburden
your heart and find comfort . . .  Does your mind hark back to the
thought of the earthly love you resigned in order to give yourself
solely to the heavenly? . . .  Are you troubled by fears lest you
wronged the man you loved, when, leaving him, you became the bride of
Heaven?"

Sister Seraphine smiled--a scornful little smile.  "Nay," she said, "I
was weary of Wilfred.  But--there were others."

The voice of the Prioress grew even graver, and more sad.

"Is it then the Fact of marriage which you desired and regret?"

Sister Seraphine laughed--a hard, self-conscious, little laugh.

"Nay, I could not have brooked to be bound to any man.  But I liked to
be loved, and I liked to be First in the thought and heart of another."

The Prioress looked at the pretty, tear-stained face, at the softly
moulded form.  Then an idea came to her.  To voice it, lifted the veil
from the very Holy of Holies of her own heart's sufferings; but she
would not shrink from aught which could help this soul she was striving
to uplift.

With her eyes resting upon the Babe in the arms of the Virgin Mother,
she asked, gravely and low:

"Is it the ceaseless longing to have had a little child of your own to
hold in your arms, to gather to your breast, to put to sleep upon your
knees, which keeps your heart turning restlessly back to the world?"

Sister Seraphine gazed at the Prioress, in utter amazement.

"Nay, then, indeed!" she replied, impatiently.  "Always have I hated
children.  To escape from the vexations of motherhood were reason
enough for leaving the world."

Then the Prioress withdrew her protective arm, and looked sternly upon
Sister Seraphine.

"You are playing false to your vows," she said; "you are slighting your
vocation; yet no worthy or noble feeling draws your heart back to the
world.  You do but desire vain pomp and show; all those things which
minister to the enthronement of self.  Return to your cell and spend
three hours in prayer and penitence before the crucifix."

The Prioress lifted her hand and pointed to the figure of the Christ,
hanging upon the great rugged cross against the wall, facing the door.
The sublimity of a supreme adoration was in her voice, as she made her
last appeal.

"Surely," she said, "surely no love of self can live, in view of the
death and sacrifice of our blessèd Lord!  Kneel then before the
crucifix and learn----"

But the over-wrought mind of Sister Seraphine, suddenly convinced of
the futility of its hopeless rebellion, passed, in that moment,
altogether beyond control.

With a shout of wild laughter, she flung back her head, pointing with
outstretched finger at the crucifix.

"Death!  Death!  Death!" she shrieked, "helpless, hopeless, terrible!
I ask for life, I want to live; I am young, I am gay, I am beautiful.
And they bid--bid--bid me kneel--long hours--watching death."  Her
voice rose to a piercing scream.  "Ah, HA!  That will I NOT!  A dead
God cannot help me!  I want life, not death!"

Shrieking she leapt to her feet, flew across the room, beat upon the
sacred Form with her fists; tore at It with her fingers.

One instant of petrifying horror.  Then the Prioress was upon her.

Seizing her by both wrists she flung her to the floor, then pulled a
rope passing over a pulley in the wall, which started the great
alarm-bell, in the passage, clanging wildly.

At once there came a rush of flying feet; calls for the Sub-Prioress;
but she was already there.

When they flung wide the door, lo, the Prioress stood--with white face
and blazing eyes, her arms outstretched--between them and the crucifix.

Upon the floor, a crumpled heap, lay Sister Mary Seraphine.

The nuns, in a frightened crowd, filled the doorway, none daring to
speak, or to enter; till old Mary Antony, pushing past the
Sub-Prioress, kneeled down beside the Reverend Mother, and, lifting the
hem of her robe, kissed it and pressed it to her breast.

Slowly the Prioress let fall her arms.

"Enter," she said; and they flocked in.

"Sister Seraphine," said the Prioress, in awful tones, "has profaned
the crucifix, reviling our blessèd Lord, Who hangs thereon."

All the nuns, falling upon their knees, hid their faces in their hands.

There was a terrifying quality in the silence of the next moments.

Slowly the Prioress turned, prostrated herself at the foot of the
cross, and laid her forehead against the floor at its base.  Then the
nuns heard one deep, shuddering sob.

Not a head was lifted.  The only nun who peeped was Sister Mary
Seraphine, prone upon the floor.


After a while, the Prioress arose, pale but calm.

"Carry her to her cell," she said.

Two tall nuns to whom she made sign lifted Sister Seraphine, and bore
her out.

When the shuffling of their feet died away in the distance, the
Prioress gave further commands.

"All will now go to their cells and kneel in adoration before the
crucifix.  Doors are to be left standing wide.  The _Miserere_ is to be
chanted, until the ringing of the Refectory bell.  Mother Sub-Prioress
will remain behind."

The nuns dispersed, as quickly as they had gathered; seeking their
cells, like frightened birds fleeing before a gathering storm.

The tall nuns who had carried Sister Seraphine returned and waited
outside the Reverend Mother's door.

The Prioress stood alone; a tragic figure in her grief.

Mother Sub-Prioress drew near.  Her narrow face, peering from out her
veil, more than ever resembled a ferret.  Her small eyes gleamed with a
merciless light.

"Is mine the task, Reverend Mother?" she whispered.

The Prioress inclined her head.

Mother Sub-Prioress murmured a second question.

The Prioress turned and looked at the crucifix.

"Yes," she said, firmly.

Mother Sub-Prioress sidled nearer; then whispered her third question.

The Prioress did not answer.  She was looking at the carved, oaken
stool, overthrown.  She was wondering whether she could have acted with
better judgment, spoken more wisely.  Her heart was sore.  Such noble
natures ever blame themselves for the wrong-doing of the worthless.

Receiving no reply, Mother Sub-Prioress whispered a suggestion.

"No," said the Prioress.

Mother Sub-Prioress modified her suggestion.

The Prioress turned and looked at the tender figure of the Madonna,
brooding over the blessèd Babe.

"No," said the Prioress.

Mother Sub-Prioress frowned, and made a further modification; but in
tones which suggested finality.

The Prioress inclined her head.

The Sub-Prioress, bowing low, lifted the hem of the Reverend Mother's
veil, and kissed it; then passed from the room.


The Prioress moved to the window.

The sunset was over.  The evening star shone, like a newly-lighted
lamp, in a pale purple sky.  The fleet-winged swallows had gone to rest.

Bats flitted past the casement, like homeless souls who know not where
to go.

Low chanting began in the cells; the nuns, with open doors, singing
_Miserere_.

But, as she looked at the evening star, the Prioress heard again, with
startling distinctness, the final profanity of poor Sister Seraphine:
"I want life--not death!"


Along the corridor passed a short procession, on its way to the cell of
Mary Seraphine.

First went a nun, carrying a lighted taper.

Next, the two tall nuns who had borne Mary Seraphine to her cell.

Behind them, Mother Sub-Prioress, holding something beneath her
scapulary which gave to her more of a presence than she usually
possessed.

Solemn and official,--nay, almost sacrificial--was their measured
shuffle, as they moved along the passage, and entered the cell of Mary
Seraphine.


The Prioress closed her door, and, kneeling before the crucifix,
implored forgiveness for the sacrilege which, all unwittingly, she had
provoked.

The nuns, in their separate cells, chanted the _Miserere_.
But--suddenly--with one accord, their voices fell silent; then hastened
on, in uncertain, agitated rhythm.


Old Mary Antony below, playing her favourite game, also paused, and
pricked up her ears: then filliped the wizen pea, which stood for
Mother Sub-Prioress, into the darkest corner, and hurried off to brew a
soothing balsam.

So, when the Refectory bell had summoned all to the evening meal, the
old lay-sister crept to the cell of Mary Seraphine, carrying broth and
comfort.

But Sister Seraphine was better content than she had been for many
weeks.

At last she had become the centre of attention; and, although, during
the visit of Mother Sub-Prioress to her cell, this had been a
peculiarly painful position to occupy, yet to the morbid mind of Mary
Seraphine, the position seemed worth the discomfort.

Therefore, her mind now purged of its discontent, she cheerfully supped
old Antony's broth, and applied the soothing balsam; yet planning the
while, to gain favour with the Prioress, by repeating to her, at the
first convenient opportunity, the naughty remarks concerning Mother
Sub-Prioress, now being made for her diversion, by the kind old woman
who had risked reproof, in order to bring to her, in her disgrace, both
food and consolation.




CHAPTER VI

THE KNIGHT OF THE BLOODY VEST

"Nay, I have naught for thee this morning," said Mary Antony to the
robin; "naught, that is, save spritely conversation.  I can tell thee a
tale or two; I can give thee sage advice; but, in my wallet, little
Master Mendicant, I have but my bag of peas."

The old lay-sister sat resting in the garden.  She had had a busy hour,
yet complicated in its busy-ness, for, starting out to do weeding, she
had presently fancied herself intent upon making a posy, and now, sat
upon the stone seat beneath the beech tree, holding a large nosegay
made up of many kinds of flowering weeds, arranged with much care, and
bound round with convolvulus tendrils.

Keen and uncommon shrewd though old Antony certainly was in many ways,
her great age occasionally betrayed itself by childish vagaries.  Her
mind would start off along the lines of a false premise, landing her
eventually in a dream-like conclusion.  As now, when waking from a
moment's nodding in the welcome shade, she wondered why her old back
seemed well-nigh broken, and marvelled to find herself holding a big
posy of dandelions, groundsel, plantain, and bindweed.

On the other end of the seat, stood the robin.  The beech was just near
enough to the cloisters, the pieman's tree, and his own particular yew
hedge, to come within his little kingdom.

Having mentioned her bag of peas, Mary Antony experienced an
irresistible desire to view them and, moreover, to display them before
the bright eyes of the robin.

She laid the queer nosegay down upon the grass at her feet, turned
sidewise on the stone slab, and drew the bag from her wallet.

"Now, Master Pieman!" she said.  "At thine own risk thou doest it; but
with thine own bright eyes thou shalt see the holy Ladies; the Unnamed,
all like peas in a pod, as the Lord knows they do look, when they walk
to and fro; but first, if so be that I can find them, the Few which I
distinguish from among the rest."

Presently, after much peering into the bag, the fine white pea, the
wizened pea, and the pale and speckled pea, lay in line upon the stone.

"This," explained Mary Antony, pointing, with knobby forefinger, to the
first, "is the Reverend Mother, Herself--large, and pure, and
noble. . . .  Nay, hop not too close, Sir Redbreast!  When we enter her
chamber we kneel at the threshold, till she bids us draw nearer.  True,
_we_ are merely soberly-clad, holy women, whereas _thou_ art a gay,
gaudy man; bold-eyed, and, doubtless, steeped in sin.  But even thou
must keep thy distance, in presence of this most Reverend Pea of great
price.

"This," indicating the shrivelled pea, "is Mother Sub-Prioress, who
would love to have the whipping of thee, thou naughty little rascal!

"This is Sister Mary Rebecca who daily grows more crooked, both in mind
and body; yet who ever sweetly smileth.

"Now will I show thee, if so be that I can find her, Sister Teresa, a
kindly soul and gracious, but with a sniff which may be heard in the
kitchens when that holy Lady taketh her turn at the Refectory reading.
And when, the reading over, having sniffed every other minute, she at
length, feels free to blow, beshrew me, Master Redbreast, one might
think our old dun cow had just been parted from a newly-born calf.
Yea, a kind, gracious soul; but noisy about the nose, and forgetful of
the ears of other people, her own necessity seeming excuse enough for
veritable trumpet blasts."

Mary Antony, half turning as she talked, peered into the open bag in
search of Sister Teresa.

Then, quick as thought, the unexpected happened.

Three rapid hops, a jerky bend of the red breast, a flash of wings----

The robin had flown off with the white pea!  The shrivelled and the
speckled alone remained upon the seat.

Uttering a cry of horror and dismay, the old lay-sister fell upon her
knees, lifting despairing hands to trees and sky.


Down by the lower wall, in earnest meditation, the Prioress moved back
and forth, on the Cypress Walk.

Mary Antony's shriek of dismay, faint but unmistakable, reached her
ears.  Turning, she passed noiselessly up the green sward, on the
further side of the yew hedge; but paused, in surprise, as she drew
level with the beech; for the old lay-sister's voice penetrated the
hedge, and the first words she overheard seemed to the Prioress wholly
incomprehensible.

"Ah, thou Knight of the Bloody Vest!" moaned Mary Antony.  "Heaven send
thy wicked perfidy may fall on thine own pate!  Intruding thyself into
our most private places; begging food, which could not be refused;
wheedling old Mary Antony into letting thee have a peep at the holy
Ladies--thou bold, bad man!--and then carrying off the Reverend Mother,
Herself!  Ha!  Hadst thou but caught away Mother Sub-Prioress, she
would have reformed thy home, whipped thy children, and mended thine
own vile manners, thou graceless churl!  Or hadst thou taken Sister
Mary Rebecca, _she_ would have brought the place about thine ears,
telling thy wife fine tales of thine unfaithfulness; whispering that
Mary Antony is younger and fairer than she.  But, nay, forsooth!
Neither of these will do!  Thou must needs snatch away the Reverend
Mother, Herself!  Oh, sacrilegious fiend!  Stand not there mocking me!
Where is the Reverend Mother?"

"Why, here am I, dear Antony," said the Prioress, in soothing tones,
coming quickly from behind the hedge.

One glance revealed, to her relief, that the lay-sister was alone.
Tears ran down the furrows of her worn old face.  She knelt upon the
grass; beside her a large nosegay of flowering weeds; upon the seat,
peas strewn from out a much-used, linen bag.  Above her on a bough, a
robin perched, bending to look, with roguish eye, at the scattered peas.

To the Prioress it seemed that indeed the old lay-sister must have
taken leave of her senses.

Stooping, she tried to raise her; but Mary Antony, flinging herself
forward, clasped and kissed the Reverend Mother's feet, in an
abandonment of penitence and grief.

"Nay, rise, dear Antony," said the Prioress, firmly.  "Rise!  I command
it.  The day is warm.  Thou hast been dreaming.  No bold, bad man has
forced his way within these walls.  No 'Knight of the Bloody Vest' is
here.  Rise up and look.  We are alone."

But Mary Antony, still on her knees, half raised herself, and, pointing
to the bough above, quavered, amid her sobs: "The bold, bad man is
there!"

Looking up, the Prioress met the bright eye of the robin, peeping down.

Why, surely?  Yes!  There was the "Bloody Vest."

The Prioress smiled.  She began to understand.

The robin burst into a stream of triumphant song.  At which, old Mary
Antony, still kneeling, shook her uplifted fist.

The Prioress raised and drew her to the seat.

"Now sit thee here beside me," she said, "and make full confession.
Ease thine old heart by telling me the entire tale.  Then I will pass
sentence on the robin if, true to his name, he turns out to be a thief."

So there, in the Convent garden, while the robin sang overhead, the
Prioress listened to the quaint recital; the dread of making mistake in
the daily counting; the elaborate plan of dropping peas; the manner in
which the peas became identified with the personalities of the White
Ladies; the games in the cell; the taming of the robin; the habit of
sharing with the little bird, interests which might not be shared with
others, which had resulted that morning in the display of the peas, and
this undreamed of disaster--the abduction of the Reverend Mother.

The Prioress listened with outward gravity, striving to conceal all
signs of the inward mirth which seized and shook her.  But more than
once she had to turn her face from the peering eyes of Mary Antony,
striving anxiously to gather whether her chronicle of sins was placing
her outside the pale of possible forgiveness.

The Prioress did not hasten the recital.  She knew the importance, to
the mind with which she dealt, of even the most trivial detail.  To be
checked or hurried, would leave Mary Antony with the sense of an
incomplete confession.

Therefore, with infinite patience the Prioress listened, seated in the
sunlit garden, undisturbed, save for the silent passing, once or twice,
of a veiled figure through the cloisters, who, seeing the Reverend
Mother seated beneath the beech, did reverence and hastened on, looking
not again.

When the garrulous old voice at last fell silent, the Prioress, with
kind hand, covered the restless fingers--clasping and unclasping in
anxious contortions--and firmly held them in folded stillness.

Her first words were of a thing as yet unmentioned.

"Dear Antony," she said, "is that thy posy lying at our feet?"

"Ah, Reverend Mother," sighed the old lay-sister, "in this did I again
do wrong meaning to do right.  Sister Mary Augustine, coming into the
kitchens with leave, from Mother Sub-Prioress, to make the pasties, and
desiring to be free to make them heavy--unhampered by my advice which,
of a surety, would have helped them to lightness--bade me go out and
weed the garden.

"Weeding, I bethought me how much liefer I would be gathering a posy of
choicest flowers for our sweet Lady's shrine; and, thus thinking, I
began to do, not according to Sister Mary Augustine's hard task, but
according to mine own heart's promptings.  Yet, when the posy was
finished, alack-a-day! it was a posy of weeds!"

Tears filled the eyes of the Prioress; at first she could not trust her
voice to make reply.

Then, stooping she picked up the nosegay.

"Our Lady shall have it," she said.  "I will place it before her
shrine, in mine own cell.  She will understand--knowing how often,
though the hands perforce do weeding, yet, all the time, the heart is
gathering choicest flowers.

"Aye, and sometimes when we bring to God offerings of fairest flowers,
He sees but worthless weeds.  And, when we mourn, because we have but
weeds to offer, He sees them fragrant blossoms.  Whatever, to the eye
of man, the hand may hold, God sees therein the bouquet of the heart's
intention."

The Prioress paused, a look of great gladness on her face; then, as she
saw the old lay-sister still eyeing her posy with dissatisfaction:
"And, after all, dear Antony," she said, "who shall decide which
flowers shall be dubbed 'weeds'?  No plant of His creation, however
humble, was called a 'weed' by the Creator.  When, for man's sin, He
cursed the ground, He said: 'Thorns also and thistles shall it cause to
bud.'  Well?  Sharpest thorns are found around the rose; the thistle is
the royal bloom of Scotland; and, if our old white ass could speak her
mind, doubtless she would call it King of Flowers.

"Nowhere in Holy Books, is any plant named a 'weed.'  It is left to man
to proclaim that the flowers he wants not, are weeds.

"Look at each one of these.  Could you or I, labouring for years, with
all our skill, make anything so perfect as the meanest of these weeds?

"Nay; they are weeds, because they grow, there where they should not
be.  The gorgeous scarlet poppy is a weed amid the corn.  If roses
overgrew the wheat, we should dub them weeds, and root them out.

"And some of us have had, perforce, so to deal with the roses in our
lives; those sweet and fragrant things which overgrew our offering of
the wheat of service, our sacrifice of praise and prayer.

"Perhaps, when our weeds are all torn out, and cast in a tangled heap
before His Feet, our Lord beholds in them a garland of choice blossoms.
The crown of thorns on earth, may prove, in Paradise, a diadem of
flowers."

The Prioress laid the posy on the seat beside her.

"Now, Antony, about thy games with peas.  There is no wrong in keeping
count with peas of those who daily walk to and from Vespers; though, I
admit, it seems to me, it were easier to count one, two, three, with
folded hands, than to let fall the peas from one hand to the other,
beneath thy scapulary.  Howbeit, a method which would be but a pitfall
to one, may prove a prop to another.  So I give thee leave to continue
to count with thy peas.  Also the games in thy cell are harmless, and
lead me to think, as already I have sometimes thought, that games with
balls or rings, something in which eye guides the hand, and mind the
eye, might be helpful for all, on summer evenings.

"But I cannot have thee take upon thyself to decide the future state of
the White Ladies.  Who art thou, to send me to Paradise with a fillip
of thine old finger-nail, yet to keep our excellent Sub-Prioress in
Purgatory?  Shame upon thee, Mary Antony!"  But the sternness of the
Reverend Mother's tone was belied by the merriment in her grey eyes.

"So no more of that, my Antony; though, truth to tell, thy story gives
me relief, answering a question I was meaning to put to thee.  I heard,
not an hour ago, that Sister Antony had boasted that with a turn of her
thumb and finger she could, any night, send Mother Sub-Prioress to
Purgatory."

"Who said that of me?" stuttered Mary Antony.  "Who said it, Reverend
Mother?"

"A little bird," murmured the Prioress.  "A little bird, dear Antony;
but not thy pretty robin.  Also, the boast was taken to mean poison in
the broth of Mother Sub-Prioress.  Hast thou ever put harmful things in
the broth of Mother Sub-Prioress?"

Mary Antony slipped to her knees.

"Only beans, Reverend Mother, castor beans; and, when her temper was
vilest, purging herbs.  Nothing more, I swear it!  Old Antony knows
naught of poisons; only of mixing balsams--ah, ha!--and soothing
ointments!  Our blessèd Lady knows the tale is false."

Hastily the Prioress lifted the nosegay and buried her face in bindweed
and dandelions.

"I believe thee," she said, in a voice not over steady.  "Rise from thy
knees.  But, remember, I forbid thee to put aught into Mother
Sub-Prioress's broth, save things that soothe and comfort.   Give me
thy word for this, Antony."

The old woman humbly lifted the hem of the Prioress's robe, and pressed
it to her lips.

"I promise, Reverend Mother," she said, "and I do repent me of my sin."

"Sit beside me," commanded the Prioress.  "I have more to say to
thee. . . .  Think not hard thoughts of the Sub-Prioress.  She is
stern, and extreme to mark what is done amiss, but this she conceives
to be her duty.  She is a most pious Lady.  Her zeal is but a sign of
her piety."

Mary Antony's keen eyes, meeting those of the Prioress, twinkled.

Once again the Prioress took refuge in the posy.  She was beginning to
have had enough of the scent of dandelions.

"Mother Sub-Prioress is sick," she said.  "The cold struck her last
evening, after sunset, in the orchard.  I have bidden her to keep her
bed awhile.  We must tend her kindly, Antony, and help her back to
health again.

"Sister Mary Rebecca is also sick, with pains in her bones and slight
fever.  She too keeps her bed to-day.  Strive to feel kindly toward
her, Antony.  I know she oft thinks evil where none was meant, telling
tales of wrong which are mostly of her own imagining.  But, in so
doing, she harms herself more than she can harm others.

"By stirring up the mud in a dark pool, you dim the reflection of the
star which, before, shone bright within it.  But you do not dim the
star, shining on high.

"So is it with the slanderous thoughts of evil minds.  They stir up
their own murkiness; but they fail to dim the stars.

"We must bear with Sister Mary Rebecca."

"Go not nigh them, Reverend Mother," begged old Antony.  "I will tend
them with due care and patience.  These pains in bones, and general
shiverings, are given quickly from one to another.  I pray you, go not
near.  Remember--_you_ were taken--alas! alas!--and _they_ were left!"

At this the Prioress laughed, gaily.

"But I was not taken decently, with pains in my bones and a-bed, dear
Antony.  I was carried off by a bold, bad man--thy Knight of the Bloody
Vest."

"Oh, pray!" cried the old lay-sister.  "I fear me it is an omen.  The
angel Gabriel, Reverend Mother, sent to bear you from earth to heaven.
'The one shall be taken, and the other left.'  Ah, if he had but flown
off with Mother Sub-Prioress!"

The Prioress laughed again.  "Dear Antony, thy little bird took the
first pea he saw.  Had there but been a crumb, or a morsel of cheese,
he would have left thee thy white pea. . .  Hark how he sings his
little song of praise! . . .  Is it not wonderful to call to mind how,
centuries ago, when white-robed Druids cut mistletoe from British oaks,
the robin redbreast hopped around, and sang; when, earlier still, men
were wild and savage, dwelling in holes and caves and huts of mud, when
churches and cloisters were unknown in this land and the one true God
undreamed of, robins mated and made their nests, the speckled thrushes
sang, 'Do it now--Do it now,' as they sought food for their young, the
blackbirds whistled, and the swallows flashed by on joyous wing.  Aye,
and when Eve and Adam walked in Eden, amid strange beasts and gaily
plumaged birds, here--in these Isles--the robin redbreast sang, and all
our British birds busily built their nests and reared their young;
living their little joyous lives, as He Who made them taught them how
to do.

"And, in the centuries to come, when all things may be changed in this
our land, when we shall long have gone to dust, when our loved
cloisters may have crumbled into ruin; still the hills of Malvern will
stand, and the silvery Severn flow along the valley; while here, in
this very garden--if it be a garden still--the robin will build his
nest, and carol his happy song.

"Mark you this, dear Mary Antony: all things made by man hold within
them the elements of change and of decay.  But nature is at one with
God, and therefore immutable.  Earthly kingdoms may rise and wane;
mighty cities may spring up, then fall into ruin.  Nations may conquer
and, in their turn, be conquered.  Man may slay man and, in his turn,
be slain.  But, through it all, the mountains stand, the rivers flow,
the forests wave, and the redbreast builds his nest in the hawthorn,
and warbles a love-song to his mate."

The Prioress rose and stretched wide her arms to the sunlit garden, to
the bough where the robin sang.

"Oh, to be one with God and with Nature!" she cried.  "Oh, to know the
essential mysteries of Life and Light and Love!  This is Life Eternal!"

She had forgotten the old lay-sister; aye, for the moment she had
forgotten the Convent and the cloister, the mile-long walk in darkness,
the chant of the unseen monks.  She trod again the springy heather of
her youth; she heard the rush of the mountain stream; the sigh of the
great forest; the rustle of the sunlit glades, alive with, life.  These
all were in the robin's song.  Then----

Within the Convent, the Refectory bell clanged loudly.

The Prioress let fall her arms.

She picked up the nosegay of weeds.

"Come, Antony," she said, "let us go and discover whether Sister Mary
Augustine hath contrived to make the pasties light and savoury, even
without the aid of the advice she might have had from thee."

Old Mary Antony, gleeful and marvelling, followed the stately figure of
the Prioress.  Never was shriven soul more blissfully at peace.  She
had kept back nothing; yet the Reverend Mother had imposed no
punishment, had merely asked a promise which, in the fulness of her
gratitude, Mary Antony had found it easy to give.

Truly the broth of Mother Sub-Prioress should, for the future, contain
naught but what was grateful and soothing.

But, as she entered the Refectory behind the Reverend Mother and saw
all the waiting nuns arise, old Mary Antony laid her finger to her nose.

"That 'little bird' shall have the castor beans," she said, "That
'little bird' shall have them.  Not my pretty robin, but the other!"

And, sad to say, poor Sister Seraphine was sorely griped that night,
and suffered many pangs.




CHAPTER VII

THE MADONNA IN THE CLOISTER

The Prioress knelt, in prayer and meditation, before the figure of the
Virgin Mother holding upon her knees the holy Babe.

Moonlight flooded the cell with a pure radiance.

Mary Antony's posy of weeds, offered, according to promise, at the
Virgin's shrine, took on, in that silver splendour, the semblance of
lilies and roses.

The Prioress knelt long, with clasped hands and bowed head, as white
and as motionless as the marble before her.  But at length she lifted
her face, and broke into low pleading.

"Mother of God," she said, "help this poor aching heart; still the wild
hunger at my breast.  Make me content to be at one with the Divine, and
to let Nature go. . . .  Thou knowest it is not the _man_ I want.  In
all the long years since he played traitor to his troth to me, I have
not wanted the man.  The woman he wed may have him, unbegrudged by me.
I do not envy her the encircling of his arms, though time was when I
felt them strong and tender.  I do not want the man, but--O, sweet
Mother of God--I want the man's little child!  I envy her the
motherhood which, but for her, would have been mine. . . .  I want the
soft dark head against my breast. . . .  I want sweet baby lips drawing
fresh life from mine. . . .  I want the little feet, resting together
in my hand. . . .  All Nature sings of life, and the power to bestow
life.  Yet mine arms are empty, and my strength does but carry mine own
self to and fro. . . .  Oh, give me grace to turn my thoughts from Life
to Sacrifice."

The Prioress rose, crossed the floor, and knelt long in prayer and
contemplation before the crucifix.

The moonlight fell upon the dying face of the suffering Saviour, upon
the crown of thorns, the helpless arms out-stretched, the bleeding feet.

O, Infinite Redeemer!  O, mighty Sacrifice!  O, Love of God, made
manifest!


The Prioress knelt long in adoring contemplation.  At intervals she
prostrated herself, pressing her forehead against the base of the cross.


At length she rose and moved toward the inner room, where stood her
couch.

But even as she reached the threshold she turned quickly back, and
kneeling before the Virgin and Child clasped the little marble foot of
the Babe, covered it with kisses, and pressed it to her breast.

Then, lifting despairing eyes to the tender face of the Madonna: "O,
Mother of God," she cried, "grant unto me to love the piercèd feet of
thy dear Son crucified, more than I love the little, baby feet of the
Infant Jesus on thy knees."

A great calm fell upon her after this final prayer.  It seemed, of a
sudden, more efficacious than all the long hours of vigil.  She felt
persuaded that it would be granted.

She rose to her feet, almost too much dazed and too weary to cross to
the inner cell.

A breath of exquisite fragrance filled the air.

At the feet of the Madonna stood a wondrous bouquet of lilies of the
valley and white roses.

Pale but radiant, the Prioress passed into her sleeping-chamber.  The
loving heart of old Mary Antony had been full of lilies and roses.  It
was not her fault that her old hands had been filled with weeds.
Divine Love, understanding, had wrought this gracious miracle.

As the Prioress stretched herself upon her couch, she murmured softly:
"The Lord seeth not as man seeth: for man looketh on the outward
appearance, but the Lord looketh on the heart.

"And, after all, this miracle of the Divine perception doth take place
daily.

"Alas, when our vaunted roses and lilies appear, in His sight, as mere
worthless weeds.

"The Lord looketh on the heart."

      *      *      *      *      *      *

When the Prioress awoke, the sunlight filled her chamber.

She hastened to the archway between the cells, and looked.

The dandelions seemed more gaily golden, in the morning light.  The
bindweed had faded.

The Prioress was disappointed.  She had counted upon sending early for
old Mary Antony.  She had pictured her bewildered joy.  Yet now the
nosegay was as before.

Morning light is ever a test for transformations.  Things are apt to
look again as they were.

But a fragrance of roses and lilies still lingered in the chamber.

The blessèd Virgin smiled upon the Babe.

And there was peace in the heart of the Prioress.  Her long vigil, her
hours of prayer, had won for her the sense of a calm certainty of
coming victory.

Strong in that certainty, she bent, and gently kissed the little feet
of the holy Babe.


Then, as was her wont, she sounded the bell which called the entire
community to arise, and to begin a new day.




CHAPTER VIII

ON THE WINGS OF THE STORM

In the afternoon of that day, Mary Antony awaited, in the cloisters,
the return of the White Ladies from Vespers.  Twenty only, had gone;
and, fearful lest she should make mistake with the unusual number, the
old lay-sister spent the time of waiting in counting the twenty peas
afresh, passing them back and forth from one hand to the other.

Mother Sub-Prioress was still unable to leave her bed.

Sister Mary Augustine stayed to tend her.

Sister Teresa was in less pain, but fevered still, and strangely weak.
The Reverend Mother forbade her to rise.

Shortly before the bell rang calling the nuns to form procession in the
cloisters, Sister Seraphine declared herself unable for the walk, and
begged to be allowed to remain behind.  The Prioress found herself
misdoubting this sudden indisposition of Sister Seraphine who, though
flushed and excited, shewed none of the usual signs of sickness.

Not wishing, however, to risk having a third patient upon her hands,
the Reverend Mother gave leave for her to stay, but also elected to
remain behind, herself; letting Sister Mary Rebecca, who had recovered
from her indisposition, lead the procession.

Thus the Reverend Mother contrived to keep Sister Seraphine with her
during the absence of the other nuns, giving her translations from the
Sacramentaries to copy upon strips of vellum, until shortly before the
hour when the White Ladies would return from Vespers, when she sent her
to her cell for the time of prayer and meditation.

Left alone, the Prioress examined the copies, fairly legible, but sadly
unlike her own beautiful work.  She sighed and, putting them away, rose
and paced the room, questioning how best to deal with the pretty but
wayward young nun.

Two definite causes led the Prioress to mistrust Sister Seraphine: one,
that she had called upon "Wilfred" to come and save her, and had
admitted having expected him to appear and carry her off before she
made her final profession; the other, that she had tried to start an
evil report concerning the old lay-sister, Mary Antony.  The Prioress
pondered what means to take in order to bring Sister Seraphine to a
better mind.

As the Prioress walked to and fro, unconsciously missing the daily
exercise of the passage to the Cathedral, she noted a sudden darkening
of her chamber.  Going to the window, she saw the sky grown black with
thunder clouds.  So quickly the storm gathered, that the bright summer
world without seemed suddenly hung over with a deep purple pall.

Birds screamed and darted by, on hurried wing; then, reaching home,
fell silent.  All nature seemed to hold its breath, awaiting the first
flash, and the first roll of thunder.

Still standing at her window, the Prioress questioned whether the nuns
were returned, and safely in their cells.  While underground they would
know nothing of it; but they loved not passing along the cloisters in a
storm.

The Prioress wondered why she had not heard the bell announcing their
return, and calling to the hour of prayer and silence.  Also why Mary
Antony had not brought in the key and her report.

Thinking to inquire into this, she turned from the window, just as a
darting snake of fire cleft the sky.  A crash of thunder followed; and,
at that moment, the door of the chamber bursting open, old Mary Antony,
breathless, stumbled in, forgetting to knock, omitting to kneel, not
waiting leave to speak, both hands outstretched, one tightly clenched,
the other holding the great key: "Oh, Reverend Mother!" she gasped.
Then the stern displeasure on that loved face silenced her.  She
dropped upon her knees, ashen and trembling.

Now the Prioress held personal fear in high scorn; and if, after ninety
years' experience of lightning and thunder, Mary Antony was not better
proof against their terrors, the Prioress felt scant patience with her.
She spoke sternly.

"How now, Mary Antony!  Why this unseemly haste?  Why this rush into my
presence; no knock; no pause until I bid thee enter?  Is the
storm-fiend at thy heels?  Now shame upon thee!"

For only answer, Mary Antony opened her clenched hand: whereupon twenty
peas fell pattering to the floor, chasing one another across the
Reverend Mother's cell.

The Prioress frowned, growing suddenly weary of these games with peas.

"Have the Ladies returned?" she asked.

Mary Antony grovelled nearer, let fall the key, and seized the robe of
the Prioress with both hands, not to carry it to her lips, but to cling
to it as if for protection.

With the clang of the key on the flags, a twisted blade of fire rent
the sky.

As the roar which followed rolled away, echoed and re-echoed by distant
hills, the old lay-sister lifted her face.

Her lips moved, her gums rattled; the terror in her eyes pleaded for
help.

This was the moment when it dawned on the Prioress that there was more
here than fear of a storm.

Stooping she laid her hands firmly, yet with kindness in their
strength, on the shaking shoulders.

"What is it, dear Antony?" she said.

"Twenty White Ladies went," whispered the old lay-sister.  "I counted
them.  Twenty White Ladies went; but----"

"Well?"

"_Twenty-one_ returned," chattered Mary Antony, and hid her face in the
Reverend Mother's robe.

Two flashes, with their accompanying peals of thunder passed, before
the Prioress moved or spoke.  Then raising Mary Antony she placed her
in a chair, disengaged her robe from the shaking hands, passed out into
the cell passage, and herself sounded the call to silence and prayer.

Returning to her cell she shut the door, poured out a cordial and put
it to the trembling lips of Mary Antony.  Then taking a seat just
opposite, she looked with calm eyes at the lay-sister.

"What means this story?" said the Prioress.

"Reverend Mother, twenty holy Ladies went----"

"I know.  And twenty returned."

"Aye," said the old woman more firmly, nettled out of her
speechlessness; "twenty returned; and twenty peas I dropped from hand
to hand.  Then--when no pea remained--yet another White Lady glided by;
and with her went an icy wind, and around her came the blackness of the
storm.

"Down the steps I fled, locked the door, and took the key.  How I
mounted again, I know not.  As I drew level with the cloisters, I saw
that twenty-first White Lady, for whom--Saint Peter knows--I held no
pea, passing from the cloisters into the cell passage.  As I hastened
on, fain to see whither she went, a blinding flash, like an evil
twisting snake, shot betwixt her and me.  When I could see again, she
was gone.  I fled to the Reverend Mother, and ran in on the roar of the
thunder."

"Saw you her face, Mary Antony?"

"Nay, Reverend Mother.  But, of late, the holy Ladies mostly walk by
with their faces shrouded."

"I know.  Now, see here, dear Antony.  Two peas dropped together, the
while you counted one."

"Nay, Reverend Mother.  Twenty peas dropped one by one; also I counted
twenty White Ladies.  And, after I had counted twenty, yet another
passed."

"But how could that be?" objected the Prioress.  "If twenty went, but
twenty could return.  Who should be the twenty-first?"

Then old Mary Antony leaned forward, crossing herself.

"Sister Agatha," she whispered, tremulously.  "Poor Sister Agatha
returned to us again."

But, even as she said it, swift came a name to the mind of the
Prioress, answering her own question, and filling her with
consternation and a great anger.  "Wilfred!  Wilfred, are you come to
save me?" foolish little Seraphine had said.  Was such sacrilege
possible?  Could one from the outside world have dared to intrude into
their holy Sanctuary?

Yet old Antony's tale carried conviction.  Her abject fear was now
explained.

That the Dead should come again, and walk and move among the haunts of
men, seeking out the surroundings they have loved and left, seems
always to hold terror for the untutored mind, which knows not that the
Dead are more alive than the living; and that there is no death, saving
the death of sin.

But to the Reverend Mother, guarding her flock from sin or shame, a
visitor from the Unseen World held less of horror than a possible
intruder from the Seen.

A rapid glance as she sounded the bell, had shown her that the passage
was empty.

Which cell now sheltered two, where there should be but one?

The Prioress walked across to a recess near the south window, touched a
spring, and slid back a portion of the oak panelling.  Passing her hand
into a secret hiding place in the wall, she drew forth a beautifully
fashioned dagger, with carved ivory handle, crossed metal thumb-guard,
blade of bevelled steel, polished and narrowing to a sharp needle
point.  She tested the point, then slipped the weapon into her belt,
beneath her scapulary.  As she closed the panel, and turned back into
the chamber, a light of high resolve was in her eyes.  Her whole
bearing betokened so fine a fearlessness, such noble fixity of purpose
that, looking on her, Mary Antony felt her own fears vanishing.

"Now listen, dear Antony," said the Prioress, holding the old woman
with her look.  "I must make sure that this twenty-first White Lady of
thine is but a trick played on thee by thy peas.  Should she be
anywhere in the Convent I shall most certainly have speech with her.

"Meanwhile, go thou to thy kitchens, and give thy mind to the preparing
of the evening meal.  But ring not the Refectory bell until I bid thee.
Nay, I myself will sound it this evening.  It may suit me to keep the
nuns somewhat longer at their devotions.

"Should I sound the alarm bell, let all thy helpers run up here; but go
thou to the cell of Mother Sub-Prioress and persuade her not to rise.
If needful say that it is my command that she keep her bed. . . .
Great heavens!  What a crash!  May our Lady defend us!  The lightning
inclines to strike.  I shall pass to each cell and make sure that none
are too greatly alarmed."

"Now, haste thee, Antony; and not a word concerning thy fears must pass
thy lips to any; no mention of a twenty-first White Lady nor"--the
Prioress crossed herself--"of Sister Agatha, to whom may our Lord grant
everlasting rest."

Mary Antony, kneeling, kissed the hem of the Prioress's robe.  Then,
rising, she said--with unwonted solemnity and restraint: "The Lord
defend you, Reverend Mother, from foes, seen and unseen," and, followed
by another blinding flash of lightning, she left the cell.




CHAPTER IX

THE PRIORESS SHUTS THE DOOR

The Prioress waited until the old lay-sister's shuffling footsteps died
away.

Then she passed out into the long, stone passage, leaving her own door
open wide.

Into each cell the Prioress went.

In each she found a kneeling nun, absorbed in her devotions.  In no
cell were there two white figures.  So simple were the fittings of
these cells, that no place of concealment was possible.  One look, from
the doorway, sufficed.

Outside the cell of Sister Seraphine the Prioress paused, hearing words
within; then entered swiftly.  But Sister Seraphine was alone, reciting
aloud, for love of hearing her own voice.

The Prioress now moved toward the heavy door in the archway leading
into the cloisters.  It opened inwards, and had been left standing
wide, by Mary Antony.  Indeed, in summer it stood open day and night,
for coolness.

As the Prioress walked along the dimly lighted passage, she could see,
through the open door, sheets of rain driving through the cloisters.
The storm-clouds had burst, at last, and were descending in floods.

The Prioress stood in the shelter of the doorway, looking out into the
cloisters.  The only places she could not view, were the entrance to
the subterranean way, and the flight of steps leading thereto.  She
would have wished to examine these; but it seemed scarcely worth
passing into the driving rain, now sweeping through the cloister
arches.  After all, whatever possible danger lurked down those steps,
the safety of the Convent would be assured if she closed this door,
between the passage and the cloisters, and locked it.

Stepping back into the passage, she seized the heavy door and swung it
to, noting as she did so, how far too heavy it was for the feeble arms
of old Mary Antony, and deciding for the future to allot the task of
closing it to a young lay-sister, leaving to Mary Antony merely the
responsibility of turning the key in the lock.

This the Prioress was herself proceeding to do, when something impelled
her to turn her eyes to the angle of wall laid bare by the closing of
the door.

In that dark corner, motionless, with shrouded face, stood a tall
figure, garbed in the dress of the nuns of the Order of the White
Ladies of Worcester.


Perhaps the habit of silence is never of greater value than in moments
of sudden shock and horror.

One cry from the Prioress would have meant the instant opening of many
doors, and the arrival, on flying feet, of a score of frightened nuns.

Instead of screaming, the Prioress stood silent and perfectly still;
while every pulse in her body ceased beating, during one moment of
uncontrollable, cold horror.  Then, with a leap, her heart went on;
pounding so loudly, that she could hear it in the silence.  Yet she
kept command of every impulse which drove to sound or motion.

Before long her pulses quieted; her heart, beating steadily, was once
again the well-managed steed upon which her high courage could ride to
victory.

And, all the while, her eyes never left the white figure; knowing it
knew itself discovered and observed.

Her hand was still upon the key.

She turned it, and withdrew it from the lock.

A deafening crash of thunder shook the walls.  A swirl of wind and rain
beat on the door.

When the last echo of the thunder had died away, the Prioress spoke;
and that calm voice, sounding amid the storm, fell on the only ears
that heard it, like the Voice of Power on Galilee, which bid the
tempest cease, and the wild waves be still.


"Who art thou, and what doest thou here?"

The figure answered not.

"Art thou a ghostly visitor come back amongst us, from the Realm of the
Unseen?"

The figure made no sign.  "Art thou then flesh and blood, and mortal as
ourselves?"

Slowly the figure bowed its head.

"Now I adjure thee by our blessèd Lady to tell me truly.  Art thou, in
very deed a holy nun, a member of our sacred Order?  Answer me, yea or
nay?"

The figure shook its head.

The Prioress advanced a step, passed the key into her left hand and,
slipping her right beneath her scapulary, took firm grip of the dagger
at her girdle.

"Then, masquerader in our sacred dress," she said, "to me you have to
answer for double sacrilege: the wearing of these robes, and your
presence here, unbidden.  I warn you that your life has never hung by
frailer thread than now it hangs.  Your only hope of safety lies in
doing as I bid you.  Pass before me along this passage until you reach
a chamber on the right, of which the door stands open.  Enter, and
place yourself against the wall on the side farthest from the door.
There I will speak with you."

With the shuffling steps of a woman, and the bent shoulders of the very
old, the figure moved slowly forward, stepped upon the front of the
white robe, stumbled, but recovered.

The Prioress watching, laughed--a short scornful laugh, holding more of
anger than of merriment.

With an abrupt movement the figure straightened, stood at its full
height, and strode forward.  The Prioress marked the squaring of the
broad shoulders; the height, greater than her own, though she was more
than common tall; the stride, beneath the folds of the long robe; and
she knit her level brows, for well she knew with whom she had to deal.
She was called to face a desperate danger.  Single-handed, she had to
meet a subtle foe.  She asked no help from others, but she took no
needless risks.

As she passed the cell of Mary Seraphine, using her master-key, she
locked that lady in!




CHAPTER X

"I KNOW YOU FOR A MAN"

Entering her cell, the Prioress saw at once that her orders had been
obeyed.

The hooded figure stood on the far side of the chamber, leaning broad
shoulders against the wall.  Under the cape, the arms were folded; she
could see that the feet were crossed beneath the robe.  The dress was
indeed the dress of a White Lady, but the form within it was so
obviously that of a man--a big man, at bay, and inclined to be
defiant--that, despite the strange situation, despite her anger, and
her fears, the contrast between the holy habit and its hidden wearer,
forced from the Prioress an unwilling smile.

Closing the door, she drew forward a chair of dark Spanish wood, the
gift of the Lord Bishop; a chair which well betokened the dignity of
her high office.

Seating herself, she laid her left hand lightly upon the mane of one of
the carved lions which formed, on either side, the arms of the chair;
but her right hand still gripped unseen the ivory hilt; while leaning
slightly forward, with feet firmly planted, she was ready at any moment
to spring erect.

"I know you for a man," she said.

The thunder rumbled far away in the distance.

The rain still splashed against the casement, but the storm had spent
itself; the sky was brightening.  A pale slant of sunshine broke
through the parting clouds and, entering the casement, gleamed on the
jewelled cross at the breast of the Prioress, and kindled into peculiar
radiance the searching light of her clear eyes.

"I know you for a man," she said again.  "You stand there, revealed;
and surely you stand there, shamed.  By plotting and planning, by
assuming our dress, you have succeeded in forcing your undesired
presence into this sacred cloister, where dwells a little company of
women who have left the world, never to return to it again; who have
given up much in order to devote themselves to a life of continual
worship and adoration, gaining thereby a power in intercession which
brings down blessing upon those who still fight life's battles in the
world without.

"But it has meant the breaking of many a tender tie.  There are fathers
and brothers dear to them, whom the nuns would love to see again; but
they cannot do so, save, on rare occasions, in the guest-room at the
gate; and then, with the grille between.

"Saving Bishop or Priest, no foot of man may tread our cloisters; no
voice of man may be heard in these cells.

"Yet--by trick and subterfuge--you have intruded.  Methinks I scarce
should let you leave this place alive, to boast what you have done."

The Prioress paused.

The figure stood, with folded arms, immovable, leaning against the
wall.  There was a quality in this motionless silence such as the
Prioress had not connected with her idea of Mary Seraphine's "Cousin
Wilfred."

This was not a man to threaten.  Her threat came back to her, as if she
had flung it against a stone wall.  She tried another line of reasoning.

"I know you, Sir Wilfred," she said.  "And I know why you are here.
You have come to tempt away, or mayhap, if possible, to force away one
of our number who but lately took her final vows.  There was a time,
not long ago, when you might have thwarted her desire to seek and find
the best and highest.  But now you come too late.  No bride of Heaven
turns from her high estate.  Her choice is made.  She will abide by it;
and so, Sir Knight, must you."

The rain had ceased.  The storm was over.  Sunshine flooded the cell.

Once more the Prioress spoke, and her voice was gentle.

"I know the disappointment to you must be grievous.  You took great
risks; you adventured much.  How long you have plotted this intrusion,
I know not.  You have been thwarted in your evil purpose by the
faithfulness of one old woman, our aged lay-sister, Mary Antony, who
never fails to count the White Ladies as they go and as they return,
and who reported at once to me that one more had returned than went.

"Do you not see in this the Hand of God?  Will you not bow in penitence
before Him, confessing the sinfulness of the thing you had in mind to
do?"

The shrouded head was lifted higher, as if with a proud gesture of
disavowal.  At the same time, the hood slightly parting, the hand of a
man, lean and brown, gripped it close.


The Prioress looked long at that lean, brown hand.


Then she rose slowly to her feet.


"Shew me--thy--face," she said; and the tension of each word was like a
naked blade passing in and out of quivering flesh.

At sound of it the figure stood erect, took one step forward, flung
back the hood, tore open the robe and scapulary, loosing his arms from
the wide sleeves.

And--as the hood fell back--the Prioress found herself looking into a
face she had not thought to see again in life--the face of him who once
had been her lover.




CHAPTER XI

THE YEARS ROLL BACK

"Hugh!" exclaimed the Prioress.

And again, in utter bewilderment: "Hugh?"

And yet a third time, in a low whisper of horror, passing her left hand
across her eyes, as if to clear from her outer vision some nightmare of
the inner mind: "Hugh!"

The silent Knight still made no answer; but he flung aside the clinging
robes, stepped from out them, and strode forward, both arms
outstretched.

"Back!" cried the Prioress.  But her hand had left the hilt of the
dagger.  "Come no nearer," she commanded.

Then she sank into her chair, spreading her trembling hands upon the
carven manes of the lions.

The Knight, still silent, folded his arms across his breast.

Thus for a space they gazed on one another--these two, who had parted,
eight years before, with clinging lips and straining arms, a deep, pure
passion of love surging within them; a union of heart, made closer by
the wrench of outward separation.

The Knight looked at the lips of the noble woman before him; and as he
looked those firm lips quivered, trembled, parted----

Then--the years rolled back----

      *      *      *      *      *      *

It was moonlight on the battlements.  The horses champed in the
courtyard below.  They two had climbed to the topmost turret, that they
might part as near the stars as possible, and that, unseen by others,
she might watch him ride away.

How radiant she looked, in her robe of sapphire velvet, jewels at her
breast and girdle, a mantle of ermine hanging from her shoulders.  But
brighter than any jewels were the eyes full of love and tears; and
softer than softest velvet, the beautiful hair which, covered her, as
with a golden veil.  Standing with his arms around her, it flowed over
his hands.  Silent he stood, looking deep into her eyes.

Below they could hear Martin Goodfellow calling to the men-at-arms.

Her lips being free, she spoke.

"Thou wilt come back to me, Hugh," she said.  "The Saracens will not
slay thee, will not wound thee, will not touch thee.  My love will ever
be around thee, as a silver shield."

She flung her strong young arms about him, long and supple, enfolding
him closely, even as his enfolded her.

He filled his hands with her soft hair, straining her closer.

"I would I left thee wife, not maid.  Could I have wed thee first, I
would go with a lighter heart."

"Wife or maid," she answered, her face lifted to his, "I am all thine
own.  Go with a light heart, dear man of mine, for it makes no
difference.  Maid or wife, I am thine, and none other's, forever."

"Let those be the last words I hear thee say," he murmured, as his lips
sought hers.

So, a little later, standing above him on the turret steps, she bent
and clasped her hands about his head, pushing her fingers into the
thickness of his hair.  Then: "Maid or wife," she said, and her voice
now steady, was deep and tender; "Maid or wife, God knows, I am all
thine own."  Then she caught his face to her breast.  "Thine and none
other's, forever," she said; and he felt her bosom heave with one deep
sob.

Then turning quickly he ran down the winding stair, reached the
courtyard, mounted, and rode out through the gates of Castle Norelle,
and into the fir wood; and so down south to follow the King, who
already had started on the great Crusade.

And, as he rode, in moonlight or in shadow, always he saw the sweet
lips that trembled, always he felt the soft heave of that sob, and the
low voice so tender, said: "Thine and none other's, forever."

      *      *      *      *      *      *

And now----

The Prioress sat in her chair of state.

Each moment her face grew calmer and more stern.

The Knight let his eyes dwell on the fingers which once crept so
tenderly into his hair.

She hid them beneath her scapulary, as if his gaze scorched them.

He looked at the bosom against which his head had been pressed.

A jewelled cross gleamed, there where his face had laid hidden.

Then the Knight lifted his eyes again to that stern, cold face.  Yet
still he kept silence.

At length the Prioress spoke.

"So it is you," she said.

"Yes," said the Knight, "it is I."

Wroth with her own poor heart because it thrilled at his voice, the
Prioress spoke with anger.

"How did you dare to force your way into this sacred cloister?"

The Knight smiled.  "I have yet to find the thing I dare not do."

"Why are you not with your wife?" demanded the Prioress; and her tone
was terrible.

"I am with my wife," replied the Knight.  "The only wife I have ever
wanted, the only woman I shall ever wed, is here."

"Coward!" cried the Prioress, white with anger.  "Traitor!"  She leaned
forward, clenching her hands upon the lions' heads.  "Liar!  You wedded
your cousin, Alfrida, less than one year after you went from me."

"Cease to be angry," said the Knight.  "Thine anger affrights me not,
yet it hurts thyself.  Listen, mine own belovèd, and I will tell thee
the cruel, and yet blessèd, truth.

"Seven months after I left thee, a messenger reached our camp, bearing
letters from England; no word for me from thee; but a long missive from
thy half-sister Eleanor, breaking to me the news that, being weary of
my absence, and somewhat over-persuaded, thou hadst wedded Humphry;
Earl of Carnforth.

"It was no news to me, that Humphry sought to win thee; but, that thou
hadst let thyself be won away from thy vow to me, was hell's own
tidings.

"In my first rage of grief I would have speech with none.  But,
by-and-by, I sought the messenger, and asked him casually of things at
home.  He told me he had seen thy splendid nuptials with the lord of
Carnforth, had been present at the marriage, and joined in the after
revels and festivities.  He said thou didst make a lovely bride, but
somewhat sad, as if thy mind strayed elsewhere.  The fellow was a kind
of lawyer's clerk, but lean, and out at elbow.

"Then I sought 'Frida, my cousin.  She too had had a letter, giving the
news.  She told me she long had feared this thing for me, knowing the
heart of Humphry to be set on winning thee, and that Eleanor approved
his suit, and having already heard that of late thou hadst inclined to
smile on him.  She begged me to do nothing rash or hasty.

"'What good were it,' she said, 'to beg the King for leave to hasten
home?  If you kill Humphry, Hugh, you do but make a widow of the woman
you have loved; nor could you wed the widow of a man yourself had
slain.  If Humphry kills you--well, a valiant arm is lost to the Holy
Cause, and other hearts, more faithful than hers, may come nigh to
breaking.  Stay here, and play the man.'

"So, by the messenger, I sent thee back a letter, asking thee to write
me word how it was that thou, being my betrothed, hadst come to do this
thing; and whether Humphry was good to thee, and making thy life
pleasant.  To Humphry I sent a letter saying that, thy love being round
him as a silver shield, I would not slay him, wound him, or touch him!
But--if he used thee ill, or gave thee any grief or sorrow, then would
I come, forthwith, and send him straight to hell.

"These letters, with others from the camp, went back to England by that
clerkly messenger.  No answers were returned to mine.

"Meanwhile I went, with my despair, out to the battlefield.

"No tender shield was round me any more.  I fought, like a mad wild
beast.  So often was I wounded, that they dubbed me 'The Knight of the
Bloody Vest.'

"At last they brought me back to camp, delirious and dying.  My cousin
'Frida, there biding her time, nursed me back to life, and sought to
win for herself (I shame to say it) the love which thou hadst flouted.
I need not tell thee, my cousin 'Frida failed.  The Queen herself as
good as bid me wed her favourite Lady.  The Queen herself had to
discover that she could command an English soldier's life, but not his
love.

"Back in the field again, I found myself one day, cut off, surrounded,
hewn down, taken prisoner; but by a generous foe.

"Thereafter followed years of much adventure; escapes, far distant
wanderings, strange company.  Many months I spent in a mountain
fastness with a wise Hebrew Rabbi, who taught me his sacred Scriptures;
going back to the beginning of all things, before the world was; yet
shrewd in judgment of the present, and throwing a weird light forward
upon the future.  A strange man; wise, as are all of that Chosen Race;
and a faithful friend.  He did much to heal my hurt and woo me back to
sanity.

"Later, more than a year with a band of holy monks in a desert
monastery, high among the rocks; good Fathers who believed in Greek and
Latin as surest of all balsams for a wounded spirit, and who made me to
become deeply learned in Apostolic writings, and in the teachings of
the Church.  But, for all their best endeavours, I could not feel
called to the perpetual calm of the Cloister.  We are a line of
fighters and hunters, men to whom pride of race and love of hearth and
home, are primal instincts.

"Thus, after many further wanderings and much varying adventure, having
by a strange chance heard news of the death of my father, and that my
mother mourned.  In solitude, the opening of this year found me landed
in England--I who, by most, had long been given up for dead; though
Martin Goodfellow, failing to find trace of me in Palestine, had gone
back to Cumberland, and staunchly maintained his belief that I lived, a
captive, and should some day make my escape, and return.

"I passed with all speed to our Castle on the moors, knowing a mother's
heart waited here, for mothers never cease to watch and hope.  And,
sure enough, as I rode up, the great doors flew wide; the house waited
its master; the mother was on the threshold to greet her son.  Aye!  It
was good to be at home once more--even in the land where _my_ woman was
bearing children to another man.

"We spent a few happy days, I and my mother, together.  Then--the joy
of hope fulfilled being sometimes a swifter harbinger to another world
than the heaviest load of sorrow--she passed, without pain or sickness,
smiling, in her sleep; she passed--leaving my home desolate indeed.

"Not having known of my betrothal to thee, because of the old feud
between our families, and my reluctance to cross her wish that I should
wed Alfrida, thy name was not spoken between us; but I learned from her
that my cousin 'Frida lay dying at her manor, nigh to Chester, of some
lingering disease contracted in eastern lands."


"With the first stirrings of Spring in forest and pasture, I felt moved
to ride south to the Court, and report my return to the King; yet
waited, strangely loath to go abroad where any turn of the road might
bring me face to face with Humphry.  I doubted, should we meet, if I
could pass, without slaying him, the man who had stolen my betrothed
from me.  So I stayed in my own domain, bringing things into order,
working in the armoury, and striving by hard exercise to throttle the
grim demon of despair.

"April brought a burst of early summer; and, on the first day of May, I
set off for Windsor.

"Passing through Carnforth on my way, I found the town keeping high
holiday.  I asked the reason, and was told of a Tourney now in progress
in the neighbourhood, to which the Earl had that morning ridden in
state, accompanied by his Countess, who indeed was chosen Queen of
Beauty, and was to sit enthroned, attended by her little daughter, two
tiny sons acting as pages.

"A sudden mad desire came on me, to look upon thy face again; to see
thee with the man who stole thee from me; with the children, who should
have been mine own.

"Ten minutes later, I rode on to the field.  Pushing in amid the gay
crowd, I seemed almost at once to find myself right in front of the
throne.

"I saw the Queen of Beauty, in cloth of gold.  I saw the little maiden
and the pages in attendance.  I saw Humphry, proud husband and father,
beside them.  All this I saw, which I had come to see.  But--the face
of Humphry's Countess was not thy face!  In that moment I knew that,
for seven long years, I had been fooled!

"I started on a frenzied quest after the truth, and news of thee.

"Thy sister Eleanor had died the year before.  To thy beautiful castle
and lands, so near mine own, Eleanor's son had succeeded, and ruled
there in thy stead.  He being at Court just then, I saw him not, nor
could I hear direct news of thee, though rumour said a convent.

"Then I remembered my cousin, Alfrida, lying sick at her manor in
Chester.  To her I went; and, walking in unannounced--I, whom she had
long thought dead--I forced the truth from her.  The whole plot stood
revealed.  She and Eleanor had hatched it between them.  Eleanor
desiring thy lands for herself and her boy, and knowing children of
thine would put hers out of succession; Alfrida--it shames me to say
it--desiring for herself, thy lover.

"The messenger who brought the letters was bribed to give details of
thy supposed marriage.  On his return to England, my letters to thee
and to Humphry he handed to Eleanor; also a lying letter from 'Frida,
telling of her marriage with me, with the Queen's consent and approval,
and asking Eleanor to break the news to thee.  The messenger then
mingled with thy household, describing my nuptials in detail, as, when
abroad, he had done thine.  Hearing of this, my poor Love did even as I
had done, sent for him, questioned him, heard the full tale he had to
tell, and saw, alas! no reason to misdoubt him.

"By the way, my cousin 'Frida knew where to lay her hand upon that
clerkly fellow.  Therefore we sent for him.  He came in haste to see
the Lady Alfrida, from whom, during all the years, he had extorted
endless hush-money.

"I and my men awaited him.

"He had fattened on his hush-money!  He was no longer lean and out at
elbow.

"He screeched at sight of me, thinking me risen from the dead.

"He screeched still louder when he saw the noose, flung over a strong
bough.

"We left him hanging, when we rode away.  That Judas kind will do the
darkest deeds for greed of gain.  The first of the tribe himself shewed
the way by which it was most fitting to speed them from a world into
which it had been good for them never to have been born.

"From Alfrida I learned that, as Eleanor had foreseen, thy grief at my
perfidy drove thee to the Cloister.  Also that thy Convent was near
Worcester.

"To Worcester I came, and made myself known to the Lord Bishop, with
whom I supped; and finding him most pleasant to talk with, and ready to
understand, deemed it best, in perfect frankness, to tell him the whole
matter; being careful not to mention thy name, nor to give any clue to
thy person.

"Through chance remarks let fall by the Bishop while giving me the
history of the Order, I learned that already thou wert Prioress of the
White Ladies.  'The youngest Prioress in the kingdom,' said the Bishop,
'yet none could be wiser or better fitted to hold high authority.'
Little did he dream that any mention of thee was as water to the
parched desert; yet he talked on, for love of speaking of thee, while I
sat praying he might tell me more; yet barely answering yea or nay,
seeming to be absorbed in mine own melancholy thoughts.

"From the Bishop I learned that the Order was a strictly close one, and
that no man could, on any pretext whatsoever, gain speech alone with
one of the White Ladies.

"But I also heard of the underground way leading from the Cathedral to
the Convent, and of the daily walk to and from Vespers.

"I went to the crypt, and saw the doorway through which the White
Ladies pass.  Standing unseen amid the many pillars, I daily watched
the long line of silent figures, noted that they all walked veiled,
with faces hidden, keeping a measured distance apart.  Also that
several were above usual height.  Then I conceived the plan of wearing
the outer dress, and of stepping in amongst those veiled figures just
at the foot of the winding stair in the wall, leading down from the
clerestory to the crypt.  I marked that the nun descending, could not
keep in view the nun in front who had just stepped forth into the
crypt; while she, moving forward, would not perceive it if, slipping
from behind a pillar, another white figure silently joined the
procession behind her.  Once within the Convent, I trusted to our Lady
to help me to speech alone with thee; and our blessèd Lady hath not
failed me.

"Now I have told thee all."

With that the Knight left speaking; and, after the long steady
recitation, the ceasing of his voice caused a silence which, seemed, to
hold the very air suspended.

Not once had the Prioress made interruption.  She had sat immovable,
her eyes upon his face, her hands gripping the arms of her chair.  Long
before the tale was finished her sad eyes had overflowed, the tears
raining down her cheeks, and falling upon the cross at her breast.

When he had told all, when the deep, manly voice--now resolute, now
eager, now vibrant with fierce indignation, yet tender always when
speaking of her--at last fell silent, the Prioress fought with her
emotion, and mastered it; then, so soon as she could safely trust her
voice, she spoke.




CHAPTER XII

ALAS, THE PITY OF IT!

At length the Prioress spoke.

"Alas," she said, "the pity of it!  Ah, the cruel, _cruel_ pity of it!"

Her voice, so sweet and tender, yet so hopeless in the unquestioning
finality of its regret, struck cold upon the heart of the Knight.

"But, my belovèd, I have found thee," he said, and dropping upon one
knee at her feet, he put out his hands to cover both hers.  But the
Prioress was too quick for him.  She hid her hands beneath her
scapulary.  The Knight's brown fingers closed on the lions' heads.

"Touch me not," said the Prioress.

The Knight flushed, darkly.

"You are mine," he said.  "Mine to have and to keep.  During these
wretched years we have schooled ourselves each to think of the other as
wedded.  Now we know that neither has been faithless.  I have found
thee, my belovèd, and I will not let thee go."

"Hugh," said the Prioress, "I _am_ wedded.  You come too late.  Saw you
not the sacred ring upon my hand?  Know you not that every nun is the
bride of Christ?"

"You are mine!" said the Knight, fiercely; and he laid his great hand
upon her knee.

From beneath her scapulary, the Prioress drew the dagger.

"Before I went to the cloister door," she said, "I took this from its
hiding-place, and put it in my girdle.  I guessed I had a man to deal
with; though, Heaven knows, I dreamed not it was thou!  But I tell
thee, Hugh, if thou, or any man, attempt to lay defiling touch upon any
nun in this Priory--myself, or another--I strike, and I strike home.
This blade will be driven up to the hilt in the offender's heart."

The Knight rose to his feet, stepped to the window and leaned, with
folded arms, against the wall.

"Put back thy weapon," he said, sternly, "into its hiding-place.  No
other man is here; yet, should another come, my sword would well
suffice to guard thine honour, and the honour of thy nuns."

She looked at his dark face, scornful in its pain; then went at once,
obedient, to the secret panel.

"Yes, Hugh," she said.  "That much of trust indeed I owe thy love."

As she placed the dagger in the wall and closed the panel, something
fell from her, intangible, yet real.

For so long, she had had to command.  Bowing, kneeling, hurrying women
flew to do her behests.  Each vied with the others to magnify her
Office.  Often, she felt lonely by reason of her dignity.

And now--a man's dark face frowned on her in scornful anger; a man's
stern voice flung back her elaborate threat with a short command, which
disarmed her, yet which she obeyed.  Moreover, she found it strangely
sweet to obey.  Behind the sternness, behind the scornful anger, there
throbbed a great love.  In that love she trusted; but with that love
she had to deal, putting it from her with a finality which should be
beyond question.

Yet the "Prioress" fell from her, as she closed the panel.  It was the
Woman and the Saint who moved over to the window and stood beside the
Knight, in the radiance of a golden sunset after storm.

There was about her, as she spoke, a wistful humbleness; and a patient
sadness, infinitely touching.

"Sir Hugh," she said, "my dear Knight, whom I ever found brave and
tender, and whom I now know to have been always loyal and true--there
is no need that I should add a word to your recital.  The facts you
wrung from Alfrida--God grant forgiveness to that tormented heart--are
all true.  Believing the messenger, not dreaming of doubting Eleanor,
my one thought was to hide from the world my broken heart, my shattered
pride.  I hastened to offer to God the love and the life which had been
slighted by man.  I confess this has since seemed to me but a poor
second-best to have brought to Him, Who indeed should have our very
best.  But, daily kneeling at His Feet, I said: 'A broken and a
contrite heart, Lord, Thou wilt not despise.'  My heart was 'broken,'
when I brought it here.  It has been 'contrite' since.  And well I
know, although so far from worthy, it has not been despised."

She lifted her eyes to the golden glory behind the battlements of
purple cloud.

"Our blessèd Lady interceded," she said, simply; "she, who understands
a woman's heart."

The Knight was breathing hard.  The folded arms rose and fell, with the
heaving of his chest.  But he kept his lips firm shut; though praying,
all the while, that our Lady might have, also, some understanding of
the heart of a man!

"I think it right that you should know, dear Hugh," went on the sad
voice, gently; "that, at first, I suffered greatly.  I spent long
agonizing nights, kneeling before our Lady's shrine, imploring strength
to conquer the love and the longing which had become sin."

A stifled groan broke from the Knight.

The golden light shone in her steadfast eyes, and played about her
noble brow.

"And strength was given," she said, very low.

"Mora!" cried the Knight--She started.  It was so long since she had
heard her own name--"You prayed for strength to conquer, when you
thought it sin; just as I rode out to meet the foe, to fight and slay,
and afterward wrestled with unknown tongues, doing all those things
which were hardest, while striving to quench my love for you.  But when
I knew that no other man had right to you or ever had had right, why
then I found that nothing had slain my love, nor ever could.  And Mora,
now you know that I am free, is your love dead?"

She clasped her hands over the cross at her breast.  His voice held a
deep passion of appeal; yet he strove, loyally, to keep it calm.

"Listen, Hugh," she said.  "If, thinking me faithless, you had turned
for consolation to another; if, though you brought her but your second
best, you yet had won and wed her; now, finding after all that I had
not wedded Humphry, would you leave your bride, and try to wake again
your love for me?"

"You seek to place me," he said, "in straits in which, by mine own act,
I shall never be.  Loving you as I love you, I could wed no other while
you live."

She paled, but persisted.

"But, _if_, Hugh?  _If_?"

"Then, no," he said.  "I should not leave one I had wed.  But----"

"Hugh," she said, "thinking you faithless, I took the holy vows which
wedded me to Heaven.  How can I leave my heavenly Bridegroom, for love
of any man upon this earth?"

"Not 'any man,'" he answered; "but your betrothed, returned to claim
you; the man to whom you said as parting words: 'Maid or wife, I am all
thine own; thine and none other's forever.'  Ah, that brings the warm
blood to thy cheek!  Oh, my Heart's Life, if it was true then, it is
true still!  God is not a man that he should lie, or rob another of his
bride.  If I had wed another woman, I should have done that thing,
honestly believing thee the wife of another man.  But, all these years,
while thou and I were both deceived, He, Who knoweth all, has known the
truth.  He knew thee betrothed to me.  He heard thee say, upon the
battlements, when last we stood together: 'God knows, I am all thine
own.'  He knew how, when I thought I had lost thee, I yet lived
faithful to the pure memory of our love.  The day thy vows were made,
He knew that I was free, and thou, therefore, still pledged to me.
Shall a man rob God?  Ay, he may.  But shall God rob a man?  Nay, then,
never!"

She trembled, wavered; then fled to the shrine of the Virgin, kneeling
with hands outstretched.

"Holy Mother of God," she sobbed, "teach him that I dare not do this
thing!  Shew him that I cannot break my vows.  Help him to understand
that I would not, if I could."

He followed, and kneeled beside her; his proud head bent; his voice
breaking with emotion.

"Blessèd Virgin," he said.  "Thou who didst dwell in the earthly home
at Nazareth, help this woman of mine to understand, that if she break
her troth to me, holding herself from me, now when I am come to claim
her, she sends me forth to an empty life, to a hearth beside which no
woman will sit, to a home forever desolate."

Together they knelt, before the tender image of Mother and Child;
together, yet apart; he, loyally mindful not so much as to brush
against a fold of her veil.

The dark face, and the fair, were lifted, side by side, as they knelt
before the Madonna.  For a while so motionless they kneeled, they might
have been finely-modelled figures; he, bronze; she, marble.

Then, with a sudden movement, she put out her right hand, and caught
his left.

Firmly his fingers closed over hers; but he drew no nearer.

Yet as they knelt thus with clasped hands, his pulsing life seemed to
flow through her, undoing, in one wild, sweet moment, the work of years
of fast and vigil.

"Ah, Hugh," she cried, suddenly, "spare me!  Spare me!  Tempt me not!"

Loosing her hand from his, she clasped both upon her breast.

The Knight rose, and stood beside her.

"Mora," he said, and his voice held a new tone, a tone of sadness and
solemnity; "far be it from me to tempt you.  I will plead with you but
once again, in presence of our Lady and of the Holy Child; and, having
so done, I will say no more.

"I ask you to leave this place, which you would never have entered had
you known your lover was yours, and needing you.  I ask you to keep
your plighted word to me, and to become my wife.  If you refuse, I go,
returning not again.  I leave you here, to kneel in peace, by night or
day, before the shrine of the Madonna.  But--I bid you to remember, day
and night, that because of this which you have done, there can be no
Madonna in my home.  No woman will ever sit beside my hearth, holding a
little child upon her knees.

"You leave to me the crucifix--heart broken, love betrayed; feet and
hands nailed to the wood of cruel circumstance; side pierced by spear
of treachery--lonely, forsaken.  But you take from me all the best,
both in life and in religion; all that tells of love, of joy, of hope
for the years to come.

"Oh, my belovèd, weigh it well!  There are so many, with a true
vocation, serving Heaven in Convent and in Cloister.  There is but one
woman in the whole world for me.  In the sight of Heaven, nothing
divides us.  Convent walls now stand between--but they were built by
man, not God.  Vows of celibacy were not meant to sunder loving hearts.
Mora? . . .  Come!"


The Prioress rose and faced him.

"I cannot come," she said.  "That which I have taught to others, I must
myself perform.  Hugh, I am dead to the world; and if I be dead to the
world, how can I live to you?  Had I, in very deed, died and been
entombed, you would not have gone down into the vaults and forced my
resting-place, that you might look upon my face, clasp my cold hand,
and pour into deaf ears a tale of love.  Yet that is what, by trick and
artifice, you now have done.  You come to a dead woman, saying; 'Love
me, and be my wife.'  She must, perforce, make answer: 'How shall I,
who am dead to the world, live any longer therein?'  Take a wife from
among the Living, Hugh.  Come not to seek a bride among the Dead."

"Mother of God!" exclaimed the Knight, "is this religion?"

He turned to the window, then to the door.  "How can I go from here?"

The stifled horror in his voice chilled the very soul of the woman to
whom he spoke.  She had, indeed at last made him to understand.

"I must get you hence unseen," she said.  "I dare not pass you out by
the Convent gate.  I fear me, you must go back the way you came; nor
can you go alone.  We hold the key to unlock the door leading from our
passage into the Cathedral crypt.  I will now send all the nuns to the
Refectory.  Then I myself must take you to the crypt."

"Can I not walk alone," asked the Knight, brusquely; "returning you the
key by messenger?"

"Nay," said the Prioress, "I dare run no risks.  So quickly rumours are
afloat.  To-morrow, this strange hour must be a dream; and you and I
alone, the dreamers.  Now, while I go and make safe the way, put you on
again the robe and hood.  When I return and beckon, follow silently."

The Prioress passed out, closing the door behind her.




CHAPTER XIII

"SEND HER TO ME!"

The Prioress stood for a moment outside the closed door.  The peaceful
silence of the passage helped her to the outward calm which must be
hers before she could bring herself to face her nuns.

Moving slowly to the farther end, she unlocked the cell of Sister Mary
Seraphine, feeling a shamed humility that she should have made so sure
she had to deal with "Wilfred," and have thought such scorn of him and
Seraphine.  Alas!  The wrong deeds of those they love, oft humble the
purest, noblest spirits into the soiling dust.

Next, the Prioress herself rang the Refectory bell.

The hour for the evening meal was long passed; the nuns hastened out,
readily.

As they trooped toward the stairs leading down to the Refectory, they
saw their Prioress, very pale, very erect, standing with her back to
the door of her chamber.

Each nun made a genuflexion as she passed; and to each, the Prioress
slightly inclined her head.

To Sister Mary Rebecca, who kneeled at once, she spoke: "I come not to
the meal this evening.  In the absence of Mother Sub-Prioress, you will
take my place."

"Yes, Reverend Mother," said Sister Mary Rebecca, meekly, and kissed
the hem of the robe of the Prioress; then rising, hastened on, charmed
to have a position of authority, however temporary.

When all had passed, the Prioress went into the cloisters, walked round
them; looked over into the garden, observing every possible place from
which prying eyes might have sight of the way from the passage to the
crypt entrance.  But the garden, already full of purple shadows, was
left to the circling swifts.  The robin sang an evening song from the
bough, of the pieman's tree.

The Prioress returned along the passage, looking into every cell.  Each
door stood open wide; each cell was empty.  The sick nuns were on a
further passage, round the corner, beyond the Refectory stairs.  Yet
she passed along this also, making sure that the door of each occupied
cell was shut.

Standing motionless at the top of the Refectory steps, she could hear
the distant clatter of platters, the shuffling feet of the lay-sisters
as they carried the dishes to and from the kitchens; and, above it all,
the monotonous voice of Sister Mary Rebecca reading aloud to the nuns
while they supped.

Then the Prioress took down one of the crypt lanterns and lighted it.

      *      *      *      *      *      *

Meanwhile the Knight, left alone, stood for a few moments, as if
stunned.

He had played for a big stake and lost; yet he felt more unnerved by
the unexpected finality of his own acquiescence in defeat, than by the
firm refusal which had brought that defeat about.

It seemed to him, as he now stood alone, that suddenly he had realised
the extraordinary detachment wrought by years of cloistered life.
Aflame with love and longing he had come, seeking the Living among the
Dead.  It would have been less bitter to have knelt beside her tomb,
knowing the heart forever still had, to the last, beat true with love
for him; knowing the dead arms, lying cold and stiff, had he come
sooner, would have been flung around him; knowing the lips, now silent
in death, living, would have called to him in tenderest greeting.

But this cold travesty of the radiant woman he had left, said: "Touch
me not," and bade him seek a wife elsewhere; he, who had remained
faithful to her, even when he had thought her faithless.

And yet, cold though she was, in her saintly aloofness, she was still
the woman he loved.  Moreover she still had the noble carriage, the
rich womanly beauty, the look of vital, physical vigour, which marked
her out as meant by Nature to be the mother of brave sons and fair
daughters.  Yet he must leave her--to this!

He looked round the room, noted the low archway leading to the sleeping
chamber, took a step toward it, then fell back as from a sanctuary;
marked the great table, covered with missals, parchments, and vellum.
It might well have been the cell of a learned monk, rather than the
chamber of the woman he loved.  His eye, travelling round, fell upon
the Madonna and Child.

In the pure evening light there was a strangely arresting quality about
the marble group; something infinitely human in the brooding tenderness
of the Mother, as she bent over the smiling Babe.  It spoke of home,
rather than of the cloister.  It struck a chord in the heart of the
Knight, a chord which rang clear and true, above the jangle of
disputation and bitterness.

He put out his hand and touched the little foot of the Holy Babe.

"Mother of God," he said aloud, "send her to me!  Take pity on a hungry
heart, a lonely home, a desolate hearth.  Send her to me!"

Then he lifted from the floor the white robe and hood, and drew them on.




CHAPTER XIV

FAREWELL--HERE, AND NOW

When the Prioress, a lighted lantern in her hand, opened the door of
her chamber, a tall figure in the dress of the White Ladies of
Worcester stood motionless against the wall, facing the door.

"Come!" she whispered, beckoning; and, noiselessly, it stood beside
her.  Then she closed the door and, using her master-key, locked it
behind her.

Silently the two white figures passed along the passage, through the
cloister, and down the flight of steps into the Convent crypt.  The
Prioress unlocked the door and stooping they passed under the arch, and
entered the subterranean way.

Placing the lantern on the ground, the Prioress drew out the key,
closed the door, and locked it on the inside.

She turned, and lifting the lantern, saw that the Knight had rid
himself of his disguise, and now stood before her, very straight and
tall, just within the circle of light cast by her lantern.

With the closing and locking of the door a strange sense came over
them, as of standing together in a third world--neither his nor
hers--tomblike in its complete isolation and darkness; heavy with a
smell of earth and damp stones; the slightest sound reverberating in
hollow exaggeration; yet, in itself, silent as the grave.

This tomblike quality in their surroundings seemed to make their own
vitality stronger and more palpitating.

The seconds of silence, after the grating of the key in the lock
ceased, seemed hours.

Then the Knight spoke.

"Give me the lantern," he said.

She met his eyes.  Again the dignity of her Office slipped from her.
Again it was sweet to obey.

He held the lantern so that its light illumined her face and his.

"Mora," he said, "it is long since thou and I last walked together over
the sunny fields, amid buttercups and cowslips, and the sweet-smelling
clover.  To-night we walk beneath the fields instead of through them.
We are under the grass, my sweet.  I seem to stand beside thee in the
grave.  And truly my hopes lie slain; the promise of our love is dead,
and shall soon be buried.  Yet thou and I still live, and now must walk
together side by side, the sad ghosts of our former selves.

"So now I ask thee, Mora, for the sake of those past walks among the
flowers, to lay thy hand within my arm and walk with me in gentle
fellowship, here in this place of gloom and darkness, as, long ago, we
walked among the flowers."

His dark eyes searched her face.  An almost youthful eagerness vibrated
in his voice.

She hesitated, lifting her eyes to his.  Then slowly moved toward him
and laid her hand within his arm.

Then, side by side, they paced on through the darkness; he, in his
right hand, holding the lantern, swinging low, to light their feet;
she, leaning on his left arm, keeping slow pace with him.

Over their heads, in the meadows, walked lovers, arm in arm; young men
and maidens out in the gathering twilight.  All nature, refreshed,
poured forth a fragrant sweetness.  But the rose, with its dewy petals,
seemed to the youth less sweet than the lips of the maid.  This, he
shyly ventured to tell her; whereupon, as she bent to its fragrance,
her cheeks reflected the crimson of those delicate folds.

So walked and talked young lovers in the Worcester meadows; little
dreaming that, beneath their happy feet, the Knight and the Prioress
paced slowly, side by side, through the darkness.

No word passed between them.  With, her hand upon his arm, her face so
near his shoulder, his arm pressing her hand closer and closer against
his heart, silence said more than speech.  And in silence they walked.

They passed beneath the city wall, under the Foregate.

The Sheriff rode home to supper, well pleased with a stroke of business
accomplished in a house in which he had chanced to shelter during the
storm.

The good people of Worcester bought and sold in the market.  Men whose
day's work was over, hastened to reach the rest and comfort of wife and
home.  Crowds jostled gaily through the streets, little dreaming that
beneath their hurrying, busy feet, the Knight and the Prioress paced
slowly, side by side, through the darkness.

Had the Knight spoken, her mind would have been up in arms to resist
him.  But, because he walked in silence, her heart had leisure to
remember; and, remembering, it grew sorely tender.

At length they reached the doorway leading into the Cathedral crypt.

The Prioress carried the key in her left hand.  Freeing her right from
the grip of his arm, she slipped the key noiselessly into the lock;
but, leaving it there unturned, she paused, and faced the Knight.

"Hugh," she said, "I beg you, for my sake and for the sake of all whose
fair fame is under my care, to pass through quickly into the crypt, and
to go from thence, if possible, unseen, or in such manner as shall
prevent any suspicion that you come from out this hidden way.  Tales of
wrong are told so readily, and so quickly grow."

"I will observe the utmost caution," said the Knight.

"Hugh," she said, "I grieve to have had, perforce, to disappoint you."
The brave voice shook.  "This is our final farewell.  Do you forgive
me, Hugh?  Will you think kindly, if you ever think on me?"

The Knight held the lantern so that its rays illumined both her face
and his.

"Mora," he said, "I cannot as yet take thine answer as final.  I will
return no more, nor try to speak with thee again.  But five days
longer, I shall wait.  I shall have plans made with the utmost care, to
bear thee, in safety and unseen, from the Cathedral.  I know the doors
are watched, and that all who pass in and out are noted and observed.
But, if thou wilt but come to me, belovèd, trust me to know how to
guard mine own. . . .  Nay, speak not!  Hear me out.

"Daily, after Vespers, I shall stand hidden among the pillars, close to
the winding stair.  One step aside--only one step--and my arm will be
around thee.  A new life of love and home will lie before us.  I shall
take thee, safely concealed, to the hostel where I and my men now
lodge.  There, horses will stand ready, and we shall ride at once to
Warwick.  At Warwick we shall find a priest--one in high favour, both
in Church and State--who knows all, and is prepared to wed us without
delay.  After which, by easy stages, my wife, I shall take thee home."

He swung the lantern high.  She saw the lovelight and the triumph, in
his eyes.  "I shall take thee home!" he said.

She stepped back a pace, lifting both hands toward him, palms outward,
and stood thus gazing, with eyes full of sorrow.

"My poor Hugh," she whispered; "it is useless to wait.  I shall not
come."

"Yet five days," said the Knight, "I shall tarry in Worcester.  Each
day, after Vespers, I shall be here."

"Go to-day, dear Hugh.  Ride to Warwick and tell thy priest, that which
indeed he should know without the telling: that a nun does not break
her vows.  This is our final farewell, Hugh.  Thou hadst best believe
it, and go."

"Our last farewell?" he said.

"Our last."

"Here and now?"

"Here and now, dear Hugh."

Looking into that calm face, so lovely in its sadness, he saw that she
meant it.

Of a sudden he knew he had lost her; he knew life's way stretched
lonely before him, evermore.

"Yes," he said, "yes.  It is indeed farewell--here and now--forever."

The dull despair in the voice which, but a few moments before, had
vibrated with love and hope, wrung her heart.

She still held her hands before her, as if to ward him off.

"Ah, Hugh," she cried, sharply, "be merciful, and go!  Spare me, and go
quickly."

The Knight heard in her voice a tone it had not hitherto held.  But he
loved her loyally; therefore he kept his own anguish under strong
control.

Placing the lantern on the ground, he knelt on one knee before her.

"Farewell, my Love," he said.  "Our Lady comfort thee; and may Heaven
forgive me, for that I have disturbed thy peace."

With which he lifted the hem of her robe, and pressed his lips upon it.

Thus he knelt, for a space, his dark head bent.

Slowly, slowly, the Prioress let drop her hands until, lightly as the
fall of autumn leaves,--sad autumn leaves--they rested upon his head,
in blessing and farewell.

But feeling his hair beneath her hands, she could not keep from softly
smoothing it, nor from passing her fingers gently in and out of its
crisp thickness.

Then her heart stood still, for of a sudden, in the silence, she heard
a shuddering sob.

With a cry, she bent and gathered him to her, holding his head first
against her knees, then stooping lower to clasp it to her breast; then
as his strong arms were flung around her, she loosed his head, and, as
he rose to his feet, slipped her arms about his neck, and surrendered
to his embrace.

His lips sought hers, and at once she yielded them.  His strong hands
held her, and she, feeling the force of their constraint, did but clasp
him closer.

Long they stood thus.  In that embrace a life-time of pain passed from
them, a life-time of bliss was born, and came with a rush to maturity,
bringing with it a sense of utter completeness.  A world of sweetest
trust and certainty filled them; a joy so perfect, that the lonely
vista of future years seemed, in that moment, to matter not at all.

All about them was darkness, silence as of the tomb; the heavy smell of
earth; the dank chill of the grave.

Yet theirs was life more abundant; theirs, joy undreamed of; theirs,
love beyond all imagining, while those moments lasted.

Then----

The hands about his neck loosened, unclasped, fell gently away.

He set free her lips, and they took their liberty.

He unlocked his arms, and stepping back she stood erect, like a fair
white lily, needing no prop nor stay.

So they stood for a space, looking upon one another in silence.  This
thing which had happened, was too wonderful for speech.

Then the Prioress turned the key in the lock.

The heavy door swung open.

A dim, grey light, like a pearly dawn at sea, came downwards from the
crypt.

Without a word the Knight, bending his head, passed under the archway,
mounted the steps, and was lost to view among the many pillars.

She closed the door, locked it, and withdrawing the key, stood alone
where they had stood together.

Then, sinking to the ground, she laid her face in the dust, there where
his feet had been.


It was farewell, here and now; farewell forever.

      *      *      *      *      *      *

After a while the Prioress rose, took up the lantern, and started upon
her lonely journey, back to the cloister door.




CHAPTER XV

"SHARPEN THE WITS OF MARY ANTONY"

When the Prioress started upon her pilgrimage to the Cathedral with the
Knight, she locked the door of her chamber, knowing that thus her
absence would remain undiscovered; for if any, knocking on the door,
received no answer, or trying it, found it fast, they would hasten away
without question; concluding that some special hour of devotion or time
of study demanded that the Reverend Mother should be free from
intrusion.

The atmosphere of the empty cell, charged during the past hour with
such unaccustomed forces of conflict and of passion, settled into the
quietude of an unbroken stillness.

The Madonna smiled serenely upon the Holy Babe.  The dead Christ, with
bowed head, hung forlorn upon the wooden cross.  The ponderous volumes
in black and silver bindings, lay undisturbed upon the table; and the
Bishop's chair stood empty, with that obtrusive emptiness which, in an
empty seat, seems to suggest an unseen presence filling it.  The
silence was complete.

But presently a queer shuffling sound began in the inner cell, as of
something stiff and torpid compelling itself to action.

Then a weird figure, the wizen face distorted by grief and terror,
appeared in the doorway--old Mary Antony, holding a meat chopper in her
shaking hands, and staring, with chattering gums, into the empty cell.

That faithful soul, although dismissed, had resolved that the adored
Reverend Mother should not go forth to meet dangers--ghostly or
corporeal--alone and unprotected.

Hastening to the kitchens, she had given instructions that the evening
meal was not to be served until the Reverend Mother herself should
sound the bell.

Then, catching up a meat chopper, as being the most murderous-looking
weapon at hand, and the most likely to strike terror into the ghostly
heart of Sister Agatha, old Antony had hastened back to the passage.

Creeping up the stairs, hugging the wall, she had reached the top just
in time to see, in the dim distance, the two tall white figures
confronting one another.

Clinging to her chopper, motionless with horror, she had watched them,
until they began, to come toward her, moving in the direction of the
Reverend Mother's cell.  They were still thirty yards away, at the
cloister end of the passage.  Old Antony was close to the open door.

Through it she had scurried, unheard, unseen, a terrified black shadow;
yet brave withal; for with her went the meat chopper.  Also she might
have turned and fled back down the stairs, rather than into the very
place whither she knew the Reverend Mother was conducting this tall
spectre of the long dead Sister Agatha, grown to most alarming
proportions during her fifty years' entombment!  But being brave and
faithful old Antony had sped into the inner cell, and crouched there in
a corner; ready to call for help or strike with her chopper, should
need arise.

Thus it came to pass that this old weaver of romances had perforce
become a listener to a true romance so thrilling, so soul-stirring,
that she had had to thrust the end of the wooden handle of the chopper
into her mouth, lest she should applaud the noble Knight, cry counsel
in his extremities, or invoke blessings on his enterprise.  At each
mention of the Ladies Eleanor and Alfrida, she shook her fist, and made
signs with her old fingers, as of throttling, in the air.  And when the
clerkly messenger, arriving to speak with the Lady Alfrida--who, Saint
Luke be praised, was by that time dying--found the Knight awaiting him
with a noose flung over a strong bough, old Antony had laid down the
chopper that she might the better hug herself with silent glee; and
when the Knight rode away and left him hanging, she had whispered
"Pieman!  Pieman!" then clapped her hands over her mouth, rocking to
and fro with merriment.  When the Knight made mention that they called
him "Knight of the Bloody Vest," old Antony had started; then had
shaken her finger toward the entrance, as she was used to shake it at
the robin, and had opened her wallet to search for crumbs of cheese.
But soon again the story held her and, oblivious of the present, she
had been back in the realms of romance.

Not until the Knight ceased speaking and the Reverend Mother's sad
voice fell upon her ear, had old Antony realised the true bearing of
the tale.  Thereafter her heart had been torn by grief and terror.
When they kneeled together, before the Madonna, with uplifted faces,
Mary Antony had crawled forward and peeped.  She had seen them
kneeling--a noble pair--had seen the Prioress catch at his hand and
clasp it; then, crawling back had fallen prostrate, overwhelmed, a
huddled heap upon the floor.

The ringing of the Refectory bell had roused her from her stupor in
time to hear the impassioned appeal of the Knight, as he kneeled alone
before the Virgin's shrine.

Then, the Knight and the Prioress both being gone, Mary Antony had
arisen, lifted her chopper with hands that trembled, and now stood with
distraught mien, surveying the empty cell.

At length it dawned upon her that she and her weapon were locked into
the Reverend Mother's cell; she, who had been most explicitly bidden to
go to the kitchens and to remain there.  It had been a sense of the
enormity of her offence in having disobeyed the Reverend Mother's
orders which, unconsciously, had caused her to stifle all ejaculations
and move without noise, lest she should be discovered.

Yet now her first care was not for her own predicament, but for the two
noble hearts, of whose tragic grief she had secretly been a witness.

Her eye fell on the Madonna, calmly smiling.

She tottered forward, kneeling where the Prioress had knelt.

"Holy Mother of God," she whispered, "teach him that she cannot do this
thing!"

Then, moving along on her knees to where the Knight had kneeled:
"Blessèd Virgin!" she cried, "shew her that she cannot leave him
desolate!"

Then shuffling back to the centre, and kneeling between the two places:
"Sweetest Lady," she said, "be pleased to sharpen the old wits of Mary
Antony."

Looking furtively at the Madonna, she saw that our Lady smiled.  The
blessèd Infant, also, looked merry.  Mary Antony chuckled, and took
heart.  When the Reverend Mother smiled, she always knew herself
forgiven.

Moreover, without delay, her request was granted; for scarcely had she
arisen from her knees, when she remembered the place where the Reverend
Mother kept the key of her cell; and she, having locked the door, on
leaving, with her own master-key, the other was quickly in old Antony's
hand, and she out once more in the passage, locking the door behind
her; sure of being able to restore the key to its place, before it
should be missed by the Reverend Mother.


Sister Mary Antony slipped unseen past the Refectory and into the
kitchens.  Once there, she fussed and scolded and made her presence
felt, implying that she had been waiting, a good hour gone, for the
thing for which she had but that moment asked.

The younger lay-sisters might make no retort; but Sister Mary Martha
presently asked: "What have you been doing since Vespers, Sister
Antony?"

By aid of the wits our Lady had sharpened, old Antony, at that moment,
realised that sometimes, when you needs must deceive, there is nothing
so deceptive as the actual truth.

"Listening to a wondrous romantic tale," she made answer, "told by the
Knight of the Bloody Vest."

"You verily are foolish about that robin, Sister Antony," remarked Mary
Martha; "and you will take your death of cold, sitting out in the
garden in the damp, after sunset."

"Well--so long as I take only that which is mine own, others have no
cause to grumble," snapped Mary Antony, and turned her mind upon the
making of a savoury broth, favoured by the Reverend Mother.

And all the while the Devil was whispering in the old woman's ear: "She
will not return. . . .  Make thy broth, fool; but she will not be here
to drink it. . . .  The World and the Flesh have called; the Reverend
Mother will not come back. . . .  Stir the broth well, but flavour it
to thine own taste.  Thou wilt sup on it thyself this night.  When the
World and the Flesh call loudly enough, the best of women go to the
Devil."

"Liar!" said Mary Antony, brandishing her wooden spoon.  "Get thee
behind me--nay, rather, get thee in front of me!  I have had thee
skulking behind me long enough.  Also in front of me, just now, being
into the fire, thou wilt feel at home, Master Devil!  Only, put not thy
tail into the Reverend Mother's broth."


When the White Ladies passed up from the Refectory, Mary Antony chanced
to be polishing the panelling around the picture of Saint Mary
Magdalen, beside the door of the Reverend Mother's cell.

Presently Sister Mary Rebecca, arriving, lifted her hand to knock.

"Stay!" whispered Mary Antony.  "The Reverend Mother may not be
disturbed."

Sister Mary Rebecca veiled her scowl with a smile.

"And wherefore not, good Sister Antony?"

"'Wherefore not' is not my business," retorted old Antony, as rudely as
she knew how.  "It may be for special study; it may be for an hour of
extra devotion; it may be only the very natural desire for a little
respite from the sight of two such ugly faces as yours and mine.  But,
be the reason what it may, Reverend Mother has locked her door, and
sees nobody this even."  After which old Antony proceeded to polish the
outside of the Reverend Mother's door panels.

Sister Mary Rebecca lifted her knuckles to rap; but old Antony's not
over clean clout was pushed each time between Sister Mary Rebecca's
tap, and the woodwork.

Muttering concerning the report she would make to the Prioress in the
morning, Sister Mary Rebecca went to her cell.

When all was quiet, when every door was closed, the old lay-sister
crept into the cloisters and, crouching in an archway just beyond the
flight of steps leading to the underground way, watched and waited.

Storm clouds were gathering again, black on a purple sky.  The
after-glow in the west had faded.  It was dark in the cloisters.
Thunder growled in the distance; an owl hooted in the Pieman's tree.

Mary Antony's old bones ached sorely, and her heart failed her.  She
had sat so long in cramped positions, and she had not tasted food since
the mid-day meal.

The Devil drew near, as he is wont to do, when those who have fasted
long, seek to keep vigil.

"The Reverend Mother will not return," he whispered.  "What wait you
for?"

"Be off!" said Mary Antony.  "I am too old to be keeping company, even
with thee.  Also Sister Mary Rebecca awaits thee in her cell."

"The Reverend Mother ever walked with her head among the stars,"
sneered the Devil.  "Why do the highest fall the lowest, when
temptation comes?"

"Ask that of Mother Sub-Prioress," said Mary Antony, "next time she
bids thee to supper."

Then she clasped her old hands upon her breast; for, very softly, in
the lock below, a key turned.

Steps, felt rather than heard, passed up into the cloister.

Then, in the dim light, the tall figure of the Prioress moved
noiselessly over the flagstones, passed through the open door and up
the deserted passage.

Peering eagerly forward, the old lay-sister saw the Prioress pause
outside the door of her chamber, lift her master-key, unlock the door,
and pass within.

As the faint sound of the closing of the door reached her straining
ears, old Mary Antony began to sob, helplessly.




CHAPTER XVI

THE ECHO OF WILD VOICES

When the Prioress entered her cell, she stood for a moment bewildered
by the rapid walk in the darkness.  She could hardly realise that the
long strain was over; that she had safely regained her chamber.

All was as she had left it.  Apparently she had not been missed, and
had returned unobserved.  Hugh was by now safely in the hostel at
Worcester.  None need ever know that he had been here.

None need ever know--Yet, alas, it was that knowledge which held the
Prioress rooted to the spot on which she stood, gazing round her cell.

Hugh had been here; and when he was here, her one desire had been to
get him speedily away.

But now?

Dumb with the pain of a great yearning, she looked about her.

Yes; just there he had stood; here he had knelt, and there he had stood
again.

This calm monastic air had vibrated to the fervour of his voice.

It had grown calm again.

Would her poor heart in time also grow calm?  Would her lips stop
trembling, and cease to feel the fire of his?

Yet for one moment, only, her mind dwelt upon herself.  Then all
thought of self was merged in the realisation of his loneliness, his
suffering, his bitter disillusion.  To have found her dead, would have
been hard; to have lost her living, was almost past bearing.  Would it
cost him his faith in God, in truth, in purity, in honour?

The Prioress felt the insistent need of prayer.  But passing the
gracious image of the Virgin and Child, she cast herself down at the
foot of the crucifix.

She had seen a strong man in agony, nailed, by the cruel iron of
circumstance, to the cross-beams of sacrifice and surrender.  To the
suffering Saviour she turned, instinctively, for help and consolation.

Thus speedily had her prayer of the previous night been granted.  The
piercèd feet of our dear Lord, crucified, had become more to her than
the baby feet of the Infant Jesus, on His Mother's knee.

Yet, even as she knelt--supplicating, interceding, adoring--there
echoed in her memory the wicked shriek of Mary Seraphine: "A dead God
cannot help me!  I want life, not death!" followed almost instantly by
Hugh's stern question: "Is this religion?"

Truly, of late, wild voices had taken liberty of speech in the cell of
the Prioress, and had left their impious utterances echoing behind them.




CHAPTER XVII

THE DIMNESS OF MARY ANTONY

The Prioress had been back in her cell for nearly an hour, when a
gentle tap came on the door.

"Enter," commanded the Prioress, and Mary Antony appeared, bearing
broth and bread, fruit and a cup of wine.

The Prioress sat at her table, parchment and an open missal before her.
Her face was very white; also there were dark shadows beneath her eyes.
She did not smile at sight of old Antony, thus laden.

"How now, Antony?" she said, almost sternly.  "I did not bid thee to
bring me food."

"Reverend Mother," said the old lay-sister, in a voice which strove to
be steady, yet quavered; "for long hours you have studied, not heeding
that the evening meal was over.  Chide not old Antony for bringing you
some of that broth, which you like the best.  You will not sleep unless
you eat."

The Prioress looked at her uncomprehendingly; as if, for the moment,
words conveyed no meaning to her mind.  Then she saw those old hands
trembling, and a sudden flood of colour flushed the pallor of her face.

This sweet stirring of fresh life within her own heart gave her to see,
in the old woman's untiring devotion, a human element hitherto
unperceived.  It brought a rush of comfort, in her sadness.

She closed the volume, and pushed aside the parchment.  "How kind of
thee, dear Antony, to take so much thought for me.  Place the bowls on
the table. . . .  Now draw up that stool, and stay near me while I sup.
I am weary this night, and shall like thy company."

Had the golden gates of heaven opened before her, and Saint Peter
himself invited her to enter, Sister Mary Antony would not have been
more astonished and certainly could hardly have been more gratified.
It was a thing undreamed of, that she should be bidden to sit with the
Reverend Mother in her cell.

Drawing the carven stool two feet from the wall, Mary Antony took her
seat upon it.

"Nearer, Antony, nearer," said the Prioress.  "Place the stool here,
close beside the corner of my table.  I have much to say to thee, and
would wish to speak low."

Truly Sister Antony found herself in the seventh heaven!

Yet, quietly observing, the Prioress could not fail to note the drawn
weariness on the old face, the yellow pallor of the wizen skin, which
usually wore the bright tint of a russet apple.

The Prioress took a portion of the broth; then pushed the bowl from
her, and turned to the fruit.

"There, Antony," she said.  "The broth is excellent; but I have enough.
Finish it thyself.  It will pleasure me to see thee enjoy it."

Faint and thankful, old Antony seized the bowl.  And as she drank the
broth, her shrewd eyes twinkled.  For had not the Devil said she would
sup on it herself; knowing that much, yet not knowing that she would
receive it from the hand of the Reverend Mother?

It has been ever so, from Eden onwards, when the Devil tries his hand
at prophecy.

For a while the Prioress talked lightly, of flowers and birds; of the
garden and the orchard; of the gift of three fine salmon, sent to them
by the good monks of the Priory at Worcester.

But, presently, when the broth was finished and a faint colour tinted
the old cheeks, she passed on to the storm and the sunset, the rolling
thunder and the torrents of rain.  Then of a sudden she said:

"By the way, Antony, hast thou made mention, to any, of thy fearsome
tale of the walking through the cloisters, in line with the White
Ladies, of the Spectre of the saintly Sister Agatha?"

"Nay, Reverend Mother," said Mary Antony.  "Did not you forbid me to
speak of it?"

"True," said the Prioress.  "Well, Antony, I went in the storm, to look
for her; but--I found not Sister Agatha."

"That I already knew," said Mary Antony, nodding her head sagaciously.

The Prioress cast upon her a quick, anxious look.

"What mean you, Antony?"

Then old Mary Antony fell upon her knees, and kissed the hem of the
Prioress's robe.  "Oh, Reverend Mother," she stammered, "I have a
confession to make!"

"Make it," said the Prioress, with white lips.

"Reverend Mother, when you sent me from you, after making my report, I
went first, as commanded, to the kitchens.  But afterward, in my cell,
I found these."

Mary Antony opened her wallet and drew out the linen bag in which she
kept her peas.  Shaking its contents into the palm of her hand, she
held out six peas to view.

"Reverend Mother," she said, "there were twenty-five in the bag.  I
thought I had counted twenty out into my hand; so when all the peas had
dropped and yet another holy Lady passed, I thought that made
twenty-one.  But when I found six peas in my bag, I became aware of my
folly.  I had but counted nineteen, and had no pea to let fall for the
twentieth holy Lady.  Yet I ran in haste with my false report, when,
had I but thought to look in my wallet, all would have been made clear.
Will the Reverend Mother forgive old Mary Antony?"

She shot a quick glance at the Prioress; and, at sight of the immense
relief on that loved face, felt ready for any punishment with which it
might please Heaven to visit her deceit.

"Dear Antony," began the Reverend Mother, smiling.

"Dear Antony--" she said, and laughed aloud.

Then she placed her hand beneath the old woman's arm, and gently raised
her.  "Mistakes arise so easily," she said.  "With the best of
intentions, we all sometimes make mistakes.  There is nothing to
forgive, my Antony."

"I am old, and dim, and stupid," said the lay-sister, humbly; "but I
have begged of our sweet Lady to sharpen the old wits of Mary Antony."

After which statement, made in a voice of humble penitence, Mary
Antony, unseen by the thankful Prioress, did give a knowing wink with
the eye next to the Madonna.  Our blessèd Lady smiled.  The sweet Babe
looked merry.  The Prioress rose, a great light of relief illumining
her weary face.

"Let us to bed, dear Antony; then, with the dawn of a new day we shall
all arise with hearts refreshed and wits more keen.  So now--God rest
thee."


Left alone, the Prioress knelt long in prayer before the shrine of the
Madonna.  Once, she reached out her right hand to the empty space where
Hugh had knelt, striving to feel remembrance of his strong clasp.

At length she sought her couch.  But sleep refused to come, and
presently she crept back in the white moonlight, and kneeling pressed
her lips to the stone on which Hugh had kneeled; then fled, in shame
that our Lady should see such weakness; and dared not glance toward the
shadowy form of the dead Christ, crucified.  For with the coming of
Love to seek her, Life had come; and where Life enters, Death is put to
flight; even as before the triumphant march of the rising sun, darkness
and shadows flee away.


Yet, even then, our Lady gently smiled, and the Babe on her knees
looked merry.




CHAPTER XVIII

IN THE CATHEDRAL CRYPT

On the day following, in the afternoon, shortly before the hour of
Vespers, a stretcher was carried through the streets of Worcester, by
four men-at-arms wearing the livery of Sir Hugh d'Argent.

Beside it walked the Knight, with bent head, his eyes upon the ground.

The body of the man upon the stretcher was covered by a fine linen
sheet, over which lay a blue cloak, richly embroidered with silver.
His head was swathed in a bandage of many folds, partially concealing
the face.

The little procession passed through the Precincts; then entered the
Cathedral by the great door leading into the nave.

Here a monk stood, taking careful note of all who passed in or out of
the building.  As the stretcher approached, he stepped forward with
hand upraised.

There was a pause in the measured tramp of the bearers' feet.

The Knight lifted his eyes, and seeing the monk barring the way, he
drew forth a parchment and tendered it.

"I have the leave of the Lord Bishop, good father," he said, "to carry
this man upon the stretcher daily into the crypt, and there to let him
lie before the shrine of Saint Oswald, during the hour of Vespers; from
which daily pilgrimage and prayer, we hope a great recovery and
restoration."

At sight of the Lord Bishop's signature and seal, the monk made deep
obeisance, and hastened to call the Sacristan, bidding him attend the
Knight on his passage to the crypt and give him every facility in
placing the sick man there where he might most conveniently lie before
the holy altar of the blessèd Saint Oswald.

So presently, the stretcher being safely deposited, the men-at-arms
stood each against a pillar, and the Knight folded back the coverings,
in order that the man who lay beneath, might have sight of the altar
and the shrine.

As the Knight stood gazing through the vista of many columns, he found
the old Sacristan standing at his elbow.

"Most worshipful Knight," said the old man, with deference, "our Lord
Bishop's mandate supersedes all rules.  Were it not so, it would be my
duty to clear the crypt before Vespers.  See you that stairway yonder,
beneath the arch?  Not many minutes hence, up those steps will pass the
holy nuns from the Convent of the White Ladies at Whytstone--noble
ladies all, and of great repute for saintliness.  Daily they come to
Vespers by a secret way; entering the crypt, they pass across to a
winding stair in the wall, and so arrive at a gallery above the choir,
from which they can, unseen, hear the chanting of the monks.  I must to
my duties above.  Will you undertake, Sir Knight, that your men go not
nigh where the White Ladies pass, nor in any way molest them?"

"None shall stir hand or foot, as they pass, nor in any way molest
them," said the Knight.


Hugh d'Argent was kneeling before the altar, his folded hands resting
upon the cross on the hilt of his sword, when the faint sound of a key
turning in a distant lock, caught his ear.

Then up the steps and across the crypt passed, in silent procession,
the White Ladies of Worcester.

There was something ghostly and awe-inspiring about those veiled
figures, moving noiselessly among the pillars in the dimly-lighted
crypt; then vanishing, one by one, up the winding stairway in the wall.

The Knight did not stir.  He stayed upon his knees, his hands clasped
upon his sword-hilt; but he followed each silent figure with his eyes.

The last had barely disappeared from view when, from above, came the
solemn chanting of monks and choristers.

This harmony, descending from above, seemed to uplift the soul all the
more readily, because the sacred words and noble sounds reached the
listener, unhampered by association with the personalities, either
youthful or ponderous, of the singers.  All that was of the earth
remained unseen; while that which was so near akin to heaven, entered
the listening ear.

Kneeling in lowly reverence with bowed head, the Knight found himself
wondering whether the ascending sounds reached that distant gallery in
the clerestory where the White Ladies knelt, as greatly softened,
sweetened, and enriched, as they now came stealing down into the crypt.
Were the hearts of those veiled worshippers also lifted heavenward;
or--being already above the music--did the ascending voices rather tend
to draw them down to earth?

Upon which the Knight fell to meditating as to whether that which is
higher always uplifts; whereas that which is lower tends to debase.
Certainly the upward look betokens hope and joy; while the downward
casting of the eye, is sign of sorrow and despondency.


"_Levavi oculos meos in montes_"--chanted the monks, in the choir above.


He certainly looked high when he lifted the eyes of his insistent
desire to the Prioress of the White Ladies.  So high did he lift them,
and so unattainable was she, that most men would say he might as well
ask the silvery moon, sailing across the firmament, to come down and be
his bride!

He had held her high, in her maiden loveliness and purity.  But now
that he had found her, a noble woman, matured, ripened by sorrow rather
than hardened, yet firm in her determination to die to the world, to
deny self, crucify the flesh, and resist the Devil--he felt indeed that
she walked among the stars.

Yet he could not bring himself to regard her as unattainable.  It had
ever been his firm belief that a man could win any woman upon whom he
wholly set his heart--always supposing that no other man had already
won her.  And this woman had been his own betrothed, when treachery
intervened and sundered them.  Yet that did not now count for much.

He had left a girl; he had come back to find a woman.  That woman had
infinitely more to give; but it would be infinitely more difficult to
persuade her to give it.

At the close of their interview in her cell, the day before, all hope
had left him.  But later, as they paced together in the darkness, hope
had revived.

The strange isolation in which they then found themselves--between
locked doors a mile apart, earth above, earth beneath, earth all around
them, they two alone, entombed yet vividly conscious of glowing
life--had brought her nearer to him; and when at last the moment of
parting arrived and again he faced it as final, there had come--all
unheralded--the sudden wonder of her surrender.

True, she had afterwards withdrawn herself; true, she had sent him from
her; true, he had gone, without a word.  But that was because no
promise could have been so binding, as that silent embrace.

He had gone from her on the impulse of the sweetness of obeying
instantly her slightest wish; buoyed up by the certainty that no
Convent walls could long divide lips which had met and clung with such
a passion of mutual need.

That evening when, after much adventure, he at length gained the
streets of the city, he had trodden them with the mien of a victor.

That night he had slept as he had not slept since the hour when his
whole life had been embittered by a lying letter and a traitorous
tongue.

But morning, alas, had brought its doubts; noon, its dark
uncertainties; and as the hour of Vespers drew near, he had realised,
with the helpless misery of despair, that it was madness to expect the
Prioress of the White Ladies to break her vows, leave her Nunnery, and
fly with him to Warwick.

Yet he carried out his plan, and kept to his undertaking, though here,
in the calm atmosphere of the crypt, holy chanting descending from
above, the remembrance still with him of the aloofness of those stately
white figures gliding between the pillars in the distance, he faced the
madness of his hopes, and the mournful prospect of a life of loneliness.


Presently he arose, crossed the crypt, and took up his position behind
a pillar to the right of the exit from the winding stair.


The chanting ceased.  Vespers were over.

He heard the sound of soft footsteps drawing nearer.

The White Ladies were coming.

They came.

The Knight was not kept long in suspense.  The Prioress walked first.
Her face was hidden, but her height and carriage revealed her to her
lover.  She looked neither to right nor left but, turning away from the
pillar behind which the Knight stood concealed, crossed to the steps
leading down to the subterranean way, and so passed swiftly out of
sight.

The Knight stood motionless until all had appeared, and had vanished
once more from view.

One, tall but ungainly, crooked of body, and doubtless short of vision,
missed her way among the columns and passed perilously near to the
Knight.  With his long arm, he could have clasped her.  How old Antony
would have chuckled, could she but have known!  "Sister Mary Rebecca
embraced by the Knight of the Bloody Vest?  Nay then; the Saints
forbid!"


The stretcher, borne by four men-at-arms, passed out from the Cathedral.

The Knight walked beside it, with bent head, and eyes upon the ground.

As it passed through the Precincts, the Lord Bishop himself rode out on
his white palfrey, on his way to the Nunnery at Whytstone.

The Knight, being downhearted, did not lift his eyes.

The Bishop looked, kindly, upon the stretcher and upon the Knight's
dark face.

The Bishop had known Hugh d'Argent as a boy.

He grieved to see him thus in sorrow.

Yet the Bishop smiled as he rode on.

Perhaps he did not put much faith in the efficacy of relics, for so
heavily bandaged a broken head as that upon the stretcher.

For there was a whimsical tenderness about the Bishop's smile.




CHAPTER XIX

THE BISHOP PUTS ON HIS BIRETTA

Symon, Lord Bishop of Worcester, having received a letter from the
Prioress of the White Ladies, praying him for an interview at his
leisure, sent back at once a most courtly and gracious answer, that he
would that same day give himself the pleasure of visiting the Reverend
Mother, at the Nunnery, an hour after Vespers.

The great gates were thrown open, and the Bishop rode his palfrey into
the courtyard.

The Prioress herself met him at the door and, kneeling, kissed his
ring; then led him through the lower hall, where the nuns knelt to
receive his blessing, and up the wide staircase, to the privacy of her
own cell.

There she presently unfolded to him the history of her difficulties
with that wayward little nun, Sister Mary Seraphine.

"But the point which I chiefly desire to lay before you, Reverend
Father," concluded the Prioress, "is this: If the neighing of a palfrey
calls more loudly to her than the voice of God; if her mind is still
set upon the things of the world; if she professed without a true
vocation, merely because she wished to be the central figure of a great
ceremony, yet was all the while expecting a man to intervene and carry
her off; if all this bespeaks her true state of heart, then to my mind
there comes the question: Is she doing good, either to herself or to
others, by belonging to our Order?  Would she not be better away?

"My lord, I fear I greatly shock you by naming such a possibility.  But
truly I am pursued by the remembrance of that young thing, beating the
floor with her hands, and singing a mournful dirge about the crimson
trappings of her palfrey.  And, alas! when I reasoned with her and
exhorted, she broke out, as I have told you, Reverend Father, into
grievous blasphemy--for which she was severely dealt with by Mother
Sub-Prioress, and has since been outwardly amenable to rules and
discipline.

"But, though she may outwardly conform, how about her inward state?
Well I know that our vows are lifelong vows; all who belong to our
Order are wedded to Heaven; we are thankful to know that the calm of
the Cloister shall be exchanged only for the greater peace of Paradise.
But, supposing a young heart has mistaken its vocation; supposing the
voice of an earthly lover calls when it is too late; would it seem
right or possible to you, Reverend Father, to grant any sort of
absolution from the vows; tacitly to allow the opening of the cage
door, that the little foolish bird might, if it wished, escape into the
liberty for which it chafes and sighs?"

The Bishop sat in the Spanish chair, drawn up near the oriel window, so
that he could either gaze at the glories of the distant sunset, or, by
slightly turning his head, look on the beautiful but grave face of the
Prioress, seated before him.

While she was speaking he watched her keenly, with those bright
searching eyes, so much more youthful than aught else about him.  But
now that he must make reply, he looked away to the sunset.

The light shone on the plain gold cross at his breast, and on the
violet silk of his cassock.  His face, against the background of the
black Spanish wood, looked strangely white and thin; strong in contour,
with a virile strength; in expression, sensitive as a woman's.  He had
removed his biretta, and placed it upon the table.  His silvery hair
rolled back from his forehead in silky waves.  His was the look of the
saint and the scholar, almost of the mystic--save for the tender humour
in those keen blue eyes, gleaming like beacon lights from beneath the
level eyebrows; eyes which had won the confidence of many a man who
else had not dared unfold his very human story, to one of such saintly
aspect as Symon, Bishop of Worcester.  They were turned toward the
sunset, as he made answer to the Prioress.

"The little foolish bird," said the Bishop--and he spoke in that gently
musing tone, which conveys to the mind of the hearer a sense of
infinite leisure in which to weigh and consider the subject in
hand--"The little foolish bird might soon wish herself back in the
safety of the cage.  On such as she, the cruel hawks of life do love to
prey.  Absorbed in the contemplation of her own charms, she sees not,
until too late, the dangers which surround her.  Such little foolish
birds, my daughter, are best in the safe shelter of the cloister.
Moreover, of what value are they in the world?  None.  If Popinjays wed
them, they do but hatch out broods of foolish little Popinjays.  If
true men, caught by mere surface beauty, wed them, it can mean naught
save heartbreak and sorrow, and deterioration of the race.  Women of
finer mould"--for an instant the Bishop's eyes strayed from the
sunset--"are needed, to be the mothers of the men who, in the years to
come, are to make England great.  Nay, rather than let one escape, I
would shut up all the little foolish birds in a Nunnery, with our
excellent Sub-Prioress to administer necessary discipline."

With his elbows resting upon the arms of the chair, the Bishop put his
fingers together, so that the tips met most precisely; then bent his
lips to them, and looked at the Prioress.

She, troubled and sick at heart, lifting deep pools of silent misery,
met the merry twinkle in the Bishop's eyes, and sat astonished.  What
was it like?  Why it was like the song of a robin, perched on a frosty
bough, on Christmas morning!  It was so young and gay; so jocund, and
so hopeful.

Meeting it, the Prioress realised fully, what she had many times
half-divined, that the revered and reverend Prelate sitting opposite,
for all his robes and dignity, his panoply of Church and State, had the
heart of a merry schoolboy out on a holiday.

For the moment she felt much older than the Bishop, infinitely sadder;
more travel-worn and worldly-wise.

Then she looked at the silver hair; the firm mouth, with a shrewd curve
at either corner; the thoughtful brow.

And then she looked at the Bishop's ring.

The Bishop wore a remarkable ring; not a signet, but a large gem of
great value, beautifully cut in many facets, and clear set in massive
gold.  This precious stone, said to be a chrysoprasus, had been given
to the Bishop by a Russian prince, in acknowledgment of a great service
rendered him when he came on pilgrimage to Rome.  The rarity of these
gems arose partly from the fact that the sovereigns of Russia had
decreed that they should be held exclusively for royal ornament,
forbidding their use or purchase by people of lesser degree.

But its beauty and its rarity were not the only qualities of the
precious stone in the Bishop's ring.  The strangest thing about it was
that its colour varied, according to the Bishop's mood and surroundings.

When the Prioress looked up and met the gay twinkle, the stone in the
Bishop's ring was a heavenly blue, the colour of forget-me-nots beside
a meadow brook, or the clear azure of the sky above a rosy sunset.  But
presently he passed his hand over his eyes, as if to shut out some
bright vision, and to turn his mind to more sober thought; and, at that
moment, the stone in his ring gleamed a pale opal, threaded with
flashes of green.

The Prioress returned to the subject, with studied seriousness.

"I did not suppose, Reverend Father, that it was to be of any advantage
to the world, that Sister Seraphine should return to it.  The advantage
was to be to her, and also to this whole Community, well rid of the
presence of one who finds our sacred exercises irksome; our beautiful
Nunnery, a prison; her cell, a living tomb.  She cries out for life.
'I want to live,' she said, 'I am young, I am gay, I am beautiful!  I
want life.'"

"To such as Sister Seraphine," remarked the Bishop, gravely, "life is
but a mirror which reflects themselves.  Other forms and faces may flit
by, in the background; dimly seen, scarcely noticed.  There is but one
face and form occupying the entire foreground.  Life is, to such, the
mirror which ministers to vanity.  Should a husband appear in the
picture, he is soon relegated to the background, receiving only
occasional glances over the shoulder.  If children dance into the field
of vision, they are petulantly driven elsewhere.  Tell me?  Did Sister
Seraphine's desire for life include any expression of the desire to
give life?"

Involuntarily the Prioress glanced at the sweet Babe upon the Virgin's
knees.

"No," she said, very low.

"I thought not," said the Bishop.  "Self-centred, shallow natures are
not capable of the sublime passion for motherhood; partly, no doubt,
because they themselves possess no life worth passing on."

The Prioress rose quickly and, moving to the window, flung open a
second casement.  It was imperative, at that moment, to hide her face;
for the uncontrollable flood of emotion at her heart, could scarce fail
to send a tell-tale wave to disturb the calm of her countenance.

Whereupon the Bishop turned, to see at what the Prioress had glanced
before answering his question.

"No," he mused, as she resumed her seat, his eyes upon the tree-tops
beyond the casement, "the Seraphines have not the instinct of
motherhood.  And the future greatness of our race depends upon those
noble women who are able to pass on to their sons and daughters a life
which is true, and brave, and worthy; a life whose foundation is
self-sacrifice, whose cornerstone is loyalty, and from whose summit
waves the banner of unsullied love of hearth and home.

"A woman with the true instinct of motherhood cannot see a little child
without yearning to clasp it to her bosom.  When she finds her mate,
she thinks more of being the mother of his children than the object of
his devotion, because the Self in her is subservient to the maternal
instinct for self-sacrifice.  These women are pure as snow, and they
hold their men to the highest and the best.  Such women are needed in
the world.  Our Lady knoweth, I speak not lightly, unadvisedly nor
wantonly; but were Seraphine such an one as this, I should say; 'Leave
the door on the latch.  Without permission, yet without reproach--let
her go.'"

"Were Seraphine such an one as that, my lord," said the Prioress,
firmly, "then would there be no question of her going.  If the
cornerstone of character be loyalty, the very essential of loyalty is
the keeping of vows."

"Quite so," murmured the Bishop; "undoubtedly, my daughter.  Unless, by
some strange fatality, those vows were made under a total
misapprehension.  You tell me Sister Seraphine expected a man to
intervene?"

The Bishop sat up, of a sudden keenly alert.  His eyes, no longer
humorous and tender, became searching and bright--young still, but with
the fire of youth, rather than its merriment.  As he leaned forward in
his chair, his hands gripped his knees.  Looking at his ring the
Prioress saw the stone the colour of red wine.

"What if, after all, I can help you in this," he said.  "What if I can
throw light upon the whole situation, and find a cause for the little
foolish bird's restless condition, proving to you that she may have
heard something more than the mere neighing of a palfrey!  Listen!

"A Knight arrived in this city, rather more than a month ago; a very
noble Knight, splendid to look upon; one of our bravest Crusaders.  He
arrived here in sore anguish of heart.  His betrothed had been taken
from him during his absence from England, waging war against the Turks
in Palestine--taken from him by a most dastardly and heartless plot.
He made many inquiries concerning this Nunnery and Order, rode north
again on urgent business, but returned, with a large retinue, five days
since."

The Prioress did not stir.  She maintained her quiet posture as an
attentive listener.  But her face grew as white as her wimple, and she
folded her hands to steady their trembling.

But the Bishop, now eagerly launched, had no interest in pallor, or
possible palsy.  His vigorous words cut the calm atmosphere.  The gem
on his finger sparkled like red wine in a goblet.

"I knew him of old," he said; "knew him as a high-spirited lad, yet
loving, and much belovèd.  He came to me, in his grief, distraught with
anguish of heart, and told me this tale of treachery and wrong.  Never
did I hear of such a network of evil device, such a tragedy of loving
hearts sundered.  And when at last he returned to this land, he found
that the girl whom he had thought false, thinking him so, had entered a
Nunnery.  Also he seemed convinced that she was to be found among our
White Ladies of Worcester.  Now tell me, dear Prioress, think you she
could be Seraphine?"

The Prioress smiled; and truly it was a very creditable smile for a
face which might have been carved in marble.

"From my knowledge of Sister Mary Seraphine," she said, "it seems
unlikely that for loss of her, so noble a Knight as you describe would
be distraught with anguish of heart."

"Nay, there I do not agree," said the Bishop.  "It is ever opposites
which attract.  The tall wed the short; the stout, the lean; the dark,
the fair; the grave, the gay.  Wherefore my stern Crusader may be
breaking his heart for your foolish little bird."

"I do not think so," said the Prioress, shortly; then hastened to add:
"Not that I would presume to differ from you, Reverend Father.
Doubtless you are better versed in such matters than I.  But--if it be
as you suppose--what measures do you suggest?  How am I to deal with
Sister Mary Seraphine?"

The Bishop leaned forward and whispered, though not another soul was
within hearing; but at this juncture in the conversation, a whisper was
both dramatic and effective.  Also, when he leaned forward, he could
almost hear the angry beating of the heart of the Prioress.

The Bishop held the Prioress in high regard, and loved not to distress
her.  But he did not think it right that a woman should have such
complete mastery over herself, and therefore over others.  A fine
quality in a man, may be a blemish in a woman.  For which reason the
Bishop leaned forward and whispered.

"Let her fly, my daughter; let her fly.  If his arms await her, she
will not have far to go, nor many dangers to face.  Her lover will know
how to guard his own."

"My lord," said the Prioress, now flushed with anger, "you amaze me!
Am I to understand that you would have me open the Convent door, so
that a renegade nun may escape to her lover?  Or perhaps, my lord, it
would better meet your ideas if I bid the porteress stand wide the
great gates, so that this high-spirited Knight may ride in and carry
off the nun he desires, in sight of all!  My Lord Bishop!  You rule in
Worcester and in the cities of the diocese.  But _I_ rule in this
Nunnery; and while I rule here, such a thing as this shall never be."

The Prioress flashed and quivered; rose to her feet and towered; flung
her arms wide, and paced the floor.

"The Knight has bewitched you, my lord," she said.  "You forget the
rules of our holy Church.  You fail in your trust toward the women who
look to you as their spiritual Father and guide."

The Prioress walked up and down the cell, and each time she passed her
chair she wheeled, and gripping the back with her strong fingers, shook
it.  Not being able to shake the Bishop, she needs must shake something.

"You amaze me!" she said.  "Truly, my lord, you amaze me!"

The Bishop put on his biretta.

Only once before, in his eventful life, had he made a woman as angry as
this.  Very young he was, then; and the angry woman had seized him by
his hair.

The Bishop did not really think the Prioress would do this; but it
amused him to fancy he was afraid, and to put on his biretta.

Then, as he leaned back in his chair, and his finger tips met, the
stone in his ring was blue again, and his eyes were more than ever the
eyes of a merry schoolboy out on a holiday.

Yet, presently, he sought to calm the tempest he had raised.

"My daughter," he said, "I did but agree to that which you yourself
suggested.  Did you not ask whether it would seem to me right or
possible to grant absolution from her vows, tacitly to allow the
opening of the cage door, that the little foolish bird might, if she
wished it, escape?  Why this exceeding indignation, when I do but yield
to your arguments and fall in with your suggestions?"

"I did not suggest that a lover's arms were awaiting one of my nuns,"
said the angry Prioress.

"You did not mention arms," replied the Bishop, gently; "but you most
explicitly mentioned a voice.  'Supposing the voice of an earthly lover
calls,' you said.  And--having admitted that I am better versed in such
matters than you--you must forgive me, dear Prioress, if I amaze you
further by acquainting you with the undoubted fact, recognised, in the
outer world, as beyond dispute, that when a lover's _voice_ calls, a
lover's _arms_ are likely to be waiting.  Earthly lovers, my daughter,
by no means resemble those charming cherubs which you may have observed
on the carved woodwork in our Cathedral.  Otherwise you might have just
a voice, flanked by seraphic wings.  Some such fanciful creation must
have been in your mind for Sister Mary Seraphine; for, until I made
mention of the noble Knight who had arrived in Worcester distraught
with anguish of heart by reason of his loss, you had decided leanings
toward tacitly allowing flight.  Therefore it was not the fact of the
broken vows, but the idea of Seraphine wedded to the brave Crusader,
which so greatly roused your ire."

The Prioress stood silent.  Her hot anger cooled, enveloped in the
chill mantle of self-revelation and self-scorn.

It seemed to her that the gentle words of the Bishop indeed expressed
the truth far more correctly than he knew.

The thought of Hugh, consoling himself with some foolish, vain,
unworthy, little Seraphine, had stung with intolerable pain.

Yet, how should she, the cause of his despair, begrudge him any comfort
he might find in the love of another?

Then, suddenly, the Prioress knelt at the feet of the Bishop.

"Forgive me, most Reverend Father," she said.  "I did wrong to be
angry."

Symon of Worcester extended his hand, and the Prioress kissed the ring.
As she withdrew her lips from the precious stone, she saw it blood-red
and sparkling, as the juice of purple grapes in a goblet.

The Bishop laid his biretta once more upon the table, and smiled very
tenderly on the Prioress, as he motioned her to rise from her knees and
to resume her seat.

"You did right to be angry, my daughter," he said.  "You were not angry
with me, nor with the brave Crusader, nor with the foolish Seraphine.
Your anger, all unconsciously, was aroused by a system, a method of
life which is contrary to Nature, and therefore surely at variance with
the will of God.  I have long had my doubts concerning these vows of
perpetual celibacy for women.  For men, it is different.  The creative
powers in a man, if denied their natural functions, stir him to great
enterprise, move him to beget fine phantasies, creations of his brain,
children of his intellect.  If he stamp not his image on brave sons and
fair daughters, he leaves his mark on life in many other ways, both
brave and fair.  But it is not so with woman; in the very nature of
things it cannot be.  Methinks these Nunneries would serve a better
purpose were they schools from which to send women forth into the world
to be good wives and mothers, rather than store-houses filled with sad
samples of Nature's great purposes deliberately unfulfilled."

The merry schoolboy look had vanished.  The Bishop's eyes were stern
and searching; yet he looked not on the Prioress as he spoke.

Amazement was writ larger than ever, on her face; but she held herself
well under control.

"Such views, my lord, if freely expressed and adopted, would change the
entire monastic system."

"I know it," said the Bishop.  "And I would not express them, saving to
you and to one other, to whom I also talk freely.  But the older I
grow, the more clearly do I see that systems are man-made, and
therefore often mistaken, injurious, pernicious.  But Nature is Divine.
Those who live in close touch with Nature, who rule their lives by
Nature's rules, do not stray far from the Divine plan of the Creator.
But when man takes upon himself to say 'Thou shalt,' or 'Thou shalt
not,' quickly confusion enters.  A false premise becomes the
starting-point; and the goal, if it stop short of perdition, is, at
best, folly and failure."

The Bishop paused.

The eyes of the woman before him were dark with sorrow, regret, and the
dawning of a great fear.  Presently she spoke.

"To say these things here, my lord, is to say them too late."

"It is never too late," replied Symon of Worcester.  "'Too late' tolls
the knell of the coward heart.  If we find out a mistake while we yet
walk the earth where we made it, it is not too late to amend it."

"Think you so, Reverend Father?  Then what do you counsel me to
do--with Seraphine?"

"Speak to her gently, and with great care and prudence.  Say to her
much of that which you have said to me, and a little of that which I
have said to you, but expressed in such manner as will be suited to a
foolish mind.  You and I can hurl bricks at one another, my dear
Prioress, and be the better for the exercise.  But we must not fling at
little Seraphine aught harder than a pillow of down.  Empty heads, like
empty eggshells, are soon broken.  Tell her you have consulted me
concerning her desire to return to the world; and that I, being
lenient, and holding somewhat wider views on this subject than the
majority of prelates, also being well acquainted with the mind of His
Holiness the Pope concerning those who embrace the religious life for
reasons other than a true vocation, have promised to arrange the matter
of a dispensation.  But add that there must be no possibility of any
scandal connected with the Nunnery.  Since the Lady Wulgeova, mother of
Bishop Wulstan, of blessèd memory, took the veil here a century and a
half ago, this house has ever been above reproach.  You will tacitly
allow her to slip away; and, once away, I will set matters right for
her.  But nothing must transpire which could stumble or scandalise the
other members of the Community.  The peculiar circumstances which the
Knight made known to me--always, of course, without making any mention
of the name of Seraphine--can hardly have occurred in any other case.
It is not likely, for instance, that our worthy Sub-Prioress was torn
by treachery from the arms of a despairing lover; and she would
undoubtedly share your very limiting ideas of a lover's physical
qualities and requirements; possibly not even allowing him a voice.

"Now I happen to know that the Knight daily spends the hour of Vespers
in the Cathedral crypt, kneeling before the shrine of Saint Oswald
beside a stretcher whereon lies one of his men, much bandaged about the
head, swathed in linen, and covered with a cloak.  The Knight has my
leave to lay the sick man before the holy relics, daily, for five days.
I asked of him what he expected would result from so doing.  He made
answer: 'A great recovery and restoration.'"

The Bishop paused, as if meditating upon the words.  Then he slowly
repeated them, taking evident pleasure in each syllable.

"A great recovery and restoration," said the Bishop, and smiled.

"Well?  The blessèd relics can do much.  They may avail to mend a
broken head.  Could they mend a broken heart?  I know not.  That were,
of the two, the greater miracle."

The Bishop glanced at the Prioress.

Her face was averted.

"Well, my daughter, matters being as they are, you may inform Sister
Mary Seraphine that, should she chance to lose her way among the
hundred and forty-two columns, when passing through the crypt after
Vespers, she will find a Knight, who will doubtless know what to do
next.  If he can contrive to take her safely from the Cathedral and out
of the Precincts, she will have to ride with him to Warwick, where a
priest will be in readiness to wed them.  But it would be well that
Sister Mary Seraphine should have some practice in mounting and riding,
before she goes on so adventurous a journey.  She may remember the
crimson trappings of her palfrey, and yet have forgotten how to sit
him.  It is for us to make sure that the Knight's brave plans for the
safe capture of his lady, do not fail for lack of any help which we may
lawfully give."

The Bishop stretched out his hand and took up his biretta.

"When did the nuns last have a Play Day?" he asked.

"Not a month ago," replied the Prioress.  "They made the hay in the
river meadow, and carried it themselves.  They thought it rare sport."

The Bishop put on his biretta.

"Give them a Play Day, dear Prioress, in honour of my visit.  Tell them
I asked that they should have it the day after to-morrow.  I will then
send you my white palfrey, suitably caparisoned.  Brother Philip, who
attends me when I ride, and who has the palfrey well controlled, shall
lead him in.  The nuns can then ride in turns, in the river meadow; and
our little foolish bird can try her wings, before she attempts the long
flight from Worcester to Warwick."

The Bishop rose, crossed the cell, and knelt long, in prayer, before
the crucifix.

When he turned toward the door, the Prioress said: "I pray you, give me
your blessing, Reverend Father, before you go."

She knelt, and the Bishop extended his hand over her bowed head.

Expecting a Latin formula, she was almost startled when tender words,
in the English tongue, fell softly from the Bishop's lips.

"The Lord bless thee, and keep thee; and grant unto thee grace and
strength to choose and to do the harder part, when the harder part is
His will for thee."

After which: "_Benedictio Domini sit vobiscum_," said the Bishop; and
made the sign of the cross over the bowed head of the Prioress.




CHAPTER XX

HOLLY AND MISTLETOE

Symon, Bishop of Worcester, had bidden Sir Hugh d'Argent to sup with
him at the Palace.

It was upon the second day after the Bishop's conversation with the
Prioress in the Convent at Whytstone; the evening of the Nun's Play
Day, granted in honour of his visit.

The Bishop and the Knight supped together, with much stately ceremony,
in the great banqueting hall.

Knowing the Bishop's love of the beautiful, and his habit of being
punctilious in matters of array and deportment, acquired no doubt
during his lengthy sojourns in France and Italy, the Knight had donned
his finest court suit--white satin, embroidered with silver; jewelled
collar, belt, and shoes; a small-sword of exquisite workmanship at his
side.  A white cloak, also richly embroidered with silver, hung from
his shoulders; white silk hose set off the shapely length of his limbs.
The blood-red gleam of the magnificent rubies on his breast,
sword-belt, and shoe-buckles, were the only points of colour in his
attire.

The Bishop's keen eyes noted with quiet pleasure how greatly this
somewhat fantastically beautiful dress enhanced the dark splendour of
the Knight's noble countenance, displayed his superb carriage, and
shewed off the supple grace of his limbs, which, in his ordinary garb,
rather gave the idea of massive strength alone.

The Bishop himself wore crimson and gold; and, just as the dark beauty
of the Knight was enhanced by the fair white and silver of his dress,
so did these gorgeous Italian robes set off the frail whiteness of the
Bishop's delicate face, the silvery softness of his abundant hair.  And
just as the collar of rubies gleamed like fiery eyes upon the Knight's
white satin doublet, so from out the pallor of the Prelate's
countenance the eyes shone forth, bright with the fires of eternal,
youth, the gay joy of life, the twinkling humour of a shrewd yet kindly
wit.

They supped at a round table of small size, in the very centre of the
huge apartment.  It formed a point of light and brightness from which
all else merged into shadow, and yet deeper shadow, until the eye
reached the dark panelling of the walls.

The light seemed to centre in the Knight--white and silver; the colour,
in the figure of the Bishop--crimson and gold.

In and out of the shadows, swift and silent, on sandalled feet, moved
the lay-brothers serving the feast; watchful of each detail; quickly
supplying every need.

At length they loaded the table with fruit; put upon it fresh flagons
of wine, and finally withdrew; each black-robed figure merging into the
black shadows, and vanishing in silence.

The Bishop's Chaplain appeared in a distant doorway.

"_Benedicite_," said Symon of Worcester, looking up.

"_Deus_," replied the Chaplain, making a profound obeisance.

Then he stood erect--a grim, austere figure, hard features, hollow
eyes, half-shrouded within his cowl.

He looked with sinister disapproval at the distant table, laden with
fruit and flagons; at the Bishop and the Knight, now sitting nigh to
one another; the Bishop in his chair of state facing the door, the
Knight, on a high-backed seat at the Bishop's right hand, half-way
round the table.

"Holly and Mistletoe," muttered the Chaplain, as he closed the great
door.

"Yea, verily!  Mistletoe and Holly," he repeated, as he strode to his
cell.  "The Reverend Father sups with the World, and indulges the
Flesh.  Methinks the Devil cannot be far off."

Nor was he.

He was very near.

He had looked over the Chaplain's shoulder as he made his false
obeisance in the doorway.

But he liked not the pure white of the Knight's dress, and he feared
the clear light in the Prelate's eyes.  So, when the Chaplain closed
the door, the Devil stayed on the outside, and now walked beside the
Chaplain along the passage leading to his cell.

There is no surer way of securing the company of the Devil, than to
make sure he is at that moment busy with another--particularly if that
other chance to be the most saintly man you know, and merely
displeasing to you, at the moment, because he hath not bidden you to
sup with him.  The Devil and the Chaplain made a night of it.


The Bishop's gentle "_Benedicite_" spread white wings and flew, like an
affrighted dove, over the head of the bowing Chaplain, into the chill
passage beyond.

But, just as the great door was closing, it darted in again, circled
round the banqueting hall, and came back to rest in the safe nest of
the kindly heart which had sent it forth.

No blessing, truly vitalised, ever ceases to live.  If the blessed be
unworthy, it returns on swift wing to the blesser.




CHAPTER XXI

SO MUCH FOR SERAPHINE!

A sense of peace fell upon the banqueting hall, with the closing of the
door.  All unrest and suspicion seemed to have departed.  An atmosphere
of confidence and serenity pervaded the great chamber.  It was in the
Bishop's smile, as he turned to the Knight.

"At length the time has come when we may talk freely; and truly, my
son, we have much to say."

The Knight glanced round the spacious hall, and his look implied that
he would prefer to talk in a smaller chamber.

"Nay, then," said the Bishop.  "No situation can be better for a
private conversation than the very centre of a very large room.  Have
you not heard it said that walls have ears?  Well, in a small room,
they may use them to some purpose.  But here, we sit so far removed
from the walls that, strain their ears as they may, they will hear
nothing; even the very key-hole, opening wide its naughty eye, will see
naught, neither will the adjacent ear hear anything.  We may speak
freely."

The Bishop, signing to the Knight to help himself to fruit, moved the
wine toward him.  At his own right hand stood a Venetian flagon and
goblet of ruby glass, ornamented with vine leaves and clusters of
grapes.  The Bishop drank only from this flagon, pouring its contents
himself into the goblet which he held to the light before he drank from
it, enjoying the rich glow of colour, and the beauty of the engraving.
His guests sometimes wondered what specially choice kind of wine the
Bishop kept for his own, exclusive use.  If they asked, he told them.

"The kind used at the marriage feast at Cana in Galilee, when the
supply of an inferior quality had failed.  This, my friends, is pure
water, wholesome, refreshing, and not costly.  I drink it from glass
which gives to it the colour of the juice of the grape, partly in order
that my guests may not feel chilled in their own enjoyment of more gay
and luscious beverage; partly because I enjoy the emblem.

"The gifts of circumstance, life, and nature, vary, not so much in
themselves, as in the human vessels which contain them.  If the heart
be a ruby goblet, the humblest form of pure love filling it, will
assume the rich tint and fervour of romance.  If the mind be, in
itself, a thing of vivid tints and glowing colours, the dullest thought
within it will take on a lustre, a sparkle, a glow of brilliancy.
Thus, whensoever men or matters seem to me dull or wearisome, to myself
I say: 'Symon!  Thou art this day, thyself, a pewter pot.'"

Then the Bishop would fill up his goblet and hold it to the light.

"Aye, the best wine!" he would say.  "'Thou hast kept the best wine
until now.'  The water of earth--drawn by faithful servants, acting in
unquestioning obedience to the commands of the blessèd Mother of our
Lord--transmuted by the word and power of the Divine Son; outpoured for
others, in loving service; this is ever 'the best wine.'"


The Knight filled his goblet and took some fruit.  Then, leaving both
untouched, turned his chair sidewise, that he might the better face the
Bishop, crossed his knees, leaned his right elbow on the table and his
head upon his hand, pushing his fingers into his hair.

Thus, for a while, they sat in silence; the Knight's eyes searching the
Bishop's face; the Bishop, intent upon the colour of his ruby goblet.

At length Hugh d'Argent spoke.

"I have been through deep waters, Reverend Father, since last I supped
with you."

The Bishop put down the goblet.

"So I supposed, my son.  Now tell me what you will, neither more nor
less.  I will then give you what counsel I can.  On the one point
concerning which you must not tell me more than I may rightly know, I
will question you.  Have you contrived to see the woman you loved, and
lost, and are now seeking to regain?  Tell me not how, nor when, nor
where; but have you had speech with her?  Have you made clear to her
the treachery which sundered you?  Have you pleaded with her to
remember her early betrothal, to renounce these later vows, and to fly
with you?"

The Knight looked straight into the Bishop's keen eyes.

At first he could not bring himself to answer.

This princely figure, with his crimson robes and golden cross, so
visibly represented the power and authority of the Church.

His own intrusion into the Nunnery, his attempt to win away a holy nun,
suddenly appeared to him, as the most appalling sacrilege.

With awe and consternation in his own, he met the Bishop's eyes.

At first they were merely clear and searching, and the Knight sat
tongue-tied.  But presently there flicked into them a look so human, so
tender, so completely understanding, that straightway the tongue of the
Knight was loosed.

"My lord, I have," he said.  "All those things have I done.  I have
been in heaven, Reverend Father, and I have been in hell----"

"Sh, my son," murmured the Bishop.  "Methinks you have been in a place
which is neither heaven nor hell; though it may, on occasion,
approximate somewhat nearly to both.  How you got there, is a marvel to
me; and how you escaped, without creating a scandal, an even greater
wonder.  Yet I think it wise, for the present, not to know too much.  I
merely required to be certain that you had actually found your lost
betrothed, made her aware of your proximity, your discovery, and your
desires.  I gathered that you had succeeded in so doing; for, two days
ago, the Prioress herself sent to beg a private interview with me, in
order to ask whether, under certain circumstances, I could approve the
return of a nun to the world, and obtain absolution from her vows."

The rubies on the Knight's breast suddenly glittered, as if a bound of
his heart had caused them all to leap together.  But, except for that
quick sparkle, he sat immovable, and made no sign.

The Bishop had marked the gleam of the rubies.

He lifted his Venetian goblet to the light and observed it carefully,
as he continued: "The Prioress--a most wise and noble lady, of whom I
told you on the day when you first questioned me concerning the
Nunnery--has been having trouble with a nun, by name Sister Mary
Seraphine.  This young and lovely lady has, just lately, heard the
world loudly calling--on her own shewing, through the neighing of a
palfrey bringing to mind past scenes of gaiety.  But--the Prioress
suspicioned the voice of an earthly lover; and I, knowing how reckless
and resolute an earthly lover was attempting to invade the Nunnery, we
both--the Prioress and I--drew our own conclusions, and proceeded to
face the problem with which we found ourselves confronted,
namely:--whether to allow or to thwart the flight of Seraphine."

The Knight, toying with walnuts, held at the moment four in the palm of
his right hand.  They broke with a four-fold crack, which sounded but
as one mighty crunch.  Then, all unconscious of what he did, the Knight
opened his great hand and let fall upon the table, a little heap of
crushed nuts, shells and white flesh inextricably mixed.

The Bishop glanced at the small heap.  The veiled twinkle in his eyes
seemed to say; "So much for Seraphine!"

"I know not any lady of that name," said the Knight.

"Not by that name, my son.  The nuns are not known in the Convent by
the names they bore before they left the world.  I happen to know that
the Prioress, before she professed, was Mora, Countess of Norelle.  I
know this because, years ago, I saw her at the Court, when she was a
maid of honour to the Queen; very young and lovely; yet, even then
remarkable for wisdom, piety, and a certain sweet dignity of
deportment.  Sometimes now, when she receives me in the severe habit of
her Order, I find myself remembering the flow of beautiful hair, soft
as spun silk, bound by a circlet of gold round the regal head; the
velvet and ermine; the jewels at her breast.  Yet do I chide myself for
recalling things which these holy women have renounced, and doubtless
would fain forget."

The Bishop struck a silver gong with his left hand.

At once a distant door opened in the dark panelling and two black-robed
figures glided in.

"Kindle a fire on the hearth," commanded the Bishop; adding to his
guest: "The evening air strikes chilly.  Also I greatly love the smell
of burning wood.  It is pungent to the nostrils, and refreshing to the
brain."

The monks hastened to kindle the wood and to fan it into a flame.

Presently, the fire blazing brightly, the Bishop rose, and signed to
the monks to place the chairs near the great fireplace.  This they did;
and, making profound obeisance, withdrew.

Thus the Bishop and the Knight, alone once more, were seated in the
firelight.  As it illumined the white and silver doublet, and glowed in
the rubies, the Bishop conceived the whimsical fancy that the Knight
might well be some splendid archangel, come down to force the Convent
gates and carry off a nun to heaven.  And the Knight, watching the
leaping flame flicker on the Bishop's crimson robes and silvery hair,
saw the lenient smile upon the saintly face and took courage as he
realised how kindly was the heart, filled with most human sympathy,
which beat beneath the cross of gold upon the Prelate's breast.

Leaning forward, the Bishop lifted the faggot-fork and moved one of the
burning logs so that a jet of blue smoke, instead of mounting the
chimney, came out toward them on the hearth.

Symon of Worcester sat back and inhaled it with enjoyment.

"This is refreshing," he said.  "This soothes and yet braces the mind.
And now, my son, let us return to the question of your own private
concerns.  First, let me ask--Hugh, dear lad, as friend and counsellor
I ask it--are you able now to tell me the name of the woman you desire
to wed?"

"Nay, my dear lord," replied the Knight, "that I cannot do.  I guard
her name, as I would guard mine honour.  If--as may our Lady be pleased
to grant--she consent to fly with me, her name will still be mine to
guard; yet then all men may know it, so they speak it with due respect
and reverence.  But if--as may our blessèd Lady forbid--she withhold
herself from me, so that three days hence I ride away alone; then must
I ride away leaving no shadow of reproach on her fair fame.  Her name
will be forever in my heart; but no word of mine shall have left it, in
the mind of any man, linked with broken vows, or a forsaken lover."

The Bishop looked long and earnestly at the Knight.

"That being so, my son," he said at length, "for want of any better
name, I needs must call her by the name she bears in the Nunnery, and
now speak with you of Sister Mary Seraphine."

Hugh d'Argent frowned.

"I care not to hear of this Seraphine," he said.

"Yet I fear me you must summon patience to hear of Seraphine for a few
moments," said the Bishop, quietly; "seeing that I have here a letter
from the Prioress herself, in which she sends you a message. . . .  Ah!
I marvel not that you are taken by surprise, my dear Knight; but keep
your seat, and let not your hand fly so readily to your sword.  To
transfix the Reverend Mother's gracious epistle on your blade's keen
point, would not tend to elucidate her meaning; nor could it alter the
fact that she sends you important counsel concerning Sister Mary
Seraphine."

The Bishop lighted a wax taper standing at his elbow, drew a letter
from the folds of his sash, slowly unfolded and held it to the light.

The Knight sat silent, his face in shadow.  The leaping flame of the
fire played on his sword hilt and on the rubies across his breast.

As the parchment crackled between the Bishop's fingers, the Knight kept
himself well in hand; but he prayed he might not have need to speak,
nor to meet the Bishop's eyes.  These--the saints be praised--were now
intent upon the closely written page.

The light of the taper illumined the almost waxen whiteness of the
gentle face, and gleamed upon the Bishop's ring.  The Knight, fixing
his eyes upon the stone, saw it the colour of red wine.

At last the Bishop began to speak with careful deliberation, his eyes
upon the letter, yet telling, instead of reading; a method ofttimes
maddening to an anxious listener, eager to snatch the parchment and
master its contents for himself; yet who must perforce wait to receive
them, with due patience, from another.

"The Prioress relates to me first of all a conversation she had, by my
suggestion, with Sister Mary Serephine, in which she told that lady
much of what passed between herself and me when she consulted me upon
the apparent desire of this nun to escape from the Convent, renounce
her vows, and return to her lover and the world--her lover who had come
to save her."

The Bishop paused.

The Knight stirred uneasily in his seat.  A net seemed to be closing
around him.  Almost he saw himself compelled to ride to Warwick in
company with this most undesired and undesirable nun, Mary Seraphine.

The Bishop raised his eyes from the letter and looked pensively into
the fire.

"A most piteous scene took place," he said, "on the day when Sister
Seraphine first heard again the call of the outer world.  Most moving
it was, as told me by the Prioress.  The distraught nun lay upon the
floor of her cell in an abandonment of frantic weeping.  She imitated
the galloping of a horse with her hands and feet, a ride of some sort
evidently being in her mind.  At length she lifted a swollen
countenance, crying that her lover had come to save her."

The Knight clenched his teeth, in despair.  Almost, he and this
fearsome nun had arrived at Warwick, and she was lifting a swollen
countenance to him that he might embrace it.

Yet Mora well knew that he had not come for any Seraphine!  Mora might
deny herself to him; but she would not foist another upon him.  Only,
alas! this grave and Reverend Prioress of whom the Bishop spoke, hardly
seemed one with the woman of his desire; she who, but three evenings
before, had yielded her lips to his, clasping her arms around him;
loving, even while she denied him.

The Bishop's eyes were again upon the letter.

"The Prioress," he said, "with her usual instinctive sense of the
helpfulness of outward surroundings, and desiring, with a fine justice,
to give Seraphine--and her lover--every possible advantage, arranged
that the conversation should take place in the Nunnery garden, in a
secluded spot where they could not be overheard, yet where the sunshine
glinted, through overhanging branches, flecking, in golden patches, the
soft turf; where birds carolled, and spread swift wings; where white
clouds chased one another across the blue sky; in fact, my son," said
the Bishop, suddenly looking up, "where all Nature sang aloud of
liberty and nonrestraint."

The Knight's eyes, frowning from beneath a shading hand, were gloomy
and full of sombre fury.

It mattered not to him in what surroundings this preposterous offer,
that she should leave the Convent and fly with him to Warwick, had been
made to Seraphine.  Her swollen countenance would be equally
unattractive, whether lifted in cell or cloister, or where white clouds
chased one another across the blue sky!

The Knight felt as if he were being chased, and by something more to be
feared than a white cloud.  Grim Nemesis pursued him.  This reverend
prelate, whom he had deemed so wise, was well-nigh witless.  Yet Mora
knew the truth.  Would her kind hands deal him so base a blow?

The Bishop saw the brooding rage in the Knight's eyes, and he lowered
his own to the letter, in time to hide their twinkling.

Even the best and bravest of Knights, for having forced his way into a
Nunnery, pressed a suit upon a nun, and escaped unscathed, deserved
some punishment at the hands of the Church!

"Which was generous in the Reverend Mother," said the Bishop, "since
she was inclined, upon the whole, to disapprove this offering of
liberty to the restless nun.  You can well understand that, the
responsibility for the good conduct of that entire Community resting
upon the Prioress, she is bound to regard with disfavour any innovation
which might tend to provoke a scandal."

The Bishop did not look up, or he would have seen dull despair
displacing the Knight's anger.

"However she appears faithfully to have laid before Sister Mary
Seraphine, my view of the matter, giving her to understand that I am
inclined to be lenient concerning vows made under misapprehension; also
that, when there is not a true vocation, and a worldly spirit chafes
against the cloistered life, I regard its presence within the Community
as more likely to be harmful to the common weal, than the short-lived
scandal which might arise if those in power should connive at an
escape."

The Knight moved impatiently in his seat.

"Could we arrive, my lord," he said, "at the Lady Prioress's message,
of which you spoke?"

"We are tending thither, my son," replied the Bishop, unruffled.  "Curb
your impatience.  We of the Cloister are wont to move slowly, with
measured tread--each step a careful following up of the step which went
before--not with the leaps and bounds and capers of the laity.  In due
time we shall reach the message.

"Well, in this conversation the Prioress appears to have complied with
my suggestions, excepting in the matter of one most important detail,
concerning which she used her own discretion.  I distinctly advised her
to tell Seraphine that we were aware of your arrival, and that to my
certain knowledge you were in the crypt each afternoon at the hour when
the White Ladies pass to and from Vespers.  In fact, my dear Knight, I
even went so far as to suggest to the Reverend Mother to give Sister
Mary Seraphine to understand that if she stepped aside, losing her way
among the many pillars, you would probably know what to do next.

"But the Reverend Mother writes"--at last the Bishop began to read: "'I
felt so sure from your description of the noble Knight who came to you
in his trouble, that he cannot be the lover of this shallow-hearted
little Seraphine, that I deemed it wise not to tell her of his arrival,
nor to mention your idea, that the woman he seeks is to be found in
this Nunnery.'"

The smothered sound which broke from the Knight was a mixture of
triumph, relief, and most bitter laughter.

"Now that is like the Prioress," said the Bishop; "thus to use her own
judgment, setting at naught my superior knowledge of the facts, and
flouting my authority!  A noble nature, Hugh, and most lovable; yet an
imperious will, and a strength of character and purpose unusual in a
woman.  Had she remained in the world and married, her husband would
have found it somewhat difficult wholly to mould her to his will.  Yet
to possess such a woman would have been worth adventuring much.  But I
must not fret you, dear lad, by talking of the Prioress, when your mind
is intent upon arriving at the decision of Seraphine.

"Well, I fear me, I have but sorry news for you.  The Reverend Mother
writes: 'Sister Mary Seraphine expressed herself as completely
satisfied with the cloistered life.  She declared that her desire to
return to the world had been but a passing phase, of which she was
completely purged by the timely discipline of Mother Sub-Prioress, and
by the fact that she has been appointed, with Sister Mary Gabriel, to
embroider the new altar-cloth for the Chapel.  She talked more eagerly
about a stitch she is learning from Mary Gabriel, than about any of
those by-gone memories, which certainly had seemed most poignantly
revived in her; and I had no small difficulty in turning her mind from
the all-absorbing question as to how to obtain the right tint for the
pomegranates.  My lord, to a mind thus intent upon needle-work for the
Altar of God, I could scarce have brought myself to mention the call of
an earthly lover, even had I believed your Knight to be seeking
Seraphine.  Her heart is now wedded to the Cloister.'"

The Bishop looked up.

"Therefore, my son, we must conclude that your secret interview,
whenever or wherever it took place, had no effect--will bear no lasting
fruit." The Bishop could not resist this allusion to the pomegranates
of Seraphine.

But Hugh d'Argent, face to face with the suspended portcullis of his
fate, trampled all such gossamer beneath impatient feet.

He moistened his dry lips.

"The message," he said.

The Bishop lifted the letter.

"'But,'" he read, "'if you still believe your noble Knight to be the
lover of Seraphine, then I pray you to tell him this from me.  No nun
worthy of a brave man's love, would consent to break her vows.  A nun
who could renounce her vows to go to him, would wrong herself and him,
bringing no blessing to his home.  Better an empty hearth, than a
hearth where broods a curse.  I ask you, my lord, to give this as a
message to that noble Knight from me--the Prioress of this House--and
to bid him go in peace, praying for a heart submissive to the will of
God.'"

The Bishop's voice fell silent.  He had maintained its quiet tones, yet
perforce had had to rise to something of the dignity of this final
pronouncement of the Prioress, and he spoke the last words with deep
emotion.

Hugh d'Argent leaned forward, his elbows on his knees; then dropped his
head upon his hands, and so stayed motionless.

The portcullis had fallen.  Its iron spikes transfixed his very soul.

She was his, yet lost to him.

This final word of her authority, this speaking, through the Bishop's
mouth, yet with the dignity of her own high office, all seemed of set
intent, to beat out the last ray of hope within him.

As he sat silent, with bowed head, wild thoughts chased through his
brain.  He was back with her in the subterranean way.  He knelt at her
feet in the yellow circle of the lantern's light.  Her tender hands,
her woman's hands, her firm yet gentle hands, fell on his head; the
fingers moved, with soothing touch, in and out of his hair.  Then--when
his love and longing broke through his control--came her surrender.

Ah, when she was in his arms, why did he loose her?  Or, when she had
unlocked the door, and the dim, grey light, like a pearly dawn at sea,
stole downward from the crypt, why, like a fool, did he mount the steps
alone, and leave her standing there?  Why did he not fling his cloak
about her, and carry her up, whether she would or no?  "Why?" cried the
demon of despair in his soul.  "Ah, why!"

But, even then, his own true heart made answer.  He had loosed her
because he loved her too well to hold her to him when she had seemed to
wish to stand free.  And he had gone alone, because never would he
force a woman to come with him against her will.  His very strength was
safeguard to her weakness.

Presently Hugh heard the Bishop folding the Prioress's letter.  He
lifted his head and held out his hand.

The Bishop was slipping the letter into his sash.

He paused.  Those eyes implored.  That outstretched hand demanded.

"Nay, dear lad," said the Bishop.  "I may not give it you, because it
mentions the White Ladies by name, the Order, and poor little shallow,
changeful Seraphine herself, But this much I will do: as _you_ may not
have it, none other shall."  With which the Bishop, unfolding the
Prioress's letter, flung it upon the burning logs.

Together they watched it curl and blacken; uncurl again, and slowly
flake away.  Long after the rest had fallen to ashes, this sentence
remained clear: "Better an empty hearth; than a hearth where broods a
curse."  The flames played about it, but still it remained legible;
white letters, upon a black ground; then, letters of fire upon grey
ashes.

Of a sudden the Knight, seizing the faggot-fork, dashed out the words
with a stroke.

"I would risk the curse," he cried, with passion.  "By Pilate's water,
I would risk the curse!"

"I know you would, my son," said the Bishop, "and, by our Lady's crown,
I would have let you risk it, believing, as I do, that it would end in
blessing.  But--listen, Hugh.  In asking what you asked, you scarce
know what you did.  You need not say 'yea,' nor 'nay,' but I incline to
think with the Reverend Mother, that the woman you sought was not
foolish little Seraphine, turned one way by the neighing of a palfrey,
another by the embroidering of a pomegranate.  There are women of finer
mould in that Nunnery, any one of whom may be your lost betrothed.  But
of this we may be sure: whosoever she be, the Prioress knows her, and
knew of whom she wrote when she sent you that message.  She has the
entire confidence of all in the Nunnery.  I verily believe she knows
them better than does their confessor--a saintly old man, but dim.

"Now, listen to me.  I said you knew not what you asked.  Hugh, my lad,
if you had won your betrothed away, you would have had much to learn
and much to unlearn.  Believe me, I know women, as only a priest of
many years' standing can know them.  Women are either bad or good.  The
bad are bad below man's understanding, because their badness is not
leavened by one grain of honour; a fact the worst of men will ever fail
to grasp.  The good are good above man's comprehension, because their
perfect purity of heart causeth the spirit ever to triumph over the
flesh; and their love-instinct is the instinct of self-sacrifice.
Every true woman is a Madonna in the home, or fain would be, if her man
would let her.  To such a woman, each promise of a child is an
Annunciation; our Lady's awe and wonder, whisper again in the temple of
her inner being; for her love has deified the man she loves; and, it
seems to her, a child of his and hers must be a holy babe, born into
the world to help redeem it.  And so it would be, could she but have
her way.  But too often the man fails to understand, and so spoils the
perfect plan.  And she to whom love means self-sacrifice, sacrifices
all--even her noblest ideals--sooner than fail a call upon her love.
Yet I say again, could the Madonna instinct have had full sway, the
world would have been redeemed ere now to holiness, to happiness, to
health.

"You looked high, my son, by your own shewing.  You loved high.  Your
love was worthy, for you remained faithful, when you believed you had
been betrayed.  Let your consolation now be the knowledge that she also
was faithful, and that it is a double faithfulness which keeps her from
responding to the call of your love.  Seek union with her on the
spiritual plane, and some day--in the Realm where all noble things
shall attain unto full perfection--you may yet give thanks that your
love was not allowed to pass through the perilous pitfalls of an
earthly union."

The Knight looked at the delicate face of the Bishop, with its wistful
smile, its charm of extreme refinement.

Yes!  Here spoke the Prelate, the Idealist, the Mystic.

But the Knight was a man and a lover.

His dark face flushed, and his eyes grew bright with inward fires such
as the Bishop could hardly be expected to understand.

"I want not spiritual planes," he said, "nor realms of perfection.  I
want my own wife, in my own home; and, could I have won her there, I
have not much doubt but that I could have lifted her over any perilous
pitfalls that came in her way."

"True, my son," said the Bishop, at once gently acquiescent; for Symon
of Worcester invariably yielded a point which had been misunderstood.
For over-rating a mind with which he conversed, this was ever his
self-imposed penance.  "Your great strength would be fully equal to
lifting ladies over pitfalls.  Which recalls to my mind a scene in this
day's events, which I would fain describe to you before we part."




CHAPTER XXII

WHAT BROTHER PHILIP HAD TO TELL

The Bishop sat back in his chair, smiling, as at a mental picture which
gave him pleasure, coupled with some amusement.

Ignoring the Knight's sullen silence, he began his story in the
cheerful voice which takes for granted a willing and an interested
listener.

"When the Prioress and myself were discussing your hopes, my son, and I
was urging, in your interests, liberty of flight for Sister Mary
Seraphine, I informed the Reverend Mother that the carrying out of your
plans, carefully laid in order to keep any scandal concerning the White
Ladies from reaching the city, would involve for Seraphine a ride of
many hours to Warwick, almost immediately upon safely reaching the Star
hostel.  This seemed as nothing to the lover who, by his own shewing,
had ofttimes seen her 'ride like a bird, all day, on the moors.'  But
to us who know the effect of monastic life and how quickly such matters
as these become lost arts through disuse, this romantic ride in the
late afternoon and on into the summer night, loomed large as a possible
obstacle to the successful flight of Seraphine.

"Therefore, in order that our little bird might try her wings, regain
her seat and mastery of a horse, and rid herself of a first painful
stiffness, I persuaded the Reverend Mother to grant the nuns a Play
Day, in honour of my visit, promising to send them my white palfrey,
suitably caparisoned, in safe charge of a good lay-brother, so that all
nuns who pleased, might ride in the river meadow.  You would not think
it," said the Bishop, with a smile, "but the White Ladies dearly love
such sport, when it is lawful.  They have an agèd ass which they
gleefully mount in turns, on Play Days, in the courtyard and in the
meadow.  Therefore riding is not altogether strange to them, although
my palfrey, Iconoklastes, is somewhat of an advance upon their mild
ass, Sheba."

The Knight's sad face had brightened at mention of the beasts.

"Wherefore 'Iconoklastes'?" he asked, with interest.  It struck him as
a curious name for a palfrey.

"Because," replied the Bishop, "soon after I had bought him he trampled
to ruin, in a fit of misplaced merriment, some flower beds on which I
had spent much precious time and care, and of which I was inordinately
fond."

"Brute," said the Knight, puzzled, but unwilling to admit it.
"Methinks I should have named him 'Devil,' for the doing of such
diabolic mischief."

"Nay," said the Bishop, gently.  "The Devil would have spared my flower
beds.  They were a snare unto me."

"And wherefore 'Sheba'?" queried the Knight.

"I named her so, when I gave her to the Prioress," said the Bishop, "in
reply to a question put to me by the Reverend Mother.  The ass was
elderly and mild, even then, but a handsome creature, of good breed.
The Prioress asked me whether she still had too much spirit to be
easily managed by the lay-sisters.  I answered that her name was
'Sheba.'"

The Bishop paused and rubbed his hands softly over each other, in
gleeful enjoyment of the recollection.

But the Knight again looked blank.

"Did that content the Prioress?" he asked; but chiefly for love of
mentioning her name.

"Perfectly," replied the Bishop.  "She smiled and said: 'That is well.'
And the name stuck to the ass, though the Reverend Mother and I alone
understood its meaning."

"About the Play Day?" suggested the Knight, growing restive.

"Ah, yes!  About the Play Day.  The time chosen was after noon on this
day, in order that the Prioress might first accomplish her talk with
Seraphine, thus clearing the way for our experiment.  Although written
last evening, I had not received the Reverend Mother's decisive letter,
when Iconoklastes set forth; and, I confess, I looked forward with keen
interest, to questioning the lay-brother on his return.  As I have told
you, I had doubts concerning Seraphine; but I knew the Prioress would
see to it that my meaning and intention reached the member of the
Community actually concerned, were she Seraphine or another; and I
should have light, both on the identity of the lady and on her probable
course of action, when report reached me as to which of the nuns had
taken the riding seriously.  Therefore, with no little interest, I
awaited the return of Iconoklastes, in charge of Brother Philip."

The Bishop lifted the faggot-fork and, bending over the hearth, began
to build the logs, quickening the dying flame.

"Well?" cried the Knight, chafing like a charger on the curb.  "Well,
my lord?  And then?"

The Bishop stood the faggot-fork in its corner.

"I paused, my son, that you might say: 'Wherefore "Philip"?'"

"The names of men interest me not," said the Knight, with impatience.
"I care but to know the reason for the names of beasts."

"Quite right," said the Bishop.  "Adam named the beasts; Eve named the
men.  Yet, I would like you to ask 'Wherefore "Philip,"' because the
Prioress at once put that question, when she heard me call Brother Mark
by his new name."

"Wherefore 'Philip'?" asked the Knight, with averted eyes.

"Because 'Philip' signifies 'a lover of horses.' I named the good
brother so, when he developed a great affection for all the steeds in
my stables.

"Well, at length Brother Philip returned, leading the palfrey.  I had
been riding upon the heights above the town, on my comely black mare,
Shulamite."

Again the Bishop paused, and shot a merry challenge at Hugh d'Argent;
but realising at once that the Knight could brook no more delay, he
hastened on.

"Riding into the courtyard, just as Philip led in the palfrey, I bade
him first to see to Icon's comfort; then come to my chamber and report.
Before long the lay-brother appeared.

"Now Brother Philip is an excellent teller of stories.  He does not
need to mar them by additions, because his quickness of observation
takes in every detail, and his excellent memory lets nothing slip.  He
has a faculty for recalling past scenes in pictures, and tells a story
as if describing a thing just happening before his mental vision: the
sole draw-back to so vivid a memory being, that if the picture grows
too mirth provoking, Brother Philip is seized with spasms of the
diaphragm, and further description becomes impossible.  On this
occasion, I saw at once that the good brother's inner vision teemed
with pictures.  I settled myself to listen.

"Aye, it had been a wonderful scene, and more merriment, so the
lay-sisters afterwards told Brother Philip, than ever known before at
any Play Day.

"Icon was led in state from the courtyard, down into the river meadow.

"At first the great delight was to crowd round him, pat him, stroke his
mane, finger his trappings; cry out words of ecstatic praise and
admiration, and attempt to feed him with all manner of unsuitable food.

"Icon, I gather, behaved much as most males behave on finding
themselves the centre of a crowd of admiring women.  He pawed the
ground, and swished his tail; arched his neck, and looked from side to
side; munched cakes he did not want, winking a large and roguish eye at
Brother Philip; and finally, ignoring all the rest, fixed a languorous
gaze upon the Prioress, she being the only lady present who stood
apart, regarding the scene, but taking no share in the general
adulation.

"At length the riding began; Brother Philip keeping firm hold on Icon,
while the entire party of nuns undertook to mount the nun who had
elected to ride.  Each time Brother Philip attempted a description of
this part of the proceedings he was at once seized with such spasms in
the region of his girdle, that speech became an impossibility; he could
but hold himself helplessly, looking at me from out streaming eyes,
until a fresh peep at his mental picture again bent him double.

"Much as I prefer a story complete, from start to finish, I was
constrained to command Brother Philip to pass on to scenes which would
allow him some possibility of articulate speech.

"The sternness of my tones gave to the good brother the necessary
assistance.  In a voice still weak and faltering, but gaining firmness
as it proceeded, he described the riding.

"Most of the nuns rode but a few yards, held in place by so many
willing hands that, from a distance, only the noble head of Icon could
be seen above the moving crowd, surmounted by the terrified face of the
riding nun; who, hastening to exclaim that her own delight must not
cause her to keep others from participation, would promptly fall off
into the waiting arms held out to catch her; at once becoming, when
safely on her feet, the boldest encourager of the next aspirant to a
seat upon the back of Icon.

"Sister Mary Seraphine proved a disappointment.  She had been wont to
boast so much of her own palfrey, her riding, and her hunting, that the
other nuns had counted upon seeing her gallop gaily over the field.

"The humble and short-lived attempts were all made first.  Then Sister
Mary Seraphine, bidding the others stand aside, was swung by one tall
sister, acting according to her instructions, neatly into the saddle.

"She gathered up the reins, as to the manner born," and bade Brother
Philip loose the bridle.  But the palfrey, finding himself no longer
hemmed in by a heated, pressing crowd, gave, for very gladness of
heart, a gay little gambol.

"Whereupon, Sister Mary Seraphine, almost unseated, shrieked to Brother
Philip to hold the bridle, rating him soundly for having let go.

"He then led Icon about the meadow, the nuns following in procession;
Sister Seraphine all the while complaining; first of the saddle, which
gripped her where it should not, leaving an empty space there where
support was needed; then of the palfrey's paces; then of a twist in her
garments--twice the procession stopped to adjust them; then of the ears
of the horse which twitched for no reason, and presently pointed at
nothing--a sure sign of frenzy; and next of his eye, which rolled round
and was vicious.

"At this, Mother Sub-Prioress, long weary of promenading, yet
determined not to be left behind while others followed on, exclaimed
that if the eye of the creature were vicious, then must Sister Mary
Seraphine straightway dismount, and the brute be led back to the seat
where the Prioress sat watching.

"To this Seraphine gladly agreed, and a greatly sobered procession
returned to the top of the field.

"But gaiety was quickly restored by the old lay-sister, Mary Antony,
who, armed with the Reverend Mother's permission, insisted on mounting.

"Willing hands, miscalculating the exceeding lightness of her aged
body, lifted her higher than need be, above the back of the palfrey.
Whereupon Mary Antony, parting her feet, came down straddling!

"Firm as a limpet, she sat thus upon Icon.  No efforts of the nuns
could induce her to shift her position.  Commanding Brother Philip,
seeing 'the Lord Bishop' was now safely mounted, to lead on and not
keep him standing, old Antony rode off in triumph, blessing the nuns
right and left, as she passed.

"Never were heard such shrieks of merriment!  Even Mother Sub-Prioress
sank upon a seat to laugh with less fatigue.  Sister Seraphine's
fretful complaints were forgotten.

"Twice round the field went old Antony, with fingers uplifted.  Icon
stepped carefully, arching his neck and walking as if he well knew that
he bore on his back, ninety odd years of brave gaiety.

"Well, that made of the Play Day a success.  But--the best of all was
yet to come."

The Bishop took up the faggot-fork, and again tended the fire.  He
seemed to find it difficult to tell that which must next be told.

The Knight was breathing quickly.  He sat immovable; yet the rubies on
his breast glittered continuously, like so many eager, fiery eyes.

The Bishop went on, speaking rapidly, the faggot-fork still in his
hand, his face turned to the fire.

"They had lifted Mary Antony down, and were crowding round Icon,
patting and praising him, when a message came from the Reverend Mother,
bidding Brother Philip to bring the palfrey into the courtyard; the
nuns to remain in the field.

"They watched the beautiful creature pace through the archway and
disappear, and none knew quite what would happen next.  Philip heard
them discussing it later.

"Some thought the Bishop had sent for his palfrey.  Others, that the
Reverend Mother had feared for the safety of the old lay-sister; or,
lest her brave example should fire the rest to be too venturesome.  Yet
all eyes were turned toward the archway, vaguely expectant.

"And then----

"They heard the hoofs of Icon ring on the flagstones of the courtyard.

"They heard the calm voice of the Prioress.  Could it be she who was
coming?

"Out from the archway, into the sunshine, alone and fearless; the
Prioress rode upon Icon.  On her face was the light of a purposeful
radiance.  The palfrey stepped as if proud of the burden he carried.

"She smiled and would have cried out gaily to the groups as she passed.
But, with one accord, the nuns dropped to their knees, with clasped
hands, and faces uplifted, adoring.  Always they loved her, revered
her, and thought her beautiful.  But this vision of the Prioress, whom
none had ever seen mounted, riding forth into the sunshine on the
snow-white palfrey, filled their hearts with praise and with wonder.

"Brother Philip leaned against the archway, watching.  He knew his hand
upon the bridle was no longer needed, from the moment when he saw the
Reverend Mother gather up the reins in her left hand, lay her right
gently on the neck of Icon, and, bending, speak low in his ear.

"She sat a horse--said Philip--as only they can sit, who have ridden
from childhood.

"She walked him round the meadow once, then gently shook the reins, and
he broke into a trot.

"The watching nuns, now on their feet again, shrieked aloud, with
fright and glee.

"At the extreme end of the meadow, wheeling sharply, she let him out
into a canter.

"The nuns at this were petrified into dumbness.  One and all held their
breath; while Mother Sub-Prioress--nobody quite knew why--turned upon
Sister Mary Seraphine, and shook her.

"And the next moment the Prioress was among them, walking the palfrey
slowly, settling her veil, which had streamed behind her as she
cantered, bending to speak to one and another, as she passed.

"And the light of new life was in her eyes.  Her cheeks glowed, she
seemed a girl again.

"Reining in Iconoklastes, she paused beside Mother Sub-Prioress and
said----"

The Bishop broke off, while he carefully stood the faggot-fork up in
its corner.

"She paused and said: 'None need remain here longer than they will.
But, being up and mounted, and our Lord Bishop in no haste for the
return of his palfrey, it is my intention to ride for an hour.'"

Symon of Worcester turned and looked full at the Knight.

"And the Prioress rode for an hour," he said.  "For a full hour, in the
sunshine, on the soft turf of the river meadow, THE PRIORESS TRIED HER
WINGS."




CHAPTER XXIII

THE MIDNIGHT ARRIVAL

Hugh d'Argent sat speechless, returning the Bishop's steady gaze.

No fear was in his face; only a great surprise.

Presently into the eyes of both there crept a look which was
half-smile, half-wistful sorrow, but wholly trustful; a look to which,
as yet, the Bishop alone held the key.

"So you know, my lord," said Hugh d'Argent.

"Yes, my son; I know."

"Since this morning?"

"Nay, then!  Since the first day you arrived with your story; asking
such careful questions, carelessly.  But be not wroth with yourself,
Hugh.  Faithful to the hilt, have you been.  Only--no true lover was
ever a diplomat!  Matters which mean more than life, cannot be
dissembled by true hearts from keen eyes."

"Then why all the talk concerning Seraphine?" demanded the Knight.

"Seraphine, my son, has served a useful purpose in various
conversations.  Never before, in the whole of her little shallow,
selfish life has Seraphine been so disinterestedly helpful.  That you
sat here just now, thinking me witless beyond belief, just when I most
desired not to appear to know too much, I owe to the swollen
countenance of Seraphine."

"My lord," exclaimed the Knight, overcome with shame.  "My lord!  How
knew you----"

"Peace, lad!  Fash not thyself over it.  Is it not a part of my sacred
office to follow in the footsteps of my Master and to be a discerner of
the thoughts and intents of the heart?  Also, respecting, yea,
approving your reasons for reticence, I would have let you depart not
suspecting my knowledge of that which you wished to conceal, were it
not that we must now face this fact together:--Since penning that
message of apparent finality, the Prioress has tried her wings."

A rush of bewildered joy flooded the face of the Knight.

"Reverend Father!" he said, "think you that means hope for me?"

Symon of Worcester considered this question carefully, sitting in his
favourite attitude, his lips compressed against his finger-tips.

At length; "I think it means just this," he said.  "A conflict, in her,
between the mental and the physical; between reason and instinct;
thought and feeling.  The calm, collected mind sent you that reasoned
message of final refusal.  The sentient body, vibrant with bounding
life, instinctively prepares itself for the possibility of the ride
with you to Warwick.  This gives equal balance to the scale.  But a
third factor will be called in, finally to decide the matter.  By that
she will abide; and neither you nor I, neither earth nor hell, neither
things past, things present, nor things to come, could avail to move
her."

"And that third factor?" questioned the Knight.

"Is the Spiritual," replied the Bishop, solemnly, with uplifted face.

"With that, there came over the Knight a sudden sense of compunction.
He began for the first time to see the matter as it must appear to the
Bishop and the nun.  His own obstinate and determined self-seeking
shamed him.

"You have been very good to me, my lord," he said humbly.  "You have
been most kind and most generous, when indeed you had just cause to be
angry."

The Bishop lowered his eyes from the rafters, and bent them in
questioning gaze upon Hugh d'Argent.

"Angry, my son?  And wherefore should I be angry?"

"That I should have sought, and should still be seeking, to tempt the
Prioress to wrong-doing."

The Bishop's questioning gaze took on a brightness which almost became
the light of sublime contempt.

"_You_--tempt _her_?" he said.  "Tempt her to wrong-doing!  The man
lives not, who could succeed in that!  She will not come to you unless
she knows it to be right to come, and believes it to be wrong to stay.
If I thought you were tempting her, think you I would stand aside and
watch the conflict?  Nay!  But I stand aside and wait while she--of
purer, clearer vision, and walking nearer Heaven than you or
I--discerns the right, and, choosing it, rejects the wrong.  Should she
be satisfied that life with you is indeed God's will for her--and I
tell you honestly, it will take a miracle to bring this about--she will
come to you.  But she will not come to you unless, in so doing, she is
choosing what to her is the harder part."

"The harder part!" exclaimed the Knight.  "You forget, my lord, she
loves me."

"Do I forget?" replied the Bishop.  "Have you found me given to
forgetting?  The very fact that she loves you, is the heaviest factor
against you--just now.  To such women there comes ever the instinctive
feeling, that that which would be sweet must be wrong, and the hard
path of renunciation the only right one.  They climb not Zion's mount
to reach the crown.  They turn and wend their way through Gethsemane to
Calvary, sure that thus alone can they at last inherit.  And what can
we say?  Are they not following in the footsteps of the Son of God?  I
fear my nature turns another way.  I incline to follow King David, or
Solomon in all his glory, chanting glad Songs of Ascent, from the
Palace on Mount Zion to the Temple on Mount Moriah.  All things
harmonious, in sound, form, or colour, seem to me good and, therefore,
right.  But long years in Italy have soaked me in the worship of the
beautiful, inextricably intermingled with the adoration of the Divine.
I mistrust mine own judgment, and I fear me"--said the Prelate, whose
gentle charity had won so many to religion--"I greatly fear me, I am
far from being Christlike.  But I recognise the spirit of
self-crucifixion, when I see it.  And the warning that I give you, is
not because I forget, but because I remember."

As the last words fell in solemn utterance from the Bishop's lips, the
silence without was broken by the loud clanging of the outer bell;
followed by hurrying feet in the courtyard below, the flare of torches
shining up upon the casements, and the unbarring of the gate.

"It must be close on midnight," said Hugh d'Argent; "a strange hour for
an arrival."

The banqueting hall, on the upper floor of the Palace, had casements at
the extreme end, facing the door, which gave upon the courtyard.

The Knight walked over to one of these casements standing open, kneeled
upon the high window-seat, and looked down.

"A horseman has ridden in," he said, "and ridden fast.  His steed is
flecked with foam, and stands with spreading nostrils, panting. . . .
The rider has passed within. . . .  Your men, my lord, are leading away
the steed."  The Knight returned to his place.  "Brave beast!  Methinks
they would do well to mix his warm mash with ale."

Symon of Worcester made no reply.

He sat erect, with folded hands, a slight flush upon his cheeks,
listening for footsteps which must be drawing near.

They came.

The door, at the far end of the hall, opened.

The gaunt Chaplain stood in the archway, making obeisance.

"Well?" said the Bishop, dispensing with the usual formalities.

"My lord, your messenger has returned, and requests an audience without
delay."

"Bid him enter," said the Bishop, gripping the arms of the chair, and
leaning forward.

The Chaplain, half-turning, beckoned with uplifted hand; then stood
aside, as rapid feet approached.

A young man, clad in a brown riding-suit, dusty and travel-stained,
appeared in the doorway.  Not pausing for any monkish salutations or
genuflections, he strode some half-dozen paces up the hall; then swung
off his hat, stopped short with his spurs together, and bowed in
soldierly fashion toward the great fireplace.

Thrusting his hand into his breast, he drew out a packet, heavily
sealed.

"I bring from Rome," he said--and his voice rang through the
chamber--"for my Lord Bishop of Worcester, a letter from His Holiness
the Pope."

The Knight sprang to his feet.  The Bishop rose, a noble figure in
crimson and gold, and the dignity of his high office straightway
enveloped him.

In complete silence, he stretched out his right hand for the letter.

The dusty traveller came forward quickly, knelt at the Bishop's feet,
and placed the missive in his hands.

As the Bishop lifted the Pope's letter and, stooping his head, kissed
the papal seal, the Knight kneeled on one knee, his hand upon his
sword-hilt, his eyes bent on the ground.

So for a moment there was silence.  The sovereignty of Rome, stretching
a mighty arm across the seas, asserted its power in the English hall.

Then the Bishop placed the letter upon a small table at his right hand,
seated himself, and signed to both men to rise.

"How has it fared with you, Roger?" he asked, kindly.

"Am I in time, Reverend Father?" exclaimed the youth, eagerly.  "I
acted on your orders.  No expense was spared.  I chartered the best
vessel I could find, and had set sail within an hour of galloping into
the port.  We made a good passage, and being fortunate in securing
relays of horses along the route, I was in Rome twenty-four hours
sooner than we had reckoned.  I rode in at sunset; and, your name and
seal passing me on everywhere, your letter, my lord, was in the Holy
Father's hands ere the glow had faded from the distant hills.

"I was right royally entertained by Cardinal Ferrari; and, truth to
tell, a soft couch and silken quilts were welcome, after many nights of
rough lodging, in the wayside inns of Normandy and Italy.  Moreover,
having galloped ahead of time, I felt free to take a long night's
repose.

"But next morning, soon after the pigeons began to coo and circle, I
was called and bid to hasten.  Then, while I broke my fast with many
strange and tasty dishes, seated in a marble court, with fountains
playing and vines o'erhanging, the Cardinal returned, he having been
summoned already to the bedchamber of the Pope, where the reply of His
Holiness lay, ready sealed.

"Whereupon, my lord, I lost no time in setting forth, picking up on my
return journey each mount there where I had left it, until I galloped
into the port where our vessel waited.

"Then, alas, came delay, and glad indeed was I, that I had not been
tempted to linger in Rome; for the winds were contrary; some days
passed before we could set sail; and when at last I prevailed upon the
mariners to venture, a great storm caught us in mid-channel,
threatening to rend the sails to ribbons and, lifting us high, hurl us
all to perdition.  Helpless and desperate, for the sailors had lost all
control, I vowed that if the storm might abate and we come safe to
harbour I would--when I succeed to my father's lands in
Gloucestershire--give to the worthy Abbot of an Abbey adjoining our
estate, a meadow, concerning which he and his monks have long broken
the tenth commandment and other commands as well, a trout stream
running through it, and the dearest delight of the Abbot being fat
trout for supper; and of the monks, to lie on their bellies tickling
the trout as they hide in the cool holes under the banks of the stream.
But when my father finds the monks thus poaching, he comes up behind
them, and up they get quickly--or try to!  So, in mid-channel,
remembering my sins, I remembered running to tell my father that if he
came quickly he would find the good Brothers flat on their bellies,
sleeves rolled back, heads hanging over the water, toes well tucked
into the turf, deeply intent upon tickling.  Then I would run by a
short cut, hide in the hazels, and watch while my father stalked up
through the meadow, caught and belaboured the poachers.  My derisive
young laughter seemed now to howl and shriek through the rigging.  So I
vowed that if the storm abated and we came safe to port, the monks
should be given that meadow.  Upon which the storm did abate, and to
port we came--and what my father will say, I know not!  Fearing
vexation to you, my lord, from this untoward delay, on landing I rode
as fast as mine own good horse could carry me.  Am I in time?"

The Bishop smiled as he looked into the blue eyes and open countenance
of young Roger de Berchelai, a youth wholly devoted to his service.
Here was another who remembered in pictures, and Symon of Worcester
loved the gallop, and rush, and breeze of the sea, which had swept
through the chamber, in the eager young voice of his envoy.

"Yes, my son," said the Bishop.  "You have returned, not merely in
time, but with two days to spare.  Was there ever fleeter messenger!
Indeed my choice was well made and my trust well placed.  Now you must
sup and then take a much-needed rest, dear lad; and to-morrow tell me
if you had need to spend more than I gave you."

Raising his voice, the Bishop called his Chaplain; whereupon that
sinister figure at once appeared in the doorway.

The Bishop gave orders concerning the entertaining of the young Esquire
of Berchelai; then added; "And let the chapel be lighted, Father
Benedict.  So soon as the aurora appears in the east, I shall celebrate
mass, in thanksgiving for the blessing of a letter from the Holy
Father, and for the safe return of my messenger.  I shall not need your
presence nor that of any of the brethren, save those whose watch it
chances to be. . . . _Benedicite_."

"_Deus_," responded Father Benedict, bowing low.

Young Roger, gay and glad, knelt and kissed the Bishop's ring; then,
rising, flung back a strand of fair hair which fell over his forehead,
and said: "A bath, my lord, would be even more welcome than supper and
bed.  It shames me to have come in such travel-stained plight into your
presence, and that of this noble knight," with a bow to Hugh d'Argent.

"Nay," said Hugh, smiling in friendly response.  "Travel-stains gained
in such fashion, are more to be desired than silks and fine linen.  I
would I could go to rest this night knowing I had accomplished as much."

"Go and have thy bath, boy," said the Bishop.  "This will give my monks
time to tickle, catch, and cook, trout for thy supper!  Ah, thou young
rascal!  But that field is _Corban_, remember.  Sup well, rest well,
and the blessing of the Lord be with thee."

The brown riding-suit vanished through the archway.

Father Benedict's lean hand pulled the door to.

The Bishop and the Knight were once more alone.




CHAPTER XXIV

THE POPE'S MANDATE

The Bishop and Hugh d'Argent were once more alone.  It was
characteristic of both that they sat for some minutes in unbroken
silence.

Then the Bishop put out his hand, took up the packet from Rome, and
looked at the Knight.

Hugh d'Argent rose, walked over to the casement, and leaned out into
the still, summer night.

He could hear the Bishop breaking the seals of the Pope's letter.

Below in the courtyard, all was quiet.  The great gates were barred.
He wondered whether the steaming horse had been well rubbed down,
clothed, and given a warm mash mixed with ale.

He could hear the Bishop unfolding the parchment, which crackled.

The moon, in her first quarter, rode high in the heavens.  The towers
of St. Mary's church looked black against the sky.

The Palace stood on the same side of the Cathedral as the main street
of the city, in the direct route to the Foregate, the Tithing, and the
White Ladies' Nunnery at Whytstone.  How strange to remember, that
beneath him lay that mile-long walk in darkness; that just under the
Palace, so near the Cathedral, she and he, pacing together, had known
the end of their strange pilgrimage to be at hand.  Yet then----

He could hear the Bishop turning the parchment.

How freely the silvery moon sailed in this stormy sky, like a noble
face looking calmly out, and ever out again, from amid perplexities and
doubts.

In two nights' time, the moon would be well-nigh full.  Would he be
riding to Warwick alone, or would she be beside him?

As the Bishop had said, he had described her as riding all day, like a
bird, on the moors.  Yet now he loved best to picture her riding forth
upon Icon into the river meadow, her veil streaming behind her; "on her
face the light of a purposeful radiance."

Ah, would she come?  Would she come, or would she stay?  Would she
stay, or would she come?

The moon was now hidden by a cloud; but he could see the edge of the
cloud silvering.

If the moon sailed forth free, before he had counted to twelve, she
would come.

He began to count, slowly.

At nine, the moon was still hidden; and the Knight's heart failed him.

But at ten, the Bishop called: "Hugh!" and turning from the casement
the Knight answered to the call.

The Bishop held in his hands the Pope's letter, and also a
legal-looking document, from which seals depended.

"This doth closely concern you, my son," said the Bishop, with some
emotion, and placed the parchment in the Knight's hands.

Hugh d'Argent could have mastered its contents by the light of the wax
taper burning beside the Bishop's chair.  But some instinct he could
not have explained, caused him to carry it over to the table in the
centre of the hall, whereon four wax candles still burned.  He stood to
read the document, with his back to the Bishop, his head bent close to
the flame of the candles.

Once, twice, thrice, the Knight read it, before his bewildered brain
took in its full import.  Yet it was clear and unmistakable--a
dispensation, signed and sealed by the Pope, releasing Mora, Countess
of Norelle, from all vows and promises taken and made when she entered
the Nunnery of the White Ladies of Worcester, at Whytstone, in the
parish of dairies, and later on when she became Prioress of that same
Nunnery; and furthermore stating that this full absolution was granted
because it had been brought to the knowledge of His Holiness that this
noble lady had entered the cloistered life owing to a wicked and
malicious plot designed to wrest her castle and estates from her, and
also to part her from a valiant Knight, at that time fighting in the
Holy Wars, to whom she was betrothed.

Furthermore the deed empowered Symon, Bishop of Worcester or any priest
he might appoint, to unite in marriage the Knight Crusader, Hugh
d'Argent, and Mora de Norelle, sometime Prioress of the White Ladies of
Worcester.


The Knight walked back to the hearth and stood before the Bishop, the
parchment in his hand.

"My Lord Bishop," he said, "do I dream?"

Symon of Worcester smiled.  "Nay, my son.  Surely no dream of thine was
ever signed by His Holiness, nor bore suspended from it the great seal
of the Vatican!  The document you hold will be sufficient answer to all
questions, and will ensure your wife's position at Court and her
standing in the outer world--should she elect to re-enter it.

"But whether she shall do this, or no, is not a matter upon which the
Church would give a decisive or even an authoritative pronouncement;
and the Holy Father adds, in, his letter to me, further important
instructions.

"Firstly: that it must be the Prioress's own wish and decision, apart
from any undue pressure from without, to resign her office and to
accept this dispensation, freeing her from her vows.

"Secondly; that she must leave the Nunnery and the neighbourhood,
secretly; if it be possible, appearing in her new position, as your
wife, without much question being raised as to whence she came.

"Thirdly: that when her absence becomes known in the Nunnery, I am
authorized solemnly to announce that she has been moved on by me,
secretly, with the knowledge and approval of the Holy Father, to a
place where she was required for higher service."

The Bishop smiled as he pronounced the final words.  There was triumph
in his eye.

The Knight still looked as if he felt himself to be dreaming; yet on
his face was a great gladness of expectation.

"And, my lord," he exclaimed joyously, "what news for her!  Shall you
send it, in the morn, or yourself take it to her?"

The Bishop's lips were pressed against his finger-tips.

"I know not," he answered, slowly; "I know not that I shall either take
or send it."

"But, my lord, surely!  It will settle all doubts, solve all questions,
remove all difficulties----"

"Tut!  Tut!  Tut!" exclaimed the Bishop.  "Good heavens, man!  Dare I
wed you to a woman you know so little?  Not for one instant, into her
consideration of the matter, will have entered any question as to what
Church or State might say or do.  For her the question stands upon
simpler, truer, lines, not involved by rule or dogma: 'Is it right for
me, or wrong for me?  Is it the will of God that I should do this
thing?'"

"But if you tell her, my lord, of the Holy Father's dispensation and
permission; what will she then say?"

"What will she then say?" Symon of Worcester softly laughed, as at
something which stirred an exceeding tender memory.  "She will probably
say: 'You amaze me, my lord!  Indeed, my lord, you amaze me!  His
Holiness the Pope may rule at Rome; _you_, my Lord Bishop, rule in the
cities of this diocese; but _I_ rule in this Nunnery, and while I rule
here, such a thing as this shall never be!'"

The Bishop gently passed his hands the one over the other, as was his
habit when a recollection gave him keen mental pleasure.

"That is what the Prioress would probably say, my dear Knight, were I
so foolish as to flaunt before her this most priceless parchment.  And
yet--I know not.  It may be wise to send it, or to show it without much
comment, simply in order that she may see the effect upon the mind of
the Holy Father himself, of a full knowledge of the complete facts of
the case."

"My lord," said the Knight, with much earnestness, "how came that full
knowledge to His Holiness in Rome?"

"When first you came to me," replied the Bishop, "with this grievous
tale of wrong and treachery, I knew that if you won your way with Mora,
we must be armed with highest authority for the marriage and for her
return to the world, or sorrow and much trial for her might follow,
with, perhaps, danger for you.  Therefore I resolved forthwith to lay
the whole matter, without loss of time, before the Pope himself.  I
know the Holy Father well; his openness of mind, his charity and
kindliness; his firm desire to do justly, and to love mercy.  Moreover,
his friendship for me is such, that he would not lightly refuse me a
request.  Also he would, of his kindness, incline to be guided by my
judgment.

"Wherefore, no sooner were all the facts in my possession, those you
told me, those I already knew, and those I did for myself deduce from
both, than I sent for young Roger de Berchelai, whose wits and devotion
I could safely trust, gave him all he would need for board and lodging,
boats and steeds, that he might accomplish the journey in the shortest
possible time, and despatched him to Rome with a written account of the
whole matter, under my private seal, to His Holiness the Pope."

The Knight stood during this recital, his eyes fixed in searching
question upon the Bishop's face.

Then: "My lord," he said, "such kindness on your part, passes all
understanding.  That you should have borne with me while I told my
tale, was much.  That you should tacitly have allowed me the chance to
have speech with my betrothed, was more.  But that, all this time,
while I was giving you half-confidence, and she no confidence at all,
you should have been working, spending, planning for us, risking much
if the Holy Father had taken your largeness of heart and breadth of
mind amiss!  All this, you did, for Mora and for me!  That you were, as
you tell me, a frequent guest in my childhood's home, holding my
parents in warm esteem, might account for the exceeding kindness of the
welcome you did give me.  But this generosity--this wondrous
goodness--I stand amazed, confounded!  That you should do so great a
thing to make it possible that I should wed the Prioress--  It passes
understanding!"

When Hugh d'Argent ceased speaking, Symon of Worcester did not
immediately make reply.  He sat looking into the fire, fingering, with
his left hand, the gold cross at his breast, and drumming, with the
fingers of his right, upon the carved lion's head which formed the arm
of his chair.

It seemed as if the Bishop had, of a sudden, grown restive under the
Knight's gratitude; or as if some train of thought had awakened within
him, to which he did not choose to give expression, and which must be
beaten back before he allowed himself to speak.

At length, folding his hands, he made answer to the Knight, still
looking into the fire, a certain air of detachment wrapping him round,
as with an invisible yet impenetrable shield.

"You overwhelm me, my dear Hugh, with your gratitude.  It had not
seemed to me that my action in this matter would demand either thanks
or explanation.  There are occasions when to do less than our best,
would be to sin against all that which we hold most sacred.  To my
mind, the most useful definition of sin, in the sacred writings, is
that of the apostle Saint James, most practical of all the inspired
writers, when he said: 'To him that knoweth to do good, and doeth it
not, to him it is sin.'  I knew quite clearly the 'good' to be done in
this case.  Therefore no gratitude is due to me for failing to fall
into the sin of omission.

"Also, my son, many who seem to deserve the gratitude of others, would
be found not to deserve it, if the entire inward truth of motive could
be fully revealed.

"With me it is well-nigh a passion that all good things should attain
unto full completeness.

"It may be I was better able to give full understanding to your tale
because, for love of a woman, I dwelt seven years in exile from this
land, fearing lest my great love for her, which came to me all
unsought, should--by becoming known to her--lead her young heart, as
yet fresh and unawakened, to respond.  There was never any question of
breaking my vows; and I hold not with love-friendships between man and
woman, there where marriage is not possible.  They are, at best,
selfish on the part of the man.  They keep the woman from entering into
her kingdom.  The crown of womanhood is to bear children to the man she
loves--to take her place in his home, as wife and mother.  The man who
cannot offer this, yet stands in the way of the man who can, is a poor
and an unworthy lover."

The Bishop paused, unclasped his hands, withdrew his steadfast regard
from the fire, and sat back in his chair.  The stone in his ring
gleamed blue, the colour of forget-me-nots beside a meadow brook.

Presently he looked at the silent Knight.  There was a kindly smile, in
his eyes, rather than upon his lips.

"It may be, my dear Hugh, that this heart discipline of mine--of which,
by the way, I have never before spoken--has made me quick to understand
the sufferings of other men.  Also it may explain the great desire I
always experience to see a truly noble woman come to the full
completion of her womanhood.

"I returned to England not long after your betrothed had entered the
cloistered life in the Whytstone Nunnery.  I was appointed to this See
of Worcester, which appointment gave me the spiritual control of the
White Ladies.  My friendship with the Prioress has been a source of
interest, pleasure, and true helpfulness to myself and I trust to her
also.  I think I told you while we supped that, many years ago, I had
known her at the Court when I was confessor to the Queen, and preceptor
to her ladies.  But no mention has ever been made between the Prioress
and myself of any previous acquaintance.  I doubt whether she
recognised, in the frail, white-haired, old prelate who arrived from
Italy, the vigorous, bearded priest known to her, in her girlhood's
days, as"--the Bishop paused and looked steadily at the Knight--"as
Father Gervaise."

"Father Gervaise!" exclaimed Hugh d'Argent, lifting his hand to cross
himself as he named the Dead, yet arrested in this instinctive movement
by something in those keen blue eyes.  "Father Gervaise, my lord,
perished in a stormy sea.  The ship foundered, and none who sailed in
her were seen again."

The Knight spoke with conviction; yet, even as he spoke, the amazing
truth rushed in upon him, and struck him dumb.  Of a sudden he knew why
the Bishop's eyes had instantly won his fearless confidence.  A trusted
friend of his childhood had looked out at him from their dear depths.
Often he had searched his memory, since the Bishop had claimed
knowledge of him in his boyhood, and had marvelled that no recollection
of Symon as a guest in his parents' home came back to him.

Now--in this moment of revelation--how clearly he could see the figure
of the famous priest, in brown habit, cloak, and hood, a cord at his
waist, with tonsured head, full brown beard, and sandalled feet, pacing
the great hall, standing in the armoury, or climbing the Cumberland
hills to visit the chapel of the Holy Mount and the hermit who dwelt
beside it.

As is the way with childhood's memories, the smallest, most trivial
details leapt up vivid, crystal clear.  The present was forgotten, the
future disregarded, in the sudden intimate dearness of that long-ago
past.

The Bishop allowed time for this realisation.  Then he spoke.

"True, the ship foundered, Hugh; true, none who sailed in her were seen
again.  And, if I tell you that one swimmer, after long buffeting, was
flung up on a rocky coast, lay for many weeks sick unto death in a
fisherman's humble cot, rose at last the frail shadow of his former
self, to find that his hair had turned white in that desperate night,
to find that none knew his name nor his estate, that--leaving Father
Gervaise and his failures at the bottom of the ocean--he could shave
his beard, and make his way to Rome under any name he pleased; if I
tell you all this, I trust you with a secret, Hugh, known to one other
only, during all these years--His Holiness, the Pope."

"Father!" exclaimed the Knight, with deep emotion; "Father"--  Then,
his voice broke.  He dropped on one knee in front of the Bishop, and
clasped the bands stretched out to him.

What strange thing had happened?  One, greatly loved and long mourned,
had risen from the dead; yet she who had best loved and most mourned
him, had herself passed to the Realm of Shadows, and was not here to
wonder and to rejoice.

"Father," said Hugh, when he could trust his voice, "in her last words
to me, my mother spoke of you.  I went to her chamber to bid her sleep
well, and together we knelt before the crucifix.  'Let us repeat,'
whispered my mother, 'those holy words of comfort which Father Gervaise
ever bid his penitents to say, as they kneeled before the dying
Redeemer.'  'Mother,' said I, 'I know them not.'  'Thou wert so young,
my son,' she said, 'when Father Gervaise last was with us.'  'Tell me
the words,' I said; 'I should like well to have them from thy lips.'
So, lifting her eyes to the dead Christ, my mother said, with awe and
reverence in her voice and a deep gladness on her face:
'He--ever--liveth--to make intercession for us.'  And, in the dawn of
the new day, her spirit passed."

The Bishop laid his hand upon the Knight's bowed head.  "My son," he
said, "of all the women I have known, thy gentle mother bore the most
beautiful and saintly character.  I would there were more such as she,
in our British homes."

"Father," said Hugh, brokenly, "knew you how much she had to bear?  My
father's fierce feuds with all, shut her up at last to utter
loneliness.  His anger against Holy Church and his contempt of Her
priests, cost my mother the comfort of your visits.  His life-long
quarrel with Earl Eustace de Norelle caused that our families, though
dwelling within a three hours' ride, were allowed no intercourse.
Never did I enter Castle Norelle until I rode up from the South, with a
message for Mora from the King.  And, to this day, Mora has never been
within the courtyard of my home!  When we were betrothed, I dared not
tell my parents--though Earl Eustace and his Countess both were
dead--lest my father's wrath might reach Mora, when I had gone.  News
of his death, chancing to me in a far-off land, brought me home.  And
truly, it was home indeed, at last!  Peace and content, where always
there had been turbulence and strain.  Father, I tell you this because
I know my gentle mother feared you did not understand, and that you may
have thought her love for you had failed."

Symon of Worcester smiled.

"Dear lad," he said, "I understood."

"Ah why," cried Hugh, with sudden passion, "why should a woman's whole
life be spoiled, and other lives be darkened and made sad, just by the
angry, churlish, sullen whims of----"

"Hush, boy!" said the Bishop, quickly.  "You speak of your father, and
you name the Dead.  Something dies in the Living, each time they speak
evil of the Dead.  I knew your father; and, though he loved me not,
yet, to be honest, I must say this of him: Sir Hugo was a good man and
true; upright, and a man of honour.  He carried his shield untarnished.
If he was feared by his friends, he was also feared by his foes.  Brave
he was and fearless.  One thing he lacked; and often, alas, they who
lack just one thing, lack all.

"Hugo d'Argent knew not love for his fellow-men.  To be a man, was to
earn his frown; all things human called forth his disdain.  To view the
same landscape, breathe the same air, in fact walk the same earth as
he, was to stand in his way, and raise his ire.  Yet in his harsh,
vexed manner he loved his wife, and loved his little son.  Nor had he
any self-conceit.  He realised in himself his own worst foe.  Lest we
fall into this snare, it is well daily to pray: 'O Lover of Mankind,
grant unto me truly to love my fellow-men; to honour them, until they
prove worthless; to trust them, until they prove faithless; and ever to
expect better of them, than I expect of myself; to think better of
them, than I think of myself.'  Let us go through life, my son,
searching for good in others, not for evil; we may miss the good, if we
search not for it; the evil, alas, will find us, quite soon enough,
unsought."

Suddenly Hugh lifted his head.

"Father," he said, "the starling!  Mind you the starling with the
broken wing, which you and I found in the woods and carried home; and
you did set his wing, and tamed him, and taught him to say 'Hugh'?
Each time I brought him food, you said: 'Hugh!  Hugh!'  And soon the
starling, seeing me coming, also said: 'Hugh!  Hugh!'  Do you remember,
Father?"

"I do remember," said the Bishop.  "I see thee now, coming across the
courtyard, bread and meat in thy hands--a little lad, bareheaded in the
sunshine, glowing with pleasure because the starling ran to meet thee,
shouting 'Hugh!'"

"Then listen, dear Father.  (Ah, how often have I wished to tell you
this!)  Soon after you were gone, that starling rudely taught me a hard
lesson.  Gaining strength, one day he left the courtyard, ran through
the buttery, and wandered in the garden.  I followed, whistling and
watching.  It greatly delighted the bird to find himself on turf.
There had been rain.  The grass was wet.  Presently a rash worm,
gliding from its hole, adventured forth.  The starling ran to the worm,
calling it 'Hugh.'  'Hugh!  Hugh!' he cried, and tugged it from the
earth.  'Hugh!  Hugh!' and pecked it, where helpless it lay squirming.
Then, shouting 'Hugh!' once more, gobbled it down.  I stood with heavy
heart, for I had thought that starling loved me with a true, personal
love, when he ran at my approach shouting my name.  Yet now I knew it
was the food I carried, he called 'Hugh'; it was the food, not me, he
loved.  Glad was I when, his wing grown strong, he flew away.  It cut
me to the heart to hear the worms, the grubs, the snails, the
caterpillars, all called 'Hugh'!"

The Bishop smiled, then sighed.  "Poor little eager heart," he said,
"learning so hard a lesson, all alone!  Yet is it a lesson, lad, sooner
or later learned in sadness by all generous hearts. . . .  And now,
leaving the past, with all its memories, let us return to the present,
and face the uncertain future.  Also, dear Knight, I must ask you to
remember, even when we are alone, that your old friend, Father
Gervaise, in his brown habit, lies at the bottom of the ocean; yet that
your new friend, Symon of Worcester, holds you and your interests very
near his heart."

The Bishop put out his hand.

Hugh seized and kissed it, knowing this was his farewell to Father
Gervaise.

Then he rose to his feet.

The Bishop said nothing; but an indefinable change came over him.
Again he extended his hand.

The Knight kneeled, and kissed the Bishop's ring.

"I thank you, my lord," he said, "for your great trust in me.  I will
not prove unworthy."  With this he went back to his seat.

The Bishop, lifting the faggot-fork, carefully stirred and built up the
logs.

"What were we saying, my dear Knight, when we strayed into a side
issue?  Ah, I remember!  I was telling you of my appointment to the See
of Worcester, and my belief that the Prioress failed to recognise in
me, one she had known long years before."

The Bishop put by the faggot-fork and turned from the fire.

"I found the promise of that radiant girlhood more than fulfilled.  She
was changed; she shewed obvious signs of having passed through the
furnace; but pure gold can stand the fire.  The strength of purpose,
the noble outlook upon life, the gracious tenderness for others, had
matured and developed.  Even the necessary restrictions of monastic
life could not modify the grand lines--both mental, and physical--on
which Nature had moulded her.

"I endeavoured to think no thoughts concerning her, other than should
be thought of a holy lady who has taken vows of celibacy.  Yet, seeing
her so fitted to have made house home for a man, helping him upward,
and to have been the mother of a fine race of sons and daughters, I
felt it grievous that in leaving the world for a reason which in no
sense could be considered a true vocation, she should have cut herself
off from such powers and possibilities.

"So passed the years in the calm service of God and of the Church; yet
always I seemed aware that a crisis would come, and that, when that
crisis came, she would need me."

The Bishop paused and looked at the Knight.

Hugh's face was in shadow; but, as the Bishop looked at him, the rubies
on his breast glittered in the firelight, as if some sudden thought had
set him strongly quivering.

At sight of which, a flash of firm resolve, like the swift drawing of a
sword, broke o'er the Bishop's calmness.  It was quick and powerful; it
seemed to divide asunder soul and spirit, joints and marrow, and to
discern the thoughts and intents of the heart.  And before that
two-edged blade could sheathe itself again, swiftly the Bishop spoke.

"Therefore, my dear Hugh, when you arrived with your tale of wrong and
treachery, all unconsciously to yourself, every word you spoke of your
betrothed revealed her to the man who had loved her while you were yet
a youth, with your spurs to win, and all life before you.

"I saw in your arrival, and in the strange tale you told, a wondrous
chance for her of that fuller development of life for which I knew her
to be so perfectly fitted.

"It had seemed indeed the irony of fate that, while I had fled and
dwelt in exile lest my presence should hold her back from marriage, the
treachery of others should have driven her into a life of celibacy.

"Therefore while, with my tacit consent, you went to work in your own
way, I sent my messenger to Rome bearing to the Holy Father a full
account of all, petitioning a dispensation from vows taken owing to
deception, and asking leave to unite in the holy sacrament of marriage
these long-sundered lovers, undertaking that no scandal should arise
therefrom, either in the Nunnery or in the City of Worcester.

"As you have seen, my messenger this night returned; and we now find
ourselves armed with the full sanction of His Holiness, providing the
Prioress, of her own free will, desires to renounce the high position
she has won in her holy calling, and to come to you."

The quiet voice ceased speaking.

The Knight rose slowly to his feet.  At first he stood silent.  Then he
spoke with a calm dignity which proved him worthy of the Bishop's trust.

"I greatly honour you, my lord," he said; "and were our ages and
conditions other than they are, so that we might fight for the woman we
love, I should be proud to cross swords with you."

The Bishop sat looking into the fire.  A faint smile flickered at the
corners of the sensitive mouth.  The fights he had fought for the woman
he loved had been of sterner quality than the mere crossing of knightly
swords.

Hugh d'Argent spoke again.

"Profoundly do I thank you, Reverend Father, for all that you have
done; and even more, for that which you did not do.  It was six years
after her first sojourn at the Court that I met Mora, loved her, and
won her; and well I know that the sweet love she gave to me was a love
from which no man had brushed the bloom."

Hugh paused.

Those kindly and very luminous eyes were still bent upon the fire.  Was
the Bishop finding it hard to face the fact that his life's secret had
now, by his own act, passed into the keeping of another?

Hugh moved a pace nearer.

"And deeply do I love you, Reverend Father, for your wondrous goodness
to her, and--for her sake--to me.  And I pray heaven," added Hugh
d'Argent simply, "that if she come to me, she may never know that she
once won the love of so greatly better a man than he who won hers."

With which the Knight dropped upon one knee, and humbly kissed the hem
of the Bishop's robe.

Symon of Worcester was greatly moved.

"My son," he said, "we are at one in desiring her happiness and highest
good.  For the rest, God, and her own pure heart, must guide her feet
into the way of peace."

The Bishop rose, and went to the casement.

"The aurora breaks in the east.  The dawn is near.  Come with me, Hugh,
to the chapel.  We pray for His Holiness, giving thanks for his
gracious letter and mandate; we praise for the safe return of my
messenger.  But we will also offer up devout petition that the Prioress
may have clear light at this parting of the ways, and that our
enterprise may be brought to a happy conclusion."

So, presently, in the dimly-lighted chapel, the Knight knelt alone;
while, away at the high altar, remote, wrapt, absorbed in the supreme
act of his priestly office, stood the Bishop, celebrating mass.

Yet one anxious prayer ascended from the hearts of both.


And, in the pale dawn of that new day, the woman for whom both the
Knight and the Bishop prayed, kept vigil in her cell, before the shrine
of the Madonna.

"Blessèd Virgin," she said; "thou who lovedst Saint Joseph, being
betrothed to him, yet didst keep thyself an holy shrine consecrate to
the Lord and His need of thee--oh, grant unto me strength to put from
me this constant torment at the thought of his sufferings to whom once
I gave my troth, and to reconsecrate myself wholly to the service of my
Lord."


Thus these three knelt, as a new day dawned.


And the Knight prayed: "Give her to me!"


And the Bishop prayed: "Guide her feet into the way of peace."


And the Prioress, with hands crossed upon her breast and eyes uplifted,
said: "Cause me to know the way wherein I should walk; for I lift up my
soul unto Thee."


The silver streaks of the aurora paled before soaring shafts of gold,
bright heralds of the rising sun.

Then from the Convent garden trilled softly the first notes, poignant
but passing sweet, of the robin's song.




CHAPTER XXV

MARY ANTONY RECEIVES THE BISHOP

The morning after the return from Rome of the Bishop's messenger, the
old lay-sister, Mary Antony, chanced to be crossing the Convent
courtyard, when there came a loud knocking on the outer gates.

Mary Antony, hastening, thrust aside the buxom porteress, and herself
opened the _guichet_, and looked out.

The Lord Bishop, mounted upon his white palfrey, waited without;
Brother Philip in attendance.

What a bewildering surprise!  What a fortunate thing, thought old
Antony, that she should chance to be there to deal with such an
emergency.

Never did the Bishop visit the Nunnery, without sending a messenger
beforehand to know whether the Prioress could see him, stating the
exact hour of his proposed arrival; so that, when the great doors were
flung wide and the Bishop rode into the courtyard, the Prioress would
be standing at the top of the steps to receive him; Mother Sub-Prioress
in attendance in the background; the other holy ladies upon their knees
within the entrance; Mary Antony, well out of sight, yet where peeping
was possible, because she loved to see the Reverend Mother kneel and
kiss the Bishop's ring, rising to her feet again without pause, making
of the whole movement one graceful, deep obeisance.  After which, Mary
Antony, still peeping, greatly loved to see the Prioress mount the
wide, stone staircase with the Bishop; each shewing a courtly deference
to the other.

(One of Mary Antony's most exalted dreams of heaven, was of a place
where she should sit upon a jasper seat and see the Reverend Mother and
the great Lord Bishop mounting together interminable flights of golden
stairs; while Mother Sub-Prioress and Sister Mary Rebecca looked
through black bars, somewhere down below, whence they would have a good
view of Mary Antony on her jasper seat, but no glimpse of the golden
stairs or of the radiant figures which she watched ascending.)

So much for the usual visits of the Bishop, when everything was in
readiness for his reception.

But now, all unexpected, the Bishop waited without the gate, and Mary
Antony had to deal with this emergency.

Crying to the porteress to open wide, she hastened to the steps. . . .
It was impossible to summon the Reverend Mother in time. . . .  The
Lord Bishop must not be kept waiting! . . .  Even now the great doors
were rolling back.

Mary Antony mounted the six steps; then turned in the doorway.

The Lord Bishop must be received.  There was nobody else to do it.  She
would receive the Lord Bishop!

As she saw him riding in upon Icon, blessing the porteress as he
passed, she remembered how she had ridden round the river meadow as the
Bishop.  Now she must play her part as the Prioress.

So it came to pass that, as he rode up to the door and dismounted,
flinging his rein to Brother Philip, the Bishop found himself
confronted by the queer little figure of the aged lay-sister, drawn up
to its full height and obviously upheld by a sense of importance and
dignity.

As the Bishop reached the entrance, she knelt and kissed his ring; then
tried to rise quickly, failed, and clutching at his hand, exclaimed:
"Devil take my old knee-joints!"

Never before had the Bishop been received with such a formula!  Never
had his ring been kissed by a lay-sister!  But remembering the scene
when old Antony rode round the field upon Icon, he understood that she
now was playing the part of Prioress.

"Good-day, worthy Mother," he said, as he raised her.  "The spirit is
willing I know, but, in your case, the knee-joints are weak.  But no
wonder, for they have done you long service.  Why, I get up slowly from
kneeling, yet my knees are thirty years younger than yours. . . .  Nay
I will not mount to the Reverend Mother's chamber until you acquaint
her of my arrival.  Take me round to the garden, and there let me wait
in the shade, while you seek her."

Greatly elated at the success of her effort, and emboldened by his
charming condescension, Mary Antony led the Bishop through the
rose-arch; and, casting a furtive glance at his face from behind the
curtain of her veil, ventured to hope there was naught afoot which
could bring trouble or care to the Reverend Mother.

Mary Antony was trotting beside the Bishop, down the long walk between
the yew hedges, when she gave vent to this anxious question.

At once the Bishop slackened speed.

"Not so fast, Sister Antony," he said.  "I pray you to remember mine
age, and to moderate your pace.  Why should you expect trouble or
anxiety for the Reverend Mother?"

"Nay," said Mary Antony, "I expect naught; I saw naught; I heard
naught!  'Twas all mine own mistake, counting with my peas.  I told the
Reverend Mother so, and set her mind at rest by carrying up _six_ peas,
saying that I had found _six_ and not _five_ in my wallet."

"Let us pause," said the Bishop, "and look at this lily.  How lovely
are its petals.  How tall and white it shews against the hedge.  Why
did you need to set the Reverend Mother's mind at rest, Sister Antony,
by carrying up six peas?"

"Because," said the old lay-sister, "when I had counted as they
returned, the twenty holy ladies who had gone to Vespers, yet another
passed making twenty-one.  Upon which I ran and reported to the
Reverend Mother, saying in my folly, that I feared the twenty-first was
Sister Agatha, returned to walk amongst the Living, she being over
fifty years numbered with the Dead.  Yet many a time, just before dawn,
have I heard her rapping on the cloister door; aye, many a time--tap!
tap! tap!  But what good would there be in opening to a poor lady you
helped thrust into her shroud, nigh upon sixty years before?  So 'Tap
away!' says I; 'tap away, Sister Agatha!  Try Saint Peter at the gates
of Paradise.  Old Antony knows better than to let you in.'"

"What said the Reverend Mother when you reported on a twenty-first
White Lady?" asked the Bishop.

"Reverend Mother bid me begone, while she herself dealt with the wraith
of Sister Agatha."

"And why did you _not_ go?" asked the Bishop, quietly.

Completely taken aback, Mary Antony's ready tongue failed her.  She
stood stock still and stared at the Bishop.  Her gums began to rattle
and she clapped her knuckles against them, horror and dismay in her
eyes.

The Bishop looked searchingly into the frightened old face, and there
read all he wanted to know.  Then he smiled; and, taking her gently by
the arm, paced on between the yew hedges.

"Sister Antony," he said, and the low tones of his voice fell like
quiet music upon old Antony's perturbed spirit; "you and I, dear Sister
Antony, love the Reverend Mother so truly and so faithfully, that there
is nothing we would not do, to save her a moment's pain.  _We_ know how
noble and how good she is; and that she will always decide aright, and
follow in the footsteps of our blessèd Lady and all the holy saints.
But others there are, who do not love her as we love her, or know her
as we know her; and they might judge her wrongly.  Therefore we must
tell to none, that which we know--how the Reverend Mother, alone, dealt
with that visitor, who was not the wraith of Sister Agatha."

Mary Antony peeped up at the Bishop.  A light of great joy was on her
face.  Her eyes had lost their look of terror, and began to twinkle
cunningly.

"I know naught," she said.  "I saw naught; I heard naught."

The Bishop smiled.

"How many peas were left in your wallet, Sister Antony ?"

"Five," chuckled Mary Antony.

"Why did you shew six to the Reverend Mother?"

"To set her mind at rest," whispered the old lay-sister.

"To cause her to think that you had heard naught, seen naught, and knew
naught?"

Mary Antony nodded, chuckling again.

"Faithful old heart!" said the Bishop.  "What gave thee this thought?"

"Our blessèd Lady, in answer to her petition, sharpened the wits of old
Antony."

The Bishop sighed.  "May our blessèd Lady keep them sharp," he
murmured, half aloud.

"Amen," said Mary Antony with fervour.




CHAPTER XXVI

LOVE NEVER FAILETH

The Bishop awaited the Prioress on that stone seat under the beech,
from which the robin had carried off the pea.

He saw her coming through the sunlit cloisters.

As she moved down the steps, and came swiftly toward him, he was
conscious at once of an indefinable change in her.

Had that ride upon Icon set her free from trammels in which she had
been hitherto immeshed?

As she reached him, he took both her hands, so that she should not
kneel.

"Already I have been received with obeisance, my daughter," he said;
and told her of old Mary Antony's quaint little figure, standing to do
the honours in the doorway.

The Prioress, at this, laughed gaily, and in her turn told the Bishop
of the scene, on this very spot, when old Antony displayed her peas to
the robin.

"What peas?" asked the Bishop; and so heard the whole story of the
twenty-five peas and the daily counting, and of the identifying of
certain of the peas with various members of the Community.  "And a
large, white pea, chosen for its fine aspect, was myself," said the
Prioress; "and, leaving the Sub-Prioress and Sister Mary Rebecca,
Master Robin swooped down and flew off with me!  Hearing cries of
distress, I hastened hither, to find Mary Antony denouncing the robin
as 'Knight of the Bloody Vest,' and making loud lamentations over my
abduction.  Her imaginings become more real to her than realities."

"She hath a faithful heart," said the Bishop, "and a shrewd wit."

"Faithful?  Aye," said the Prioress, "faithful and loving.  Yet it is
but lately I have realised, the love, beneath her carefulness and
devotion."  The Prioress bent her level brows, looking away to the
overhanging branches of the Pieman's tree.  "How quickly, in these
places, we lose the very remembrance of the meaning of personal, human
love.  We grow so soon accustomed to allowing ourselves to dwell only
upon the abstract or the divine."

"That is a loss," said the Bishop.  He turned and began to pace slowly
toward the cloister; "a grievous loss, my daughter.  Sooner than that
you should suffer that loss, beyond repair, I would let the daring
Knight of the Bloody Vest carry you off on swift wing.  Better a
robin's nest, if, love be there, than a nunnery full of dead hearts."

He heard the quick catch of her breath, but gave her no chance to speak.

"'And now abideth faith, hope, love, these three,'" quoted the Bishop;
"'but the greatest of these is love.'"

They were moving through the cloisters.  The Prioress turned in the
doorway, pausing that the Bishop might pass in before her.

"This, my lord," she said, with a fine sweep of her arm, "is the abode
of Faith and Hope, and also of that divine Love, which excelleth both
Hope and Faith."

"Nay," said the Bishop, "I pray you, listen.  'Love suffereth long, and
is kind; love envieth not; love vaunteth not itself, is not puffed up;
doth not behave itself unseemly; seeketh not her own; is not easily
provoked, thinking no evil; rejoiceth not in iniquity, but rejoiceth in
the truth; beareth all things, believeth all things, hopeth all things,
endureth all things.  Love never faileth.'  Methinks," said the Bishop,
in a tone of gentle meditation, as he entered the Prioress's cell, "the
apostle was speaking of a most human love; yet he rated it higher than
faith and hope."

"Are you still dwelling upon Sister Mary Seraphine, my lord?" inquired
the Prioress, and in her voice he heard the sound of a gathering storm.

"Nay, my dear Prioress," said the Bishop, seating himself in the
Spanish chair, and laying his biretta upon the table near by; "I speak
not of self-love, nor does the apostle whose words I quote.  I take it,
he writes of human love, sanctified; upborne by faith and hope, yet
greater than either; just as a bird is greater than its wings, yet
cannot mount without them.  We must have faith, we must have hope; then
our poor earthly loves can rise from the lower level of self-seeking
and self-pleasing and take their place among those things that are
eternal."

The Prioress had placed her chair opposite the Bishop.  She was very
pale, and her lips trembled.  She made so great an effort to speak with
calmness, that her voice sounded stern and hard.

"Why this talk of earthly loves, my Lord Bishop, in a place where all
earthly love has been renounced and forgotten?"

The Bishop, seeing those trembling lips, ignored the hard tones, and
answered, very tenderly, with a simple directness which scorned all
evasion:

"Because, my daughter, I am here to plead for Hugh."




CHAPTER XXVII

THE WOMAN AND HER CONSCIENCE

"For Hugh?" said the Prioress.  And then again, in low tones of
incredulous amazement, "For Hugh!  What know you of Hugh, my lord?"

The Bishop looked steadfastly at the Prioress, and replied with
exceeding gravity and earnestness:

"I know that in breaking your solemn troth to him, you are breaking a
very noble heart; and that in leaving his home desolate, you are
robbing him not only of his happiness but also of his faith.  Men are
apt to rate our holy religion, not by its theories, but by the way in
which it causeth us to act in our dealings with them.  If you condemn
Hugh to sit beside his hearth, through the long years, a lonely,
childless man, you take the Madonna from his home; if you take your
love from him, I greatly fear lest you should also rob him of his
belief in the love of God.  I do not say that these things should be
so; I say that we must face the fact that thus they are.  And
remember--between a man and woman of noble birth, each with a stainless
escutcheon, each believing the other to be the soul of honour, a broken
troth is no light matter."

"I did not break my troth," said the Prioress, "until I believed that
Hugh had broken his.  I had suffered sore anguish of heart and
humiliation of spirit, over the news of his marriage with his cousin
Alfrida, ere I resolved to renounce the world and enter the cloister."

"But Hugh did not wed his cousin, nor any other woman," said the
Bishop.  "He was true to you in every thought and act, even after he
also had passed through sore anguish of heart by reason of your
supposed marriage with another suitor."

"I learned the truth but a few days since," said the Prioress.  "For
seven long years I thought Hugh false to me.  For seven long years I
believed him the husband of another woman, and schooled myself to
forget every memory of past tenderness."

"You were both deceived," said the Bishop.  "You have both passed
through deep waters.  You each owe it to the other to make all possible
reparation."

"For seven holy years," said the Prioress, firmly, "I have been the
bride of Christ."

"Do you love Hugh?" asked the Bishop.

There was silence in the chamber.

The Prioress desired, most fervently, to take her stand as one dead to
all earthly loves and desires.  Yet each time she opened her lips to
reply, a fresh picture appeared in the mirror of her mental vision, and
closed them.

She saw herself, with hand outstretched, clasping Hugh's as they
kneeled together before the shrine of the Madonna.  She could feel the
rush of pulsing life flow from his hand to the palm of hers, and so
upward to her poor numbed heart, making it beat its wings like a caged
bird.

She felt again the strength and comfort of the strong arm on which she
leaned, as slowly through the darkness she and Hugh paced in silence,
side by side.

She remembered each time when obedience had seemed strangely sweet, and
she had loved the manly abruptness of his commands.

She saw Hugh, in the ring of yellow light cast by the lantern, kneeling
at her feet.  She felt his hair, thick and soft, between her fingers.

And then--she remembered that shuddering sob, and the instant breaking
down of every barrier.  He was hers, to comfort; she was his, to soothe
his pain.  Then--the exquisite moment of yielding; the relief of the
clasp of his strong arms; the passing away of the suffering of long
years, as she felt his lips on hers, and surrendered to the hunger of
his kiss.

Then--one last picture--when loyal to her wish, felt rather than
expressed, he had freed her, and passed, without further word or touch,
up into that dim grey light like a pearly dawn at sea--passed, and been
lost to view; she saw herself left in utter loneliness, the heavy door
locked by her own turning of the key, he on one side, she on the other,
for ever; she saw herself lying beneath the ground, in darkness and
desolation, her face in the damp dust where his feet had stood.

"Do you love Hugh?" again demanded the Bishop.

And the Prioress lifted eyes full of suffering, reproach, and pain, but
also full of courage and truth, to his face, and answered simply:
"Alas, my lord, I do."

The silence thereafter following was tense with conflict.  The Bishop
turned his eyes to the figure of the Redeemer upon the cross,
self-sacrifice personified, while the Prioress mastered her emotion.

Then: "'Love never faileth,'" said the Bishop gently.

But the Prioress had regained command over herself, and the gentle
words were to her a challenge.  She donned, forthwith, the breastplate
of holy resolve, and drew her sword.

"My Lord Bishop, you have wrung from me a confession of my love; but in
so doing, you have wrung from me a confession of sin.  A nun may not
yield to such love as Hugh d'Argent still desires to win from me.  With
long hours of prayer and vigil, have I sought to purge my soul from the
stain of a weak yielding--even for 'a moment'--to the masterful
insistence of this man, who forced himself, by the subterfuge of a
sacrilegious masquerade, into the sacred precincts of our Nunnery.  I
know not whom he bribed"--continued the Prioress, flashing an indignant
glance of suspicion at the Bishop.

"'Love thinking no evil,'" murmured Symon of Worcester.

"But I do know, that somebody in high authority must have connived at
his plotting, or he could not have found himself alone in the crypt at
the hour of Vespers, in such wise as to assume our dress and, mingling
with the returning procession, gain entrance to the cloisters.  And
somebody must still be aiding and abetting his plans, or he could not
be, as he himself told me he would be, daily in the crypt alone, during
the hour when we pass to and from the clerestory.  It angers me, my
lord, to think that one who should, in this, be on my side, taketh part
against me."

"'Is not easily provoked,'" quoted the Bishop.

"In fact I am tempted, my lord," said the Prioress, rising to her feet,
tall and indignant, "I am almost tempted, my Lord Bishop, to forget the
reverence which I owe to your high office----"

"'Doth not behave itself unseemly,'" murmured Symon of Worcester,
putting on his biretta.

The Prioress turned her back upon the Bishop, and walked over to the
window.  She was so angry that she felt the tears stinging beneath her
eyelids; yet at the same time she experienced a most incongruous desire
to kneel down beside that beautiful and dignified figure, rest her head
against the Bishop's knees, and pour out the cruel tale of conflicts,
uncertainties and strivings, temptations and hard-won victories, which,
had lately made up the sum of her nights and days.  He had been her
trusted friend and counsellor during all these years.  Yet now she knew
him arrayed against her, and she feared him more than she feared Hugh.
Hugh wrestled with her feelings; and, on the plane of the senses, she
knew her will would triumph.  But the Bishop wrestled with her
mentality; and behind his calm gentleness was a strength of intellect
which, if she yielded at all, would seize and hold her, as steel
fingers in a velvet glove.

She returned to her seat, composed but determined.

"Reverend Father," she said, "I pray you to pardon my too swift
indignation.  To you I look to aid me in this time of difficulty.  I
grieve for the sorrow and disappointment to a brave and noble knight, a
loyal lover, and a most faithful heart.  But I cannot reward faith with
un-faith.  If I broke my sacred vows in order to give myself to him, I
should not bring a blessing to his home.  Better an empty hearth than a
hearth where broods a curse.  Besides, we never could live down the
scandal caused.  I should be anathema to all.  The Pope himself would
doubtless excommunicate us.  It would mean endless sorrow for me, and
danger for Hugh.  On these grounds, alone, it cannot be."

Then the Bishop drew from his sash a folded sheet of vellum.

"My daughter," he said, "when Hugh came to me with his grievous tale of
treachery and loss, he refused to give me the name of the woman he
sought, saying only that he believed she was to be found among the
White Ladies of Worcester.  When I asked her name he answered: 'Nay, I
guard her name, as I would guard mine honour.  If I fail to win her
back; if she withhold herself from me, so that I ride away alone; then
must I ride away leaving no shadow of reproach on her fair fame.  Her
name will be for ever in my heart,' said Hugh, 'but no word of mine
shall have left it, in the mind of any man, linked with a broken troth
or a forsaken lover.'  I tell you this, my daughter, lest you should
misjudge a very loyal knight.

"But no true lover was ever a diplomat.  Hugh had not talked long with
me, before you stood clearly revealed.  A few careful questions settled
the matter, beyond a doubt.  Whereupon, my dear Prioress----"

The Bishop paused.  It became suddenly difficult to proceed.  The clear
eyes of the Prioress were upon him.

"Whereupon, my lord?"

"Whereupon I realised--an early dream of mine seemed promised a
possible fulfilment.  I knew Hugh as a lad--  It is a veritable passion
with me that all things should attain unto their full perfection--  In
short, I sent a messenger to Rome, bearing a careful account of the
whole matter, in a private letter from myself to His Holiness the Pope.
Last evening, my messenger returned, bringing a letter from the Holy
Father, with this enclosed."

The Bishop held out the folded document.

The Prioress rose, took it from him, and unfolded it.

As she read the opening lines, the amazement on her face quickly
gathered into a frown.

"What!" she said.  "The name and rank I resigned on entering this
Order!  Who dares to write or speak of me as 'Mora, Countess of
Norelle'?"

"Merely His Holiness the Pope, and the Bishop of Worcester," said the
Bishop meekly, in an undertone, not meaning the Prioress to hear; and,
indeed, she ignored this answer, her words having been an angry
ejaculation, rather than a question.

But there was worse to come.

"Dispensation!" exclaimed the Prioress.

"Absolution!" she cried, a little further on.

And at last, reading rapidly, in tones of uncontrollable anger and
indignation: "'Empowers Symon, Lord Bishop of Worcester, or any priest
he may appoint, to unite in the holy sacrament of marriage the
Knight-Crusader, Hugh d'Argent, and Mora de Norelle, sometime Prioress
of the White Ladies of Worcester.'  _Sometime_ Prioress?  In very
truth, they have dared so to write it!  SOMETIME Prioress!  It will be
well they should understand she is Prioress NOW--not some time or any
time, but NOW and HERE!"

She turned upon the Bishop.

"My lord, the Church seems to be bringing its powers to bear on the
side of the World, the Flesh, and the Devil, leaving a woman and her
conscience to stand alone and battle unaided with the grim forces
arrayed against her.  But you shall see that she knows how to deal with
any weapon of the adversary which happens to fall into her hands."

Upon which the Prioress rent the mandate from top to bottom, then
across and again across; flung the pieces upon the floor, and set her
foot upon them.

"Thus I answer," she cried, "your attempt, my lord, to induce the Pope
to release me from vows which I hold to be eternally sacred and
binding.  And if you are bent upon divorcing a nun from her Heavenly
Union, and making her to become the chattel of a man, you must seek her
elsewhere than in the Convent of the White Ladies of Worcester, my Lord
Bishop!"

So spoke the angry Prioress, making the quiet chamber to ring with her
scorn and indignation.

The Bishop had made no attempt to prevent the tearing of the document.
When she flung it upon the floor, placing her foot upon the fragments,
he merely looked at them regretfully, and then back upon her face, back
into those eyes which flamed on him in furious indignation.  And in his
own there was a look so sorrowful, so deeply wounded, and yet withal so
tenderly understanding, that it quelled and calmed the anger of the
Prioress.

Her eyes fell slowly, from the serene sadness of that quiet face, to
the silver cross, studded with oriental amethysts, at his breast; to
the sash girdling his purple cassock; to the hand resting on his knees;
to the stone in his ring, from which the rich colour had faded, leaving
it pale and clear, like a large teardrop on the Bishop's finger; to his
shoes, with their strange Italian buckles; then along the floor to her
own angry foot, treading upon the torn fragments of that precious
document, procured, at such pains and cost, from His Holiness at Rome.

Then, suddenly, the Prioress faltered, weakened, fell upon her knees,
with a despairing cry, clasped her hands upon the Bishop's knees, and
laid her forehead upon them.

"Alas," she sobbed, "what have I done!  In my pride and arrogance, I
have spoken ill to you, my lord, who have ever shewn me most
considerate kindness; and in a moment of ill-judged resentment, I have
committed sacrilege against the Holy Father, rending the deed which
bears his signature.  Alas, woe is me!  In striving to do right, I have
done most grievous wrong; in seeking not to sin, lo, I have sinned
beyond belief!"

The Prioress wept, her head upon her hands, clasped and resting upon
the Bishop's knees.

Symon of Worcester laid his hand very gently upon that bowed head, and
as he did so his eyes sought again the figure of the Christ upon the
cross.  The Prioress would have been startled indeed, had she lifted
her head and seen those eyes--heretofore shrewd, searching, kindly, or
twinkling and gay,--now full of an unfathomable pain.  But, sobbing
with her face hidden, the Prioress was conscious only of her own
sufferings.

Presently the Bishop began to speak.

"We did not mean to overrule your judgment, or to force your
inclination, my daughter.  If we appear to have done so, the blame is
mine alone.  This mandate is drawn up entirely along the lines of my
suggestion, owing to my influence with His Holiness, and based upon
particulars furnished by me.  Now let me read to you the private letter
from the Holy Father to myself, giving further important conditions."

The Bishop drew forth and unfolded the letter from Rome, and very
slowly, that each syllable might carry weight, he read it aloud.

As the gracious and kindly words fell upon the Prioress's ear,
commanding that no undue pressure should be brought to bear upon her,
and insisting that it must be entirely by her own wish, if she resigned
her office and availed herself of this dispensation from her vows, she
felt humbled to the dust at thought of her own violence, and of the
injustice of her angry words.

Her weeping became so heartbroken, that the Bishop again laid his left
hand, with kindly comforting touch, upon her bowed head.

As he read the Pope's most particular injunctions as to the manner in
which she must leave the Nunnery and take her place in the world once
more, so as to prevent any public scandal, she fell silent from sheer
astonishment, holding her breath to listen to the final clause
empowering the Bishop to announce within the Convent, when her absence
became known, that she had been moved on by him, secretly, with the
knowledge and approval of the Pope, to a place where she was required
for higher service.

"Higher service," said the Prioress, her face still hidden.  "_Higher_
service?  Can it be that the Holy Father really speaks of the return to
earthly love and marriage, the pleasures of the world, and the joys of
home life, as 'higher service'?"

The grief, the utter disillusion, the dismayed question in her tone,
moved the Bishop to compunction.

"Mine was the phrase, to begin with, my daughter," he admitted.  "I
used it to the Holy Father, and I confess that, in using it, I did mean
to convey that which, as you well know.  I have long believed, that
wifehood and motherhood, if worthily performed, may rank higher in the
Divine regard than vows of celibacy.  But, in adopting the expression,
the Holy Father, we may rest assured, had no thought of undervaluing
the monastic life, or the high position within it to which you have
attained.  I should rather take it that he was merely accepting my
assurance that the new vocation to which you were called would, in your
particular case, be higher service."

The Prioress, lifting her head, looked long into the Bishop's face,
without making reply.

Her eyes were drowned in tears; dark shadows lay beneath them.  Yet the
light of a high resolve, unconquerable within her, shone through this
veil of sorrow, as when the sun, behind it, breaks through the mist,
victorious, chasing by its clear beams the baffling fog.

Seeing that look, the Bishop knew, of a sudden, that he had failed;
that the Knight had failed; that the all-powerful pronouncement from
the Vatican had failed.

The woman and her conscience held the field.

Having conquered her own love, having mastered her own natural yearning
for her lover, she would overcome with ease all other assailants.

In two days' time Hugh would ride away alone.  Unless a miracle
happened, Mora would not be with him.

The Bishop faced defeat as he looked into those clear eyes, fearless
even in their sorrowful humility.

"Oh, child," he said, "you love Hugh!  Can you let him ride forth
alone, accompanied only by the grim spectres of unfaith and of despair?
His hope, his faith, his love, all centre in you.  Another Prioress can
be found for this Nunnery.  No other bride can be found for Hugh
d'Argent.  He will have his own betrothed, or none."

Still kneeling, the Prioress threw back her head, looking upward, with
clasped hands.

"Reverend Father," she said, "I will not go to the man I love, trailing
broken vows, like chains, behind me.  There could be no harmony in
life's music.  Whene'er I moved, where'er I trod, I should hear the
constant clanking of those chains.  No man can set me free from vows
made to God.  But----"

The Prioress paused, looking past the Bishop at the gracious figure of
the Madonna.  She had remembered, of a sudden, how Hugh had knelt
there, saying: "Blessèd Virgin . . . help this woman of mine to
understand that if she break her troth to me, holding herself from me,
now, when I am come to claim her, she sends me out to an empty life, to
a hearth beside which no woman will sit, to a home forever desolate."

"But?" said the Bishop, leaning forward.  "Yes, my daughter?  But?"

"But if our blessèd Lady herself vouchsafed me a clear sign that my
first duty is to Hugh, if she absolved me from my vows, making it
evident that God's will for me is that, leaving the Cloister, I should
wed Hugh and dwell with him in his home; then I would strive to bring
myself to do this thing.  But I can take release from none save from
our Lord, to Whom those vows were made, or from our Lady, who knoweth
the heart of a woman, and whose grace hath been with me all through the
strivings and conflicts of the years that are past."

The Bishop sighed.  "Alas," he said; "alas, poor Hugh!"

For that our Lady should vouchsafe a clear sign, would have to be a
miracle; and, though he would not have admitted it to the Prioress, the
Bishop believed, in his secret heart, that the age of miracles was past.

One so fixed in her determination, so persistent in her assertion, so
loud in her asseveration, would scarce be likely to hear the inward
whisperings of Divine suggestion.

Therefore, should our Lady intervene with clear guidance, that
intervention must be miraculous.  And the Bishop sighing, said: "Alas,
poor Hugh!"

His eye fell upon the fragments of rent vellum on the floor.  He held
out his hand.

The Prioress gathered up the fragments, and placed them in the Bishop's
outstretched hand.

"Alas, my lord," she said, "you were witness of my grievous sin in thus
rending the gracious message of His Holiness.  Will it please you to
appoint me a penance, if such an act can indeed be expiated?"

"The sin, my daughter, as I will presently explain, is scarcely so
great as you think it.  But, such as it is, it arose from a lack of
calmness and of that mental equipoise which sails unruffled through a
sea of contradiction.  The irritability which results in displays of
sudden temper is so foreign to your nature that it points to your
having passed through a time of very special strain, both mental and
physical; probably overlong vigils and fastings, while you wrestled
with this anxious problem upon which so much, in the future, depends.

"As you ask me for penance, I will give you two: one which will set
right your ill-considered action; the other which will help to remedy
the cause of that action.

"The first is, that you place these fragments together and, taking a
fresh piece of vellum, make a careful copy of this writing which you
destroyed.

"The second is that, in order to regain the usual equipoise of your
mental attitude, you ride to-day, for an hour, in the river meadow.  My
white palfrey, Iconoklastes, shall be in the courtyard at noon.
Yesterday, my daughter, you rode for pleasure.  To-day you will ride
for penance; and incidentally"--an irrepressible little smile crept
round the corners of the Bishop's mouth, and twinkled in his
eyes--"incidentally, my daughter, you will work off a certain stiffness
from which you must be suffering, after the unwonted exercise.  Ah me!"
said the Bishop, "that is ever the Divine method.  Punishments should
be remedial, as well as deterrent.  There is much stiffness of mind of
which we must be rid before we can stoop to the portal of God's
'whosoever' and, passing through the narrow gate, enter the Kingdom of
Heaven as little children."

The Bishop rose, and giving his hand to the Prioress raised her to her
feet.

"My lord," she said, "as ever you are most kind to me.  Yet I fear you
have been too lenient for my own peace of mind.  To have destroyed in
anger the mandate of His Holiness----"

"Nay, my daughter," said the Bishop.  "The mandate of His Holiness,
inscribed upon parchment, from which hangs the great seal of the
Vatican, is safely placed among my most precious documents.  You have
but destroyed the result of an hour's careful work.  I rose betimes
this morning to make this copy.  I should not have allowed you to tear
it, had not the writing been my own.  But I took pains to reproduce
exactly the peculiar style of lettering they use in Rome, and you will
do the same in your copy."

Turning, the Bishop knelt for a few moments in prayer before the
Madonna.  He could not have explained why, but somehow the only hope
for Hugh seemed to be connected with this spot.

Yet it was hardly reassuring that, when he lifted grave and anxious
eyes, our Lady gently smiled, and the sweet Babe looked merry.

Rising, the Bishop turned, with unwonted sternness, to the Prioress.

"Remember," he said, "Hugh rides away to-morrow night; rides away,
never to return."

Her steadfast eyes did not falter.

"He had better have ridden away five days ago, my lord.  He had my
answer, and I bade him go.  By staying he has but prolonged his
suspense and my pain."

"Yes," said the Bishop slowly, "he had better have ridden away; or,
better still, have never come upon this fruitless quest."

He moved toward the door.

The Prioress reached it before him.

With her hand upon the latch: "Your blessing, Reverend Father,"
entreated the Prioress, rather breathlessly.

"_Benedicite_," said the Bishop, with uplifted fingers, but with eyes
averted; and passed out.




CHAPTER XXVIII

THE WHITE STONE

Old Mary Antony was at the gate, when the Bishop rode out from the
courtyard.

Thrusting the porteress aside, she pressed forward, standing with
anxious face uplifted, as the Bishop approached.

He reined in Icon, and, bending from the saddle, murmured: "Take care
of her, Sister Antony.  I have left her in some distress."

"Hath she decided aright?" whispered the old lay-sister.

"She always decides aright," said the Bishop.  "But she is so made that
she will thrust happiness from her with both hands unless our Lady
should herself offer it, by vision or revelation.  I could wish thy gay
little Knight of the Bloody Vest might indeed fly with her to his nest
and teach her a few sweet lessons, in the green privacy of some leafy
paradise.  But I tell thee too much, worthy Mother.  Keep a silent
tongue in that shrewd old head of thine.  Minister to her; and send
word to me if I am needed.  _Benedicite_."

An hour later, mounted upon his black mare, Shulamite, the Bishop rode
to the high ground, on the north-east, above the city, from whence he
could look down upon the river meadow.

As he had done on the previous day, he watched the Prioress riding upon
Icon.

Once she put the horse to so sudden and swift a gallop that the Bishop,
watching from afar, reined back Shulamite almost on to her haunches, in
a sudden fear that Icon was about to leap into the stream.

For an hour the Prioress rode, with flying veil, white on the white
steed; a fair marble group, quickened into motion.

Then, that penance being duly performed, she vanished through the
archway.

Turning Shulamite, Symon of Worcester rode slowly down the hill, passed
southward, and entered the city by Friar's Gate; and so to the Palace,
where Hugh d'Argent waited.

The Bishop led him, through a postern, into the garden; and there on a
wide lawn, out of earshot of any possible listeners, the Bishop and the
Knight walked up and down in earnest conversation.


At length: "To-morrow, in the early morn," said the Knight, "I send her
tire-woman on to Warwick, with all her effects, keeping back only the
riding suit.  Should she elect to come, we must be free to ride without
drawing rein.  Even so we shall reach Warwick only something before
midnight."

"She tore it up and planted her foot upon it," remarked the Bishop.

"I will not give up hope," said the Knight.

"Nothing short of a miracle, my son, will change her mind, or move her
from her fixed resolve."

"Then our Lady will work a miracle," declared the Knight bravely.  "I
prayed 'Send her to me!' and our blessèd Lady smiled."

"A sculptured smile, dear lad, is ever there.  Had you prayed 'Hold her
from me!' our Lady would equally have smiled."

"Nay," said the Knight; "I keep my trust in prayer."

They paused at the parapet overhanging the river.

"I was successful," said the Knight, "in dealing with Eustace, her
nephew.  There will be no need to apply to the King.  The ambition was
his mother's.  Now Eleanor is dead, he cares not for the Castle.  Next
month he weds an heiress, with large estates, and has no wish to lay
claim to Mora's home.  All is now once more as it was when she left it.
Her own people are in charge.  I plan to take her there when we leave
Warwick, riding northward by easy stages."

The Bishop, stooping, picked up a smooth, white stone, and flung it
into the river.  It fell with a splash, and sank.  The water closed
upon it.  It had vanished instantly from view.

Then the Bishop spoke.  "Hugh, my dear lad, she thought it was the
Pope's own deed and signature, yet she tore it across, and then again
across; flung it upon the ground, and set her foot upon it.  I deem it
now as impossible that the Prioress should change her mind upon this
matter, as that we should ever see again that stone which now lies deep
on the river-bed."

It was a high dive from the parapet; and, to the Bishop, watching the
spot where the Knight cleft the water, the moments seemed hours.

But when the Knight reappeared, the white stone was in his hand.

The Bishop went down to the water-gate.

"Bravely done, my son!" he called, as the Knight swam to the steps.
"You deserve to win."

But to himself he said: "Fighting men and quick-witted women will be
ever with us, gaining their ends by strenuous endeavour.  But the age
of miracles is past."

Hugh d'Argent mounted the steps.

"I _shall_ win," he said, and shook himself like a great shaggy dog.

The Bishop, over whom fell a shower, carefully wiped the glistening
drops from his garments with a fine Italian handkerchief.

"Go in, boy," he said, "and get dry.  Send thy man for another suit,
unless it would please thee better that Father Benedict should lend
thee a cassock!  Give me the stone.  It may well serve as a reminder of
that famous sacred stone from which the Convent takes its name.
Methinks we have, between us, contrived something of an omen,
concluding in thy favour."

Presently the Bishop, alone in his library, stood the white stone upon
the iron-bound chest within which he had placed the Pope's mandate.

"The age of miracles is past," he said again.  "Iron no longer swims,
neither do stones rise from the depths of a river, unless the Divine
command be supplemented by the grip of strong human fingers.

"Stand there, thou little tombstone of our hopes.  Mark the place where
lies the Holy Father's mandate, ecclesiastically all-powerful, yet
rendered null and void by the faithful conscience and the firm will of
a woman.  God send us more such women!"

The Bishop sounded a silver gong, and when his body-servant appeared,
pointed to the handkerchief, damp and crumpled, upon the table.

"Dry this, Jasper," he said, "and bring me another somewhat larger.
These dainty trifles cannot serve, when 'tears run down like a river.'
Nay, look not distressed, my good fellow.  I do but jest.  Yonder wet
Knight hath given me a shower-bath."




CHAPTER XXIX

THE VISION OF MARY ANTONY

On the afternoon following the Bishop's unexpected visit to the Nunnery,
the Prioress elected to walk last in the procession to and from the
Cathedral, placing Mother Sub-Prioress first.  It was her custom
occasionally to vary the order of procession.  Sometimes she walked
thirteenth, with twelve before, and twelve behind her.

She had at first inclined on this day, after her strenuous time with the
Bishop, followed by the hour's ride upon Icon, not to go to Vespers.

Then her heart failed her, and she went.  On these two afternoons--this
and the morrow--Hugh would still be in the crypt.  She should not so much
as glance toward the pillar at the foot of the winding stairway leading
to the clerestory; yet it would be sweet to feel him to be standing there
as she passed; sweet to know that he heard the same sounds as fell upon
her ear.

To-day, and again on the morrow, she might yield to this yearning for the
comfort of his nearness; but never again, for Hugh would not return.

She had wondered whether she dared ask him, by the Bishop, on a given
date once a year to attend High Mass in the Cathedral, so that she might
know him to be under the same roof, worshipping, at the same moment, the
same blessèd manifestation of the Divine Presence.

But almost at once she had dismissed the desire, realising that comfort
such as this, could be comfort but to the heart of a woman, more likely
torment to a man.  Also that should his fancy incline him to seek
companionship and consolation in the love of another, a yearly pilgrimage
to Worcester for her sake, would stand in the way of his future happiness.

Walking last in that silent procession back to the Nunnery, the Prioress
walked alone with her sadness.  Her heart was heavy indeed.

She had angered her old friend, Symon of Worcester.  After being
infinitely patient, when he might well have had cause for wrath, he had
suddenly taken a sterner tone, and departed in a certain aloofness,
leaving her with the fear that she had lost him, also, beyond recall.

Thus she walked in loneliness and sorrow.


As she passed up the steps into the cloisters, she noted that Mary Antony
was not in her accustomed place.

Slightly wondering, and half unconsciously explaining to herself that the
old lay-sister had probably for some reason gone forward with the
Sub-Prioress, the Prioress moved down the now empty passage and entered
her own cell.

On the threshold she paused, astonished.

In front of the shrine of the Madonna, knelt Mary Antony in a kind of
trance, hands clasped, eyes fixed, lips parted, the colour gone from her
cheeks, yet a radiance upon her face, like the after-glow of a vision of
exceeding glory.

She appeared to be wholly unconscious of the presence of the Prioress,
who recovering from her first astonishment, closed the door, and coming
forward laid her hand gently upon the old woman's shoulder.

Mary Antony's eyes remained fixed, but her lips moved incessantly.
Bending over her, the Prioress could make out disjointed sentences.

"Gone! . . .  But it was at our Lady's bidding. . . .  Flown?  Ah, gay
little Knight of the Bloody Vest!  Nay, it must have been the archangel
Gabriel, or maybe Saint George, in shining armour. . . .  How shall we
live without the Reverend Mother?  But the will of our blessèd Lady must
be done."

"Antony!" said the Prioress.  "Wake up, dear Antony!  You are dreaming
again.  You are thinking of the robin and the pea.  I have not gone from
you; nor am I going.  See!  I am here."

She turned the old face about, and brought herself into Mary Antony's
field of vision.

Slowly a light of recognition dawned in those fixed eyes; then came a
cry, as of fear and of a great dismay; then a gasping sound, a clutching
of the air.  Mary Antony had fallen prone, before the shrine of the
Madonna.


An hour later she lay upon her bed, whither they had carried her.  She
had recovered consciousness, and partaken of wine and bread.

The colour had returned to her cheeks, when the Prioress came in,
dismissed the lay-sister in attendance, closed the door, and sat down
beside the couch.

"Thou art better, dear Antony," said the Prioress.  "They tell me thy
strength has returned, and this strange fainting is over.  Thou must lie
still yet awhile; but will it weary thee to speak?"

"Nay, Reverend Mother, I should dearly love to speak.  My soul is full of
wonder; yet to none saving to you, Reverend Mother, can I tell of that
which I have seen."

"Tell me all, dear Antony," said the Prioress.  "Sister Mary Rebecca says
thy symptoms point to a Divine Vision."

Mary Antony chuckled.  "For once Sister Mary Rebecca speaks the truth,"
she said.  "Have patience with me, Reverend Mother, and I will tell you
all."

The Prioress gently stroked the worn hands lying outside the coverlet.

Mary Antony looked very old in bed.  Were it not for the bright twinkling
eyes, she looked too old ever again to stand upon her feet.  Yet how she
still bustled upon those same old feet!  How diligently she performed her
own duties, and shewed to the other lay-sisters how they should have
performed theirs!

Forty years ago, she had chosen her nook in the Convent burying-ground.
She was even then, among the older members of the Community; yet most of
those who saw her choose it, now lay in their own.

"She will outlive us all," said Mother Sub-Prioress one day, sourly;
angered by some trick of Mary Antony's.

"She is like an ancient parrot," cried Sister Mary Rebecca, anxious to
agree with Mother Sub-Prioress.

Which when Mary Antony heard, she chuckled, and snapped her fingers.

"Please God, I shall live long enough," she said, "to thrust Mother
Sub-Prioress into a sackcloth shroud; also, to crack nuts upon the
sepulchre of Sister Mary Rebecca."

But none of these remarks reached the Prioress.  She loved the old
lay-sister, knowing the aged body held a faithful and zealous heart, and
a mind which, in its quaint simplicity, oft seemed to the Prioress like
the mind of a little child--and of such is the Kingdom of Heaven.

"There is no need for patience, dear Antony," said the Prioress.  "I can
sit in stillness beside thee, until thy tale be fully told.  Begin at the
beginning."

The slanting rays of the late afternoon sun, piercing through the narrow
window, fell in a golden band of light upon the folded hands, lighting up
the aged face with an almost unearthly radiance.

"I was in the cloisters," began Mary Antony, "awaiting the return from
Vespers of the holy Ladies.

"I go there betimes, because at that hour I am accustomed to hold
converse with a little vain man in a red jerkin, who comes to see me,
when he knows me to be alone.  I tell him tales such as he never hears
elsewhere.  To-day I planned to tell him how the great Lord Bishop,
arriving unannounced, rode into the courtyard; and, seeing old Antony
standing in the doorway, mistook her for the Reverend Mother.  That was a
great moment in the life of Mary Antony, and confers upon her added
dignity.

"'So turn out thy toes, and make thy best bow, and behave thee as a
little layman should behave in the presence of one who hath been mistaken
for one holding so high an office in Holy Church.'

"Thus," explained Mary Antony, "had I planned to strike awe into the
little red breast of that over-bold robin."

"And came the robin to the cloisters?" inquired the Prioress, presently,
for Mary Antony lay upon her pillow laughing to herself, nodding and
bowing, and making her fingers hop to and fro on the coverlet, as a bird
might hop with toes out turned.  Nor would she be recalled at once to the
happenings of the afternoon.

"The great Lord Bishop did address me as 'worthy Mother,'" she remarked;
"not 'Reverend Mother,' as we address our noble Prioress.  And this has
given me much food for thought.  Is it better to be worthy and not
reverend, or reverend and not worthy?  Our large white sow, when she did
contrive to have more little pigs in her litters, than ever our sows had
before; and, after a long and fruitful life, furnished us with two
excellent hams, a boar's head, and much bacon, was a worthy sow; but
never was she reverend, not even when Mother Sub-Prioress pronounced the
blessing over her face, much beautified by decoration--grand ivory tusks,
and a lemon in her mouth!  Never, in life, had she looked so fair; which
is indeed, I believe, the case with many.  Yet, for all her worthiness,
she was not reverend.  Also I have heard tell of a certain Prior, not
many miles from here, who, borrowing money, never repays it; who
oppresses the poor, driving them from the Priory gate; who maltreats the
monks, and is kind unto none, saving unto himself.  He--it seems--is
reverend but not worthy.  While thou, Master Redbreast, art certainly not
reverend; the saints, and thine own conscience, alone know whether thou
art worthy.

"This," explained Mary Antony, "was how I had planned to point a moral to
that jaunty little worldling."

"They who are reverend must strive to be also worthy," said the Prioress;
"while they who count themselves to be worthy, must think charitably of
those to whom they owe reverence.  Came the robin to thee in the
cloisters, Antony?"

The old woman's manner changed.  She fixed her eyes upon the Prioress,
and spoke with an air of detachment and of mystery.  The very simplicity
of her language seemed at once to lift the strange tale she told, into
sublimity.

"Aye, he came.  But not for crumbs; not for cheese; not to gossip with
old Antony.

"He stood upon the coping, looking at me with his bright eye.

"'Well, little vain man!' said I.  But he moved not.

"'Well, Master Pieman,' I said, 'art come to spy on holy ladies?' But
never a flutter, never a chirp, gave he.

"So grave and yet war-like was his aspect, that at length I said: 'Well,
Knight of the Bloody Vest!  Hast thou come to carry off again our noble
Prioress?'  Upon which, instantly, he lifted up his voice, and burst into
song; then flew to the doorway, turning and chirping, as if asking me to
follow.

"Greatly marvelling at this behaviour on the part of the little bird I
love, I forthwith set out to follow him.

"Along the passage, on swift wing, he flew; in and out of the empty
cells, as if in search of something.'  Then, while I was yet some little
way behind, he vanished into the Reverend Mother's cell, and came not
forth again.

"Laughing to myself at such presumption, I followed, saying: 'Ha, thou
Knight of the Bloody Vest!  What doest thou there?  The Reverend Mother
is away.  What seekest thou in her chamber, Knight of the Bloody Vest?'

"But, reaching the doorway, at that moment, I found myself struck dumb by
what I saw.

"No robin was there, but a most splendid Knight, in shining armour,
kneeled upon his knees before the shrine of our Lady.  A blood-red cross
was on his breast.  His dark head was uplifted.  On his noble face was a
look of pleading and of prayer.

"Marvelling, but unafraid, I crept in, and kneeled behind that splendid
Knight.  The look of pleading upon his face, inclined me also to prayer.
His lips moved, as I had seen at the first; but while I stood upon my
feet, I could hear no words.  As soon as I too kneeled, I heard the
Knight saying: 'Give her to me!  Give her to me!'  And at last: 'Mother
of God, send her to me!  Take pity on a hungry heart, a lonely home, a
desolate hearth, and send her to me!'"

Mary Antony paused, fixing her eyes upon the rosy strip of sky, seen
through her narrow window.  Absorbed in the recital of her vision, she
appeared to have forgotten the presence of the Prioress.  She paused; and
there was silence in the cell, for the Prioress made no sound.


Presently the old voice went on, once more.

"When the splendid Knight said: 'Send her to me,' a most wondrous thing
did happen.

"Our blessèd Lady, lifting her head, looked toward the door.  Then
raising her hand, she beckoned.

"No sooner did our Lady beckon, than I heard steps coming along the
passage--that passage which I knew to be empty.  The Knight heard them,
also; for his heart began to beat so loudly that--kneeling behind--I
could hear it.

"Our blessèd Lady smiled.

"Then--in through the doorway came the Reverend Mother, walking with her
head held high, and sunlight in her eyes, as I have ofttimes seen her
walk in the garden in Springtime, when the birds are singing, and a scent
of lilac is all around.

"She did not see old Mary Antony; but moving straight to where the Knight
was kneeling, kneeled down beside him.

"Then the splendid Knight did hold out his hand.  But the Reverend
Mother's hands were clasped upon the cross at her breast, and she would
not put her hand into the Knight's; but lifting her eyes to our Lady she
said: 'Holy Mother of God, except thou thyself send me to him, I cannot
go."

"And again the Knight said: 'Give her to me!  Give her to me!  Blessèd
Virgin, give her to me!'

"And the tears ran down the face of old Antony, because both those noble
hearts were wrung with anguish.  Yet only the merry Babe, peeping over
the two bowed heads, saw that old Antony was there.

"Then a wondrous thing did happen.

"Stooping from her marble throne our Lady leaned, and taking the Reverend
Mother's hand in hers, placed it herself in the outstretched hand of the
Knight.

"At once a sound like many chimes of silver bells filled the air, and a
voice, so wonderful that I did fall upon my face to the floor, said:

"'TAKE HER; SHE HATH BEEN EVER THINE.  I HAVE BUT KEPT HER FOR THEE.'"


"When I lifted my head once more, the Reverend Mother and the splendid
Knight had risen.  Heaven was in their eyes.  Her hand was in his.  His
arm was around her.

"As I looked, they turned together, passed out through the doorway, and
paced slowly down the passage.

"I heard their steps growing fainter and yet more faint, until they
reached the cloisters.  Then all was still."


"Then I heard other steps arriving.  I still kneeled on, fearful to move;
because those earthly steps were drowning the sound of the silver chimes
which filled the air.

"Then--why, then I saw the Reverend Mother, returned--and returned alone.

"So I cried out, because she had left that splendid Knight.  And, as I
cried, the silver bells fell silent, all grew | dark around me, and I
knew no more, until I woke up in mine own bed, tended by Sister Mary
Rebecca, and Sister Teresa; with Abigail--noisy hussy!--helping to fetch
and carry.

"But--when I close mine eyes--Ah, then!  Yes, I hear again the sound of
silver chimes.  And some day I shall hear--shall hear again--that
wondrous voice of--voice of tenderness, which said: 'Take her, she hath
been ever--ever'----"

The old voice which had talked for so long a time, wavered, weakened,
then of a sudden fell silent.

Mary Antony had dropped off to sleep.


Slowly the Prioress rose, feeling her way, as one blinded by too great a
light.

She stood for some moments leaning against the doorpost, her hand upon
the latch, watching the furrowed face upon the pillow, gently slumbering;
still illumined by a halo of sunset light.

Then she opened the door, and passed out; closing it behind her.

As the Prioress closed the door, Mary Antony opened one eye.

Yea, verily!  She was alone!

She raised herself upon the couch, listening intently.

Far away in the distance, she fancied she could hear the door of the
Reverend Mother's chamber shut--yes!--and the turning of the key within
the lock.

Then Mary Antony arose, tottered over to the crucifix, and, falling on
her knees, lifted clasped hands to the dying Redeemer.

"O God," she said, "full well I know that to lie concerning holy things
doth damn the soul forever.  But the great Lord Bishop said she would
thrust happiness from her with both hands, unless our Lady vouchsafed a
vision.  Gladly will I bear the endless torments of hell fires, that she
may know fulness of joy and pleasures for evermore.  But, oh, Son of
Mary, by the sorrows of our Lady's heart, by the yearnings of her love, I
ask that--once a year--I may come out--to sit just for one hour on my
jasper seat, and see the Reverend Mother walk, between the great Lord
Bishop and the splendid Knight, up the wide golden stair.  And some day
at last, O Saviour Christ, I ask it of Thy wounds, 'Thy dying love, Thy
broken heart, may the sin of Mary Antony--her great sin, her sin of thus
lying about holy things--be forgiven her, because--because--she loved"----

Old Mary Antony fell forward on the stones.  This time, she had really
swooned.

It took the combined efforts of Sister Teresa, Sister Mary Rebecca, and
Mother Sub-Prioress, to bring her back once more to consciousness.

It added to their anxiety that they could not call the Reverend Mother,
she having already sent word that she would not come to the evening meal,
and must not be disturbed, as she purposed passing the night in prayer
and vigil.




CHAPTER XXX

THE HARDER PART

Dawn broke--a silver rift in the purple sky--and presently stole, in
pearly light, through the oriel window.  Upon the Prioress's table, lay
a beautifully executed copy of the Pope's mandate.  Beside it,
carefully pieced together, the torn fragments of the Bishop's copy.

Also, open upon the table, lay the Gregorian Sacramentary, and near to
it strips of parchment upon which the Prioress had copied two of those
ancient prayers, appending to each a careful translation.

These are the sixth century prayers which the Prioress had found
comfort in copying and translating, during the long hours of her vigil.


_O God, the Protector of all that trust in Thee, without Whom nothing
is strong, nothing is holy; Increase and multiply upon us Thy mercy,
that Thou being our ruler and guide, we may so pass through things
temporal, that we finally lose not the things eternal; Grant this, O
heavenly Father, for Jesus Christ's sake our Lord.  Amen._


And on another strip of parchment:


_O Lord, we beseech Thee mercifully to receive the prayers of Thy
people who call upon Thee; and grant that they may both perceive and
know what things they ought to do, and also may have grace and power
faithfully to fulfil the same: through Jesus Christ our Lord.  Amen._


Then, in that darkest hour before the dawn, she had opened the heavy
clasps of an even older volume, and copied a short prayer from the
Gelasian Sacramentary, under date A.D. 492.


_Lighten our darkness, we beseech Thee O Lord, and my Thy great mercy
defend us from all perils and dangers of this night; for the love of
Thy only Son, our Saviour, Jesus Christ.  Amen._


This appeared to have been copied last of all.  The ink was still wet
upon the parchment.

The candles had burned down to the sockets, and gone out.  The
Prioress's chair, pushed back from the table, was empty.

As the dawn crept in, it discovered her kneeling before the shrine of
the Madonna, absorbed in prayer and meditation.

She had not yet taken her final decision as to the future; but her
hesitation was now rather the slow, wondering, opening of the mind to
accept an astounding fact, than any attempt to fight against it.

Not for one moment could she doubt that our Lady, in answer to Hugh's
impassioned prayers, had chosen to make plain the Divine will, by means
of this wonderful and most explicit vision to the aged lay-sister, Mary
Antony.

When, having left Mary Antony, as she supposed, asleep, the Prioress
had reached her own cell, her first adoring cry, as she prostrated
herself before the shrine, had taken the form of the thanksgiving once
offered by the Saviour: "I thank Thee, O Father, Lord of Heaven and
earth, that Thou hast hid these things from the wise and prudent, and
hast revealed them unto babes."

She and the Bishop had indeed been wise and prudent in their own
estimation, as they discussed this difficult problem.  Yet to them no
clear light, no Divine vision, had been vouchsafed.

It was to this aged nun, the most simple--so thought the Prioress--the
most humble, the most childlike in the community, that the revelation
had been given.

The Prioress remembered the nosegay of weeds offered to our Lady; the
games with peas; the childish pleasure in the society of the robin; all
the many indications that second-childhood had gently come at the close
of the long life of Mary Antony; just as the moon begins as a sickle
turned one way and, after coming to the full, wanes at length to a
sickle turned the other way; so, after ninety years of life's
pilgrimage, Mary Antony was a little child again--and of such is the
Kingdom of Heaven; and to such the Divine will is most easily revealed.

The Prioress was conscious that she and the Bishop--the wise and
prudent--had so completely arrived at decisions, along the lines of
their own points of view, that their minds were not ready to receive a
Divine unveiling.  But the simple, childlike mind of the old
lay-sister, full only of humble faith and loving devotion, was ready;
and to her the manifestation came.

No shade of doubt as to the genuineness of the vision entered the mind
of the Prioress.  She and the Bishop alone knew of the Knight's
intrusion into the Nunnery, and of her interview with him in her cell.

Before going in search of the intruder, she had ordered Mary Antony to
the kitchens; and disobedience to a command of the Reverend Mother, was
a thing undreamed of in the Convent.

Afterwards, her anxiety lest any question should come up concerning the
return of a twenty-first White Lady when but twenty had gone, was
completely set at rest by that which had seemed to her old Antony's
fortunate mistake in believing herself to have been mistaken.

In recounting the fictitious vision, with an almost uncanny cleverness,
Mary Antony had described the Knight, not as he had appeared in the
Prioress's cell, in tunic and hose, a simple dress of velvet and cloth,
but in full panoply as a Knight-Crusader.  The shining armour and the
blood-red cross, fully in keeping with the vision, would have precluded
the idea of an eye-witness of the actual scene, had such a thought
unconsciously suggested itself to the Prioress.

As it was, it seemed beyond question that all the knowledge of Hugh
shewn by the old lay-sister, of his person his attitude, his very
words, could have come to her by Divine revelation alone.  That being
so, how could the Prioress presume to doubt the climax of the vision,
when our blessèd Lady placed her hand in Hugh's, uttering the wondrous
words: "Take her.  She hath been ever thine.  I have but kept her for
thee."

Over and over the Prioress repeated these words; over and over she
thanked our Lady for having vouchsafed so explicit a revelation.  Yet
was she distressed that her inmost spirit failed to respond, acclaiming
the words as divine.  She knew they must be divine, yet could not feel
that they were so.

As dawn crept into the cell, she found herself repeating again and
again "A sign, a sign!  Thy will was hid from me; yet I accept its
revelation through this babe.  But I ask a sign which shall speak to
mine own heart, also!  A sign, a sign!"

She rose and opened wide the casement, not of the oriel window, but of
one to the right of the group of the Virgin and child, and near by it.

She was worn out both in mind and body, yet could not bring herself to
leave the shrine or to seek her couch.

She remembered the example of that reverend and holy man, Bishop
Wulstan.  She had lately been reading, in the Chronicles of Florence,
the monk of Worcester, how "in his early life, when appointed to be
chanter and treasurer of the Church, Wulstan embraced the opportunity
of serving God with less restraint, giving himself up to a
contemplative life, going into the church day and night to pray and
read the Bible.  So devoted was he to sacred vigils that not only would
he keep himself awake during the night, but day and night also; and
when the urgency of nature at last compelled him to sleep, he did not
pamper his limbs by resting on a bed or coverings, but would lie down
for a short time on one of the benches of the Church, resting his head
on the book which he had used for praying or reading."

The Prioress chanced to have read this passage aloud, in the Refectory,
two days before.

As she stood in the dawn light, overcome with sleep, yet unwilling to
leave her vigil at the shrine, she remembered the example of this
greatly revered Bishop of Worcester, "a man of great piety and dovelike
simplicity, one beloved of God, and of the people whom he ruled in all
things," dead just over a hundred years, yet ever living in the memory
of all.

So, remembering his example, the Prioress went to her table, and
shutting the clasps of her treasured Gregorian Sacramentary, placed it
on the floor before the shrine of the Virgin.

Then, flinging her cloak upon the ground, and a silk covering over the
book, she sank down, stretched her weary limbs upon the cloak and laid
her head on the Sacramentary, trusting that some of the many sacred
prayers therein contained would pass into her mind while she slept.

Yet still her spirit cried: "A sign, a sign!  However slight, however
small; a sign mine own heart can understand."

Whether she slept a few moments only or an hour, she could not tell.
Yet she felt strangely rested, when she was awakened by the sound of a
most heavenly song outpoured.  It flooded her cell with liquid trills,
as of little silver bells.

The Prioress opened her eyes, without stirring.

Sunlight streamed in through the open window; and lo, upon the marble
hand of the Madonna, that very hand which, in the vision, had taken
hers and placed it within Hugh's, stood Mary Antony's robin, that gay
little Knight of the Bloody Vest, pouring forth so wonderful a song of
praise, and love, and fulness of joy, that it seemed as if his little
ruffling throat must burst with the rush of joyous melody.

The robin sang.  Our Lady smiled.  The Babe on her knees looked merry.

The Prioress lay watching, not daring to move; her head resting on the
Sacramentary.

Then into her mind there came the suggestion of a test--a sign.

"If he fly around the chamber," she whispered, "my place is here.  But
if he fly straight out into the open, then doth our blessèd Lady bid me
also to arise and go."

And, scarce had she so thought, when, with a last triumphant trill of
joy, straight from our Lady's hand, like an arrow from the bow, the
robin shot through the open casement, and out into the sunny,
newly-awakened world beyond.


The Prioress rose, folded her cloak, placed the book back upon the
table; then kneeled before the shrine, took off her cross of office,
and laid it upon our Lady's hand, from whence the little bird had flown.

Then with bowed head, pale face, hands meekly crossed upon her breast,
the Prioress knelt long in prayer.

The breeze of an early summer morn, blew in at the open window, and
fanned her cheek.

In the garden without, the robin sang to his mate.

At length the Prioress rose, moving as one who walked in a strange
dream, passed into the inner cell, and sought her couch.

The Bishop's prayer had been answered.

The Prioress had been given grace and strength to choose the harder
part, believing the harder part to be, in very deed, God's will for her.

And, as she laid her head at last upon the pillow, a prayer from the
Gregorian Sacramentary slipped into her mind, calming her to sleep,
with its message of overruling power and eternal peace.


_Almighty and everlasting God, Who dost govern all things in heaven and
earth; Mercifully bear the supplications of Thy people, and grant us
Thy peace, all the days of our life; through Jesus Christ our Lord.
Amen._




CHAPTER XXXI

THE CALL OF THE CURLEW

For the last time, the Knight waited in the crypt.

The men-at-arms, having deposited their burden before the altar, leaned
each against a pillar, stolid and unobservant, but ready to drop to
their knees so soon as the chanting of Vespers should reach the crypt
from the choir above.

The man upon the stretcher lay motionless, with bandaged head; yet
there was an alert brightness in his eyes, and the turn of his head
betokened one who listened.  A cloak of dark blue, bordered with
silver, covered him, as a pall.

Hugh d'Argent stood in the shadow of a pillar facing the narrow archway
in the wall from which the winding stairs led up to the clerestory.

From this position he could also command a view of the steps leading up
into the crypt from the underground way, and of the ground to be
traversed by the White Ladies as they passed from the steps to the
staircase in the wall.

Here the Knight kept his final vigil.

A strange buoyancy possessed him.  He seemed to have left his
despondence, like a heavy weight, at the bottom of the river.  From the
moment when, his breath almost exhausted, he had seen and grasped the
Bishop's stone, bringing it in triumph to the surface, Hugh had felt
sure he would win.  Aye, even before Symon had flung the stone; when,
in reply to the doubt cast by him on our Lady's smile, the Knight had
said: "I keep my trust in prayer," a joyous confidence had then and
there awakened within him.  He had stretched out the right hand of his
withered faith, and lo, it had proved strong and vital.

Yet as, in the heavy silence of the crypt, he heard the turning of the
key in the lock, his heart stood still, and every emotion hung
suspended, as the first veiled figure--shadowy and ghostlike--moved
into view.


It was not she.

The Knight's pulses throbbed again.  His heart pounded violently as,
keeping their measured distances, nine, ten, eleven, white figures
passed.

Then--twelfth: a tall nun, almost her height; yet not she.

Then--thirteenth: Oh, blessèd Virgin!  Oh, saints of God!  Mora!  She,
herself.  Never could he fail to recognize her carriage, the regal
poise of her head.  However veiled, however shrouded, he could not be
mistaken.  It was Mora; and that she should be walking in this central
position meant that she might with comparative safety, step aside.
Yet, even this----

But, at that moment, passing him, she turned her head, and for an
instant her eyes met the eyes of the Knight looking out from the
shadows.

Another moment and she had vanished up the winding stairway in the wall.

But that instant was enough.  As her eyes met his, Hugh d'Argent knew
that his betrothed was once more his own.

His heart ceased pounding; his pulses beat steadily.

The calm of a vast, glad certainty enfolded him; a joy beyond belief.
Yet he knew now that he had been sure of it, ever since he came up from
the depths of the Severn into the summer sunshine, grasping the white
stone.

"I keep my trust in prayer. . . .  Give her to me!  Give her to me!
Blessèd Virgin, give her to me!  'A sculptured smile'?  Nay, my lord.
I keep my trust in prayer!"


The solemn chanting of the monks, stole down from the distant choir.
Vespers had begun.


The Knight strode to the altar, and knelt for some minutes, his hands
clasped upon the crossed hilt of his sword.

Then he rose, and spoke in low tones to his men-at-arms.

"When a thrush calls, you will leave the crypt, and guard the entrance
from without; allowing none, on any pretext, to pass within.  When a
blackbird whistles you will return, lift the stretcher, and pass with
it, as heretofore, from the Cathedral to the hostel."

Next the Knight, returning to the altar, bent over the bandaged man
upon the stretcher.

"Martin," he said, speaking very low, so that his trusted
foster-brother alone could hear him.  "All is well.  Our pilgrimage is
about to end, as we have hoped, in a great recovery and restoration.
When the call of a curlew sounds, leap from the stretcher, leave the
bandages beside it; go to the entrance, guarding it from within; but
turn not thy head this way, until a blackbird whistles; upon which lose
thyself among the pillars, letting no man see thee, until we have
passed out.  After which, make thy way out, as best thou canst, and
join me at the hostel, entering by the garden and window, without
letting thyself be seen in the courtyard."

The keen eyes below the bandage, smiled assent.

Stooping, the Knight lifted the cloak, fastened it to his left
shoulder, and drew it around him, holding the greater part of it in
many folds in his right hand.  Then he moved back into the shadow of
the pillar.

Above, the monks sang _Nunc Dimittis_.

By and by the voices fell silent.

Vespers were over.


Careful, shuffling feet were coming down the stairs within the wall.

One by one the white figures reappeared.

The Knight stood back, rigid, holding his breath.

As each nun stepped from the archway in the wall, on to the floor of
the crypt, and moved toward the steps leading down to the subterranean
way, she passed from the view of the nun following her, who was still
one turn up the staircase.  It was upon this the Knight had counted,
when he laid his plains.

    Six
    Seven
    Eight

Blessèd Saint Joseph!  How slowly they walked!

    Nine
    Ten
    Eleven

The Knight gripped the cloak and moved a step further back into the
shadow.

    Twelve

Were all the pillars rocking?  Was the great new Cathedral coming down
upon his head?

    Thirteen

The Prioress was beside him in the shadow.

She had stepped aside.

The twelfth White Lady was moving on, her back toward them.

The fourteenth was shuffling down, but had not yet appeared.

Hugh slipped his left arm about the Prioress, holding her close to him;
then flung the folds of the cloak completely around her, and over his
left shoulder, pressing her head down upon his breast.

Thus they stood, motionless; her face hidden, his eyes bent upon the
narrow archway in the wall.

The fourteenth White Lady appeared; evidently noted a wider gap than
she expected between herself and the distant figure almost at the
steps, and hastened forward.

The fifteenth also hastened.

The sixteenth chanced to have taken the stairs more quickly and,
appearing almost immediately, noticed no gap.

    Seventeen
    Eighteen
    Nineteen
    Twenty

Not one had turned her head in the direction of the pillar.  The
procession was moving, with stately tread, along its accustomed way.

A delicious sense of security enveloped Hugh d'Argent.

The woman he loved was in his arms; she was his to shield, to guard, to
hold for evermore.

    Twenty-one
    Twenty-two

She had come to him--come to him of her own free will.  Holding her
thus, he remembered those wondrous moments at the entrance to the
crypt.  How hard it had been to loose her and leave her.  Yet how glad
he now was that he had done so.

    Twenty-three
    Twenty-four

When all these white figures are gone, safely started on their
mile-long walk, the door shut and locked behind them--then he will fold
back the cloak, turn her sweet face up to his, and lay his lips on hers.

    Twenty-five

Praise the holy saints!  The last!  But what an old ferret!

Yes; Mother Sub-Prioress gave the Knight a moment of alarm.  She peered
to right and left.  Almost she saw the glint of the silver on the blue.
Almost, yet not quite.

Sniffing, she passed on, walking as if her feet were angry, each with
the other for being before it.  She tweaked at her veil, as she turned
and descended the steps.

Hugh glowed and thrilled from head to foot.

At last!

Almost----

The sound of a closing door.

Slowly a key turned, grated in the lock, and was withdrawn.

Then--silence.

But at sound of the turning key, the woman in his arms shivered, the
slow, cold shudder of a soul in pain; and suddenly he knew that in
coming to him she had chosen that which now seemed to her the harder
part.

With the first revulsion of feeling occasioned by this knowledge, came
a strong impulse to put her from him, to leap down the stairway, force
open the heavy door, thrust her into the passage leading to her
Nunnery, and shut the door upon her; then go out himself into the world
to seek, in one wild search, every possible form of sin and revelry.

But this ungoverned impulse lasted but for the moment in which his
passionate joy, recoiling upon himself, struck him a blinding, a
bewildering blow.

In ten seconds he had recovered.  His arms tightened more securely
around her.

She had come to him.  Whatever complex emotions might now be stirring
within her, this fact was beyond question.  Also, she had come of her
own free will.  The foot which had dared to stamp upon the torn
fragments of the Pope's mandate, had, with an equal courage, stepped
aside from the way of convention and had brought her within the compass
of his arms.

He could not put her from him.  She was his to hold and keep.  But she
was his also to shield and guard; aye, to shield not from outward
dangers only, but from anything in himself which might cause her pain
or perplexity, thus making more difficult her noble act of
self-surrender.

Words spoken by the Bishop, in the banqueting hall, came back to him
with fuller significance.

A joy arose within him, deeper far than the rapture of passion; the joy
of a faithful patience, of a strong man's mastery over the strongest
thing in himself, of a lover's comprehension, by sure instinct, of that
which no words, however clear and forcible, could have succeeded in
making plain.

His love arose, a kingly thing, crowned by her trust in him.

As he folded back the cloak, he stood with eyes uplifted to the arched
roof above his head.  And the vision he saw, in the dim pearly light,
was a vision of the Madonna in his home.

The shelter of the cloak removed, the Prioress looked around with
startled eyes, full of an unspeakable shrinking; then upward to the
face of her lover, and saw it transfigured by the light of holy purpose
and of a great resolve.

But, even as she looked, he took his arm from about her, stepped a pace
forward, leaving her in the shadow, and whistled thrice the _Do-it-now_
call of the thrush.

Instantly the men-at-arms leapt to their feet, and making quickly for
the entrance to the Cathedral from the crypt, stood to hold it from
without, against all comers.

As their running feet rang on the steps, softly there sounded through
the crypt the plaintive call of the curlew.

The man lying upon the stretcher rose, leaving his bandages behind;
and, without glancing to right or left, passed quickly in and out
amongst the forest of columns, and was lost to view.  The entrance he
had to guard from within, was out of sight of the altar.  To all
intents and purposes, the two who still stood motionless in the shadow,
were now alone.

Then the Knight turned to the Prioress, took her right hand with his
left, and led her forward to the altar.

There he loosed her hand as they knelt side by side; he clasping his
upon the crossed hilt of his sword; she crossing hers upon her breast.

Presently the Prioress drew the marriage ring from the third finger of
her left hand, and gave it to the Knight.

Divining her desire, he rose, laid the ring upon the altar, then knelt
again.

Then rising, he took the ring, kissed it reverently, and slipped it
upon the little finger of his own left hand.

The sad eyes of the Prioress, watching him, said to this neither "yea"
nor "nay."

Rising she waited meekly to know his will for her.  The Knight, the
blue cloak over his arm, turned to the stretcher, picked up the
bandages, then, spoke, very low, without looking at the Prioress.

"Lay thyself down thereon," he said.  "I grieve to ask it of thee,
Mora; but there is no other way of taking thee hence, unobserved."

The Prioress took two steps forward, and stood beside the stretcher.

It was many years since she had lain in any human presence.  Standing,
walking, sitting, kneeling, she had been seen by the nuns; but
lying--never.

Though her cross of office and sacred ring were gone, her dignity and
authority seemed still to belong to her while she stood, stately and
tall, upon her feet.

She hesitated.  The apologetic tone the Knight had used, seemed warrant
for her hesitancy, and rendered compliance more difficult.

Each moment it became more impossible to place herself upon the
stretcher.

"Lie down," said the Knight, sternly.

At the curt word of command, the Prioress shuddered again; but, without
a word, she laid herself down upon the stretcher, closing her eyes, and
crossing her hands upon her breast.  So white she was, so still, so
rigid; as Hugh d'Argent, the bandages in his hand, stood looking down
upon her, she seemed the marble effigy of a recumbent Prioress, graven
upon a tomb; save that, as the Knight looked upon that beautiful, proud
face, two burning tears forced their way from beneath the closed lids
and rolled helplessly down the pale cheeks.

She did not see the look of tender compunction, of adoring love, in
Hugh's eyes.

Her shame, her utter humiliation, seemed complete.

Not when she took off her jewelled cross, and placed it upon our Lady's
hand; not when she stepped aside and allowed herself to be hidden by
the cloak; not even when she removed her ring and handed it to Hugh,
did she cease to be Prioress of the White Ladies of Worcester; but when
she laid herself down before the shrine of Saint Oswald, full length
upon the stretcher, at her lover's feet.

Hugh stooped, and hid the bandages beside her.  He could not bring
himself to touch or to disguise that lovely head.  Instead, he covered
her completely with the cloak; saying, in deep tones of infinite
tenderness:

"Our Lady be with thee.  It will not be for long."


Then, shrill through the silent crypt, rang the dear call of the
blackbird.




CHAPTER XXXII

A GREAT RECOVERY AND RESTORATION

Symon, Bishop of Worcester, attended by his Chaplain, chanced to be
walking through the Precincts on his way from the Priory to the Palace,
just as the men-at-arms bearing the stretcher came through the great
door of the Cathedral.

Father Benedict, cowled, and robed completely in black, a head and
shoulders taller than the Bishop, walked behind him, a somewhat
sinister figure.

The Bishop stopped.  "Precede me to the Palace, Father Benedict," he
said.  "I wish to have speech with yonder Knight who, I think, comes
this way."

The Chaplain stood still, made deep obeisance, jerked his cowl more
closely over his face, and strode away.

The Bishop waited, a radiant figure, in the afternoon sunshine.  His
silken cassock, his silvery hair, his blue eyes, so vivid and
searching, not only made a spot on which light concentrated, but almost
seemed themselves to give forth light.

The steady tramp of the men-at-arms drew nearer.

Hugh d'Argent walked beside the stretcher, head erect, eyes shining,
his hand upon the hilt of his sword.

When the Bishop saw the face of the Knight, he moved to meet the little
procession as it approached.

He held up his hand, and the men-at-arms halted.

"Good-day to you, Sir Hugh," said the Bishop.  "Hath your pilgrimage to
the shrine of the blessèd Saint Oswald worked the recovery you hoped?"

"Aye, my lord," replied the Knight, "a great recovery and restoration.
We start for Warwick in an hour's time."

"Wonderful!" said the Bishop.  "Our Lady and the holy Saint be praised!
But you are wise to keep the patient well covered.  However complete
the restoration, great care is required at first, and over-exertion
must be avoided."

"Your blessing for the patient, Reverend Father," said the Knight,
uncovering.

The Bishop moved nearer.  He laid his hand upon the form beneath the
blue and silver cloak.

"_Benedictio Domini sit vobiscum_," he said.  Then added, in a lower
tone: "Be not afraid, neither be thou dismayed. . . .  Go in peace."

The two men who loved the Prioress, looked steadily at one another.

The men-at-arms moved forward with their burden.

The Knight smiled as he walked on beside the stretcher.

The Bishop hastened to the Palace.

It was the Knight who had smiled, and there was glory in his eyes, and
triumph in the squaring of his broad shoulders, the swing of his
stride, and the proud poise of his head.

The Bishop was white to the lips.  His hands trembled as he walked.

He feared--he feared sorely--this that they had accomplished.

It was one thing to theorize, to speculate, to advise, when the
Prioress was safe in her Nunnery.  It was quite another, to know that
she was being carried through the streets of Worcester, helpless, upon
a stretcher; that when that blue pall was lifted, she would find
herself in a hostel, alone with her lover, surrounded by men, not a
woman within call.

The heart of a nun was a thing well known to the Bishop, and he
trembled at thought of this, which he had helped to bring about.

Also he marvelled greatly that the Prioress should have changed her
mind; and he sought in vain to conjecture the cause of that change.

Arrived in the courtyard of the Palace, he called for Brother Philip.

"Saddle me Shulamite," he said.  "Also mount Jasper on our fastest nag,
with saddle-bags.  We ride to Warwick; and must start within a quarter
of an hour."

A portion of that time the Bishop spent writing in the library.

When he was mounted, he stooped from the saddle and spoke to Brother
Philip.

"Philip," he said, "a very noble lady, betrothed to Sir Hugh d'Argent,
has just arrived at the Star hostel, where for some days he has awaited
her.  She rides with the Knight forthwith to Warwick, where they will
join me at the Castle.  It is my wish to lend Iconoklastes to the lady.
Therefore I desire thee to saddle the palfrey precisely as he was
saddled when he went to the Convent of the White Ladies for their
pleasuring and play.  Lead him, without delay, to the hostel; deliver
him over to the men-at-arms of Sir Hugh d'Argent, and see that they
hand this letter at once to the Knight, that he may give it to his
lady.  Lose not a moment, my good Philip.  Look to see me return
to-morrow."

The Bishop gathered up the reins, and started out, at a brisk pace, for
the Warwick road.

The letter he had intrusted to Brother Philip, sealed with his own
signet, was addressed to Sir Hugh d'Argent.  But within was written:


_Will the Countess of Norelle be pleased to accept of the palfrey
Iconoklastes as a marriage gift from her old friend Symon Wygorn._




CHAPTER XXXIII

MARY ANTONY HOLDS THE FORT

Mary Antony awaited in the cloisters the return of the White Ladies
from Vespers.

The old lay-sister was not in the mood for gay chatter to the robin,
nor even for quaint converse with herself.

She sat upon the stone seat, looking very frail, and wearing a wistful
expression, quite unlike her usual alert demeanour.

As she sat, she slowly dropped the twenty-five peas from her right
hand, to her left, and back again.

A wonderful thing had happened on that afternoon, just before the White
Ladies set forth to the Cathedral.

All were assembling in the cloisters, when word arrived that the
Reverend Mother wished to speak, in her cell, with Sister Mary Antony.

Hastening thither she found the Reverend Mother standing, very white
and silent, very calm and steadfast, looking out from the oriel window.

At first she did not turn; and Mary Antony stood waiting, just within
the doorway.

Then she turned, and said: "Ah, dear Antony!" in tones which thrilled
the heart of the old lay-sister.

"Come hither, Antony," she said; and even as she said it, moved to meet
her.

A few simple instructions she gave, concerning matters in the Refectory
and kitchen.  Then said: "Now I must go.  The nuns wait."

Then of a sudden she put her arms about the old lay-sister.

"Good-bye, my Antony," she said.  "Thy love and devotion have been very
precious to me.  The Presence of the Lord abide with thee in blessing,
while we are gone."

And, stooping, she kissed her gently on the brow; then passed from the
cell.

Mary Antony stood as one that dreamed.

It was so many years since any touch of tenderness had reached her.

And now--those gracious arms around her; those serene eyes looking upon
her with love in their regard, and a something more, which her old
heart failed to fathom; those lips, whose every word of command she and
the whole Community hastened to obey, leaving a kiss upon her brow!

Long after the White Ladies had formed into procession and left the
cloisters, Mary Antony stood as one that dreamed.  Then, remembering
her duties, she hurried to the cloisters, but found them empty; down
the steps to the crypt passage; the door was locked on the inside; the
key gone.

The procession had started, and Mary Antony had failed to be at her
post.  The White Ladies had departed uncounted.  Mary Antony had not
been there to count them.

Never before had the Reverend Mother sent for her when she should have
been on duty elsewhere.

Hastening to remedy her failure, Mary Antony drew the bag of peas from
her wallet, opened it, and hurrying from cell to cell, took out a pea
at each, as she verified its emptiness; until five-and-twenty peas lay
in her hand.

So now she waited, her error repaired; yet ever with her--then, as she
ran, and now, as she waited--she felt the benediction of the Reverend
Mother's kiss, the sense of her encircling arms, the wonder of her
gracious words.

"The Presence of the Lord abide with thee in blessing."

Yes, a heavenly calm was in the cloisters.  The Devil had stayed away.
Heaven seemed very near.  Even that little vain man, the robin,
appeared to be busy elsewhere.  Mary Antony was quite alone.

"While we are gone."  But they would not now be long.  Mary Antony
could tell by the shadows on the grass, and the slant of the sunshine
through a certain arch, that the hour of return drew near.

She would kneel beside the topmost step, and see the Reverend Mother
pass; she would look up at that serene face which had melted into
tenderness; would see the firm line of those beautiful lips----

Suddenly Mary Antony knew that she would not be able to look.  Not just
yet could she bear to see the Reverend Mother's countenance, without
that expression of wonderful tenderness.  And even as she realised
this, the key grated in the lock below.

Taking up her position at the top of the steps, the five-and-twenty
peas in her right hand, Mary Antony quickly made up her mind.  She
could not lift her eyes to the Reverend Mother's face.  She would count
the passing feet.

The young lay-sister who carried the light, stumped up the steps, and
set down the lantern with a clatter.  She plumped on to her knees
opposite to Mary Antony.

"Sister Mary Rebecca leads to-day," she chanted in a low voice, "and
all the way hath stepped upon my heels."

But Mary Antony took no notice of this information, which, at any other
time, would have delighted her.

Head bowed, eyes on the ground, she awaited the passing feet.

They came, moving slow and sedate.

They passed--stepping two by two, out of her range of vision; moving
along the cloister, dying away in the distance.

All had passed.

Nay!  Not all?  Another comes!  Surely, another comes?

Sister Abigail, lifting the lantern, rose up noisily.

"What wait you for, Sister Antony?  The holy Ladies have by now entered
their cells."

Mary Antony lifted startled eyes.

The golden bars of sunlight fell across an empty cloister.

A few white figures in the passage, seen in the distance through the
open door, were vanishing, one by one, into their cells.

Mary Antony covered her dismay with indignation.

"Be off, thou impudent hussy!  Hold thy noisy tongue and hang thy
rattling lantern on a nail; or, better still, hold thy lantern, and
hang thyself, holding it, upon the nail.  If I am piously minded to
pray here until sunset, that is no concern of thine.  Be off, I say!"

Left alone, Mary Antony slowly opened her right hand, and peered into
the palm.

One pea lay within it.

She went over to the seat and counted, with trembling fingers, the peas
from her left hand.

Twenty-four!  One holy Lady had therefore not returned.  This must be
reported at once to the Reverend Mother.  In her excitement, Mary
Antony forgot the emotion which had so recently possessed her.

Bustling down the steps, she drew the key from the door, paused one
moment to peep into the dank darkness, listening for running footsteps
or a voice that called; then closed the door, locked it, drew forth the
key, and hurried to the Reverend Mother's cell.

The door stood ajar, just as she had left it.

She knocked, but entered without waiting to be bidden, crying: "Oh,
Reverend Mother!  Twenty-five holy Ladies went to Vespers, and but
twenty-four have"----

Then her voice died away into silence.

The Reverend Mother's cell was empty.

Stock-still stood Mary Antony, while her world crumbled from beneath
her old feet and her heaven rolled itself up like a scroll, from over
her head, and departed.

The Reverend Mother's cell was empty.

It was the Reverend Mother who had not returned.

"Good-bye, my Antony.  The Presence of the Lord abide with thee in
blessing, while we are gone."  Ah, gone!  Never to return!

Once again the old lay-sister stood as one that dreamed; but this time
instead of beatific joy, there was a forlorn pathos in the dreaming.

Presently a door opened, and a step sounded, far away in the passage
beyond the Refectory stairs.

Instantly a look of cunning and determination replaced the helpless
dismay on the old face.  She quickly closed the cell door, hung up the
crypt key in its accustomed place; then kneeling before the shrine of
the Madonna: "Blessèd Virgin," she prayed, with clasped hands uplifted;
"be pleased to sharpen once again the wits of old Mary Antony."

Rising, she found the key of the Reverend Mother's cell, passed out,
closing the door behind her; locked it, and slipped the key into her
wallet.

The passage was empty.  All the nuns were spending in prayer and
meditation the time until the Refectory bell should ring.

Mary Antony appeared in the kitchen, only a few minutes later than
usual.

"Prepare _you_ the evening meal," she said to her subordinates.  "_I_
care not what the holy Ladies feed upon this even, nor how badly it be
served.  Reverend Mother again elects to spend the night in prayer and
fasting.  So Mother Sub-Prioress will spit out a curse upon the viands;
or Sister Mary Rebecca will miaul over them like an old cat that sees a
tom in every shadow, though all toms have long since fled at her
approach.  Serve at the usual hour; and let Abigail ring the Refectory
bell.  I am otherwise employed.  And remember.  Reverend Mother is on
no account to be disturbed."


The porteress, at the gate, jumped well-nigh out of her skin when,
turning, she found Mary Antony at her elbow.

"Beshrew me, Sister Antony!" she exclaimed.  "Wherefore"----

"Whist!" said Mary Antony.  "Speak not so loud.  Now listen, Mary Mark.
Saw you the great Lord Bishop yesterday, a-walking with Mary Antony?
Ha, ha!  Yea, verily!  'Worthy Mother,' his lordship called me.
'Worthy Mother,' with his hand upon his heart.  And into the gardens he
walked with Mary Antony.  Wherefore, you ask?  Wherefore should the
great Lord Bishop walk in the Convent garden with an old lay-sister,
who ceased to be a comely wench more than half a century ago?  Because,
Sister Mark, if you needs must know, the Lord Bishop is full of anxious
fears for the Reverend Mother, and knoweth that Mary Antony, old though
she be, is able to tend and watch over her.  The Lord Bishop and the
Worthy Mother both fear that the Reverend Mother fasts too often, and
spends too many hours in vigil.  The Reverend Father has therefore
deputed the Worthy Mother to watch in this matter, and to let him know
at once if the Reverend Mother imperils her health again, by too
lengthy a fast or vigil.  And, lo! this very day, the Reverend Mother
purposes not coming to the evening meal, and intends spending the whole
night in prayer and vigil, before our Lady's shrine.  Therefore the
Worthy Mother--I, myself--must start at once to fetch the great Lord
Bishop; and you, Sister Mary Mark, must open the gate and let me be
gone."

The porteress gazed, round-eyed and amazed.

"Nay, Sister Mary Antony, that can I not, without an order from the
Reverend Mother herself.  And even then, you could not walk so far as
to the Lord Bishop's Palace.  I doubt if you would even reach the
Fore-gate."

"That I should, and shall!" cried Mary Antony.  "And, if my old legs
fail me, many a gallant will dismount and offer me his horse.  Thus in
fine style shall I ride into Worcester city.  Didst thou not see me
bestride the Lord Bishop's white palfrey on Play Day?"

Sister Mary Mark broke into laughter.

"Aye," she said, "my sides have but lately ceased aching.  I pray you,
Sister Antony, call not that sight again into my mind."

"Then open the door, Mary Mark, and let me go."

"Nay, that I dare not do."

"Then, if I fail to do as bidden by the great Lord Bishop, I shall tell
his lordship that thou, and thine obstinacy, stood in the way of the
fulfilment of my purpose."

The porteress wavered.

"Bring me leave from the Reverend Mother, Sister Antony."

"Nay, that can I not," said Mary Antony, "as any fool might see, when I
go without the Reverend Mother's knowledge to report to the Lord Bishop
by his private command.  Even the Reverend Mother herself obeys the
commands of the Lord Bishop."

Sister Mary Mark hesitated.  She certainly had seen the Lord Bishop
pass under the rose-arch, and enter the garden, in close converse with
Sister Mary Antony.  Yet her trust at the gate was given to her by the
Reverend Mother.

"See here, Mary Mark," said Sister Antony.  "I must send a message
forthwith to Mother Sub-Prioress.  You shall take it, leaving me in
charge of the gate, as often I am left, by order of the Reverend
Mother, when you are bidden elsewhere.  If, on your return--and you
need not to hurry--you find me gone, none can blame you.  Yet when the
Lord Bishop rides in at sunset, he will give you his blessing and, like
enough, something besides."

Mary Mark's hesitation vanished.


"I will take your message, Sister Antony," she said meekly.

"Go, by way of the kitchens and the Refectory stairs, to the cell of
Mother Sub-Prioress.  Say that the Reverend Mother purposes passing the
night in prayer and vigil, will not come to the evening meal, and
desires Mother Sub-Prioress to take her place.  Also that for no cause
whatever is the Reverend Mother to be disturbed."

Sister Mary Mark, being thus given a legitimate reason for leaving her
post and gaining the Bishop's favour without giving cause for
displeasure to the Prioress, departed, by way of the kitchens, to carry
Mary Antony's message.

No sooner was she out of sight, than Mary Antony seized the key,
unlocked the great doors, pulled them apart, and left them standing
ajar, the key in the lock; then hastened back across the courtyard,
passed under the rose-arch, and creeping beneath the shelter of the yew
hedge, reached the steps up to the cloisters; slipped unobserved
through the cloister door, and up the empty passage; unlocked the
Reverend Mother's cell, entered it, and softly closed and locked the
door behind her.

Then--in order to make it impossible to yield to any temptation to open
the door--she withdrew the key, and flung it through the open window,
far out into the shrubbery.


Thus did Mary Antony prepare to hold the fort, until the coming of the
Bishop.




CHAPTER XXXIV

MORA DE NORELLE

Symon, Bishop of Worcester, chid himself for restlessness.  Surely for
once his mind had lost control of his limbs.

No sooner did he decide to walk the smooth lawns around the Castle,
than he found himself mounting to the battlements; and now, though he
had installed himself for greatly needed repose in a deep seat in the
hall chamber, yet here he was, pacing the floor, or moving from one
window to another.


By dint of hard riding he had reached Warwick while the sun, though
already dipped beneath the horizon, still flecked the sky with rosy
clouds, and spread a golden mantle over the west.

The lord of the Castle was away, in attendance on the King; but all was
in readiness for the arrival of the Bishop, and great preparations had
been made for the reception of Sir Hugh d'Argent.  His people, having
left Worcester early that morning, were about in the courtyard, as the
Bishop rode in.

As he passed through the doorway, an elderly woman, buxom, comely, and
of motherly aspect, whom he easily divined to be the tire-woman of whom
the Knight had spoken, came forward to meet him.

"Good my lord," she said, her eagerness allowing of scant ceremony,
"comes Sir Hugh d'Argent hither this night?"

"Aye," replied the Bishop, looking with kindly eyes upon Mora's old
nurse.  "Within two hours, he should be here."

"Comes he alone, my lord?" asked Mistress Deborah.

"Nay," replied the Bishop, "the Countess of Norelle, a very noble lady
to whom the Knight is betrothed, rides hither with him."

"The saints be praised!" exclaimed the old woman, and turned away to
hide her tears.

Whilst his body-servant prepared a bath and laid out his robes, the
Bishop mounted to the ramparts and watched the gold fade in the west.
He glanced at the river below, threading its way through the pasture
land; at the billowy masses of trees; at the gay parterre, bright with
summer flowers.  Then he looked long in the direction of the city from
which he had come.

During his strenuous ride, the slow tramp of the men-at-arms, had
sounded continually in his ears; the outline of that helpless figure,
lying at full length upon the stretcher, had been ever before his eyes.

He could not picture the arrival at the hostel, the removal of the
covering, the uprising of the Prioress to face life anew, enfolded in
the arms of her lover.

As in a weary dream, in which the mind can make no headway, but returns
again and yet again to the point of distress, so, during the entire
ride, the Bishop had followed that stretcher through the streets of
Worcester city, until it seemed to him as if, before the pall was
lifted, the long-limbed, graceful form beneath it would have stiffened
in death.

"A corpse for a bride!  A corpse for a bride!" the hoofs of the black
mare Shulamite had seemed to beat out upon the road.  "Alas, poor
Knight!  A corpse for a bride!"

The Bishop came down from the battlements.

When he left his chamber an hour later, he had donned those crimson
robes which he wore on the evening when the Knight supped with him at
the Palace.

As he paced up and down the lawns, the gold cross at his breast gleamed
in the evening light.

A night-hawk, flying high overhead and looking downward as it flew,
might have supposed that a great scarlet poppy had left its clump in
the flower-beds, and was promenading on the turf.

A steward came out to ask when it would please the Lord Bishop to sup.

To the hovering hawk, a blackbird seemed to have hopped out,
confronting and arresting the promenading poppy.

The Bishop said he would await the arrival of Sir Hugh; but he turned
and followed the man into the Castle.

And now he sat in the great hall chamber.

Two hours had passed since his arrival.

Unless something unforeseen had occurred the Knight's cavalcade must be
here before long.  He had planned to start within the hour; and, though
the Bishop had ridden fast, they could scarcely have taken more than an
hour longer to do the distance.

But supposing the Prioress had faltered at the last, and had besought
to be returned to the Nunnery?  Would the chivalry of the Knight have
stood such a test?  And, having left in secret, how could she return
openly?  Would the way through the crypt be possible?

The Bishop began to wish that he had ridden to the Star hostel and
awaited developments there, instead of hastening on before.

The hall chamber was in the centre of the Castle.  Its casements looked
out upon the gardens.  Thus it came about that he did not hear a
cavalcade ride into the courtyard.  He did not hear the shouting of the
men, the ring of hoofs on the paving stones, the champing of horses.

He sat in a great carved chair beside the fireplace in the hall
chamber, forcing himself to stillness, yet tormented by anxiety; half
minded to order a fresh horse and to ride back to Worcester.

Suddenly, without any warning, the door, leading from the ante-chamber
at the further end of the hall, opened.

Framed in the doorway appeared a vision, which for a moment led Symon
of Worcester to question whether he dreamed, so beautiful beyond belief
was the woman in a green riding-dress, looking at him with starry eyes,
her cheeks aglow, a veil of golden hair falling about her shoulders.


_Oh, Mora, child of delight!  Has the exquisite promise of thy girlhood
indeed fulfilled itself thus?  Have the years changed thee so
little---and yet so greatly?_

_"The captive exile hasteneth"; exile, long ago, for thy sake; seeking
to be free, yet captive still, caught once and forever in the meshes of
that golden hair._

_Oh, Mora, child of delight!  Must all this planning for thy full
development and perfecting of joy, involve the poignant anguish of thus
seeing thee again?_


Symon of Worcester rose and stood, a noble figure in crimson and gold,
at the top of the hall.  But for the silver moonlight of his hair, he
might have been a man in his prime--so erect was his carriage, so keen
and bright were his eyes.

The tall woman in the doorway gave a little cry; then moved quickly
forward.

"You?" she said.  "You!  The priest who is to wed us?  You!"

He stood his ground, awaiting her approach.

"Yes, I," he said; "I."

Half-way across the hall, she paused.

"No," she said, as if to herself.  "I dream.  It is not Father
Gervaise.  It is the Bishop."

She drew nearer.

Earnestly he looked upon her, striving to see in her the Prioress of
Whytstone--the friend of all these happy, peaceful, blessèd years.

But the Prioress had vanished.

Mora de Norelle stood before him, taller by half a head than he,
flushed by long galloping in the night breeze; nerves strung to
breaking point; eyes bright with the great unrest of a headlong leap
into a new world.  Yet the firm sweet lips were there, unchanged; and,
even as he marked them, they quivered and parted.

"Reverend Father," she said, "I have chosen, even as you prayed I might
do, the harder part." She flung aside the riding-whip she carried; and
folding her hands, held them up before him.  "For Christ's sake, my
Lord Bishop, pray for me!"

He took those folded hands in his, gently parted them, and held them
against the cross upon his heart.

"You have chosen rightly, my child," he said; "we will pray that grace
and strength may be vouchsafed you, so that you may continue, without
faltering, along the pathway of this fresh vocation."

She looked at him with searching gaze.  The kind and gentle eyes of the
Bishop met hers without wavering; also without any trace of the
fire--the keen brightness--which had startled her as she stood in the
doorway.

"Reverend Father," she said, and there was a strange note of bewildered
question in her voice: "I pray you, tell me what you bid penitents to
remember as they kneel in prayer before the crucifix?"

The Bishop looked full into those starry grey eyes bent upon him, and
his own did not falter.  His mild voice took on a shade of sternness as
befitted the solemn subject of her question.

"I tell them, my daughter, to remember, the sacred Wounds that bled and
the Heart that broke for them."

She drew her hands from beneath his, and stepped back a pace.

"The Heart that broke?" she said.  "That _broke_?  Do hearts break?"
she cried.  "Nay, rather, they turn to stone."  She laughed wildly,
then caught her breath.  The Knight had entered the hall.

With free, glad step, and head uplifted, Hugh d'Argent came to them,
where they stood.

"My Lord Bishop," he said, "you have been too good to us.  I sent Mora
on alone that she might find you here, not telling her who was the
prelate who had so graciously offered to wed us, knowing how much it
would mean to her that it should be you, Reverend Father."

"Gladly am I here for that purpose, my son," replied the Bishop,
"having as you know, the leave and sanction of His Holiness for so
doing.  Shall we proceed at once to the chapel, or do you plan first to
sup?"

"Nay, Father," said the Knight.  "My betrothed has ridden far and needs
food first, and then a good night's rest.  If it will not too much
delay your return to Worcester, I would pray you to wed us in the
morning."

Knowing how determined Hugh had been, in laying his plans, to be wed at
once on reaching Warwick, the Bishop looked up quickly, wishing to
understand what had wrought this change.

He saw on the Knight's face that look of radiant peace which the
Prioress had seen, when first the cloak was turned back in the crypt;
and the Bishop, having passed that way himself, knew that to Hugh had
come the revelation which comes but to the true, lover--the deepest of
all joys, that of putting himself on one side, and of thinking, first
and only, of the welfare of the belovèd.

And seeing this, the Bishop let go his fears, and in his heart thanked
God.

"It is well planned, Hugh," he said.  "I am here until the morning."

At which the Knight turning, strode quickly to the door, and beckoned.

Then back he came, leading by the hand the buxom, motherly old dame,
seen on arrival by the Bishop.  Who, when the Lady Mora saw, she gave a
cry, and ran to meet her.

"Debbie!" she cried, "Oh, Debbie!  Let us go home!"

And with that the tension broke all on a sudden, and with her old
nurse's arms around her, she sobbed on the faithful bosom which had
been the refuge of her childhood's woes.

"There, my pretty!" said Deborah, as best she could for her own sobs.
"There, there!  We are at home, now we are together.  Come and see the
chamber in which we shall sleep, just as we slept long years ago, when
you were a babe, my dear."

So, with her old nurse's arms about her, she, who had come in so
proudly, went gently out in a soft mist of tears.

The Bishop turned away.

"Love never faileth," he murmured, half aloud.

Hugh turned with him, and laughed; but in his laughter there was no
vexation, no bitterness, no unrest.  It was the happy laugh of a heart
aglow with a hope amounting to certainty.

"There were two of us the other night, my dear lord," he said; "but now
old Debbie has appeared, methinks there are three!"




CHAPTER XXXV

IN THE ARBOUR OF GOLDEN ROSES

The next day dawned, clear and radiant; a perfect summer morning.

Mora awoke soon after five o'clock.

Notwithstanding the fatigue of the previous day, the strain and stress
of heart, and the late hour at which she had at length fallen asleep,
the mental habit of years overcame the physical need of further slumber.

Her first conscious thought was for the rope which worked over a pulley
through a hole in the wall of her cell, enabling her from, within to
ring the great bell in the passage, thus rousing the entire community.
It had been her invariable habit to do this herself.  She liked the
nuns to feel that the call to begin a new day came to them from the
hand of their Prioress.  Realising the difficulty of early rising,
especially after night vigils, it pleased her that her nuns should know
that the fact of the bell resounding through the Convent proved that
the Reverend Mother was already on her feet.

Yet now, looking toward the door, she could see no rope.  And what
meant those sumptuous tapestry hangings?

She leapt from her couch, and gazed around her.

Why fell her hair about her, as a golden cloud?--that beautiful hair,
which in some Orders would have been shorn from her head; and, in this,
must ever be closely braided, covered, and never seen.  Still
half-bewildered, she flung it back; gazing at the unfamiliar, yet
well-remembered, garments laid ready for her use.

Sometimes she had had such dreams as this--dreams in which she was back
in the world, wearing its garments, tasting its pleasures, looking
again upon forbidden things.

Why should she not now be dreaming?

Then a sound fell upon her ear; a sound, long forgotten, yet so
familiar that as she heard it, she felt herself a child at home
again--the soft, contented snoring of old Debbie, fast asleep.

Sound is ever more convincing than sight.  The blind live in a world of
certainties.  Not so, the deaf.

Mora needed not to turn and view the comely countenance of her old
nurse sleeping upon a couch in a corner.  At sound of that soft purring
snore, she knew all she needed to know--knew she was no longer
Prioress, knew she had renounced her vows; knew that even now the
Convent was waking and wondering, as last night it must have marvelled
and surmised, and to-morrow would question and condemn; knew that this
was her wedding morn; that this robe of softest white, with jewelled
girdle, and jewelled circlet to crown her hair, were old Debbie's
choice for her of suitable attire in which to stand beside her
bridegroom at the altar.

Passing into an alcove, she bathed and clothed herself, even putting on
the jewelled band to clasp the shining softness of her hair.  Debbie's
will on these points had never been disputed, and truly it mattered
little to Mora what she wore, since wimple and holy veil were forever
laid aside.

She passed softly from the chamber, without awakening the old nurse,
made her way down a winding stair, out through a postern door, and so
into the gardens bathed in early morning sunshine.

Seeking to escape observation from the Castle walls or windows, she
made her way through a rose-garden to where a high yew hedge surrounded
a bowling-green.  At the further end of this secluded place stood a
rustic summer-house, now a veritable bower of yellow roses.

Bending her head, Mora passed through an archway of yew, down three
stone steps, and so on to the lawn.

Then, out from the arbour stepped the Bishop, in his violet cassock and
biretta, his breviary in his hand.

If this first sight of Hugh's bride, in bridal array, on her wedding
morning, surprised or stirred him, he gave no sign of unusual emotion.

As he came to meet her, his lips smiled kindly, and in his eyes was
that half whimsical, half tender look, she knew so well.  He might have
been riding into the courtyard of the Nunnery, and she standing on the
steps to receive him, so natural was his greeting, so wholly as usual
did he appear.

"You are up betimes, my daughter, as I guessed you would be; also you
have come hither, as I hoped you might do.  Am I the first to wish you
joy, on this glad day?"

"The first," she said.  "Even my good Deborah slept through my rising.
I woke at the accustomed hour, to ring the Convent bell, and found
myself Prioress no longer, but bride--an earthly bride--expected to
deck herself with jewels for an earthly bridal."

"'Even the ornament of a meek and quiet spirit, which is in the sight
of God of great price,'" quoted, the Bishop, a retrospective twinkle in
his eye.

"Alas, my lord, I fear that ornament was never mine."

"Yet you must wear it now, my daughter.  I have heard it is an ornament
greatly admired by husbands."

Standing in the sunlight, all unconscious of her wondrous beauty, she
opened startled eyes on him; then dropped to her knees upon the turf.
"Your blessing, Reverend Father," she said, and there was a wild sob in
her voice.  "Oh, I entreat your blessing, on this my bridal day!"

The Bishop laid his hands upon the bright coronet of her hair, and
blessed her with the threefold Aaronic blessing; then raised her, and
bade her walk with him across the turf.

Into the arbour he led her, beneath a cascade of fragrant yellow roses.
There, upon a rustic table was spread a dainty repast--new milk, fruit
freshly gathered, white rolls, and most golden pats of butter, the dew
of the dairy yet upon them.

"Come, my daughter," said Symon of Worcester, gaily.  "We of the
Church, who know the value of these early hours, let us break our fast
together."

"Is it magic, my lord?" she asked, suddenly conscious of unmistakable
hunger.

"Nay," said the Bishop, "but I was out a full hour ago.  And the dairy
wench was up before me.  So between us we contrived this simple repast."

So, while the bridegroom and old Deborah still slumbered and slept, the
bride and the Bishop broke their fast together in a bower of roses; and
his eyes were the eyes of a merry schoolboy out on a holiday; and the
colour came back to her cheeks and she smiled and grew light-hearted,
as always in their long friendship, when he came to her in this gay
mood.

Yet, presently, when she had eaten well, and seemed strengthened and
refreshed, the Bishop leaned back in his seat, saying with sudden
gravity:

"And now, my daughter, will you tell me how it has come to pass that
you have been led to feel it right to take this irrevocable step,
renouncing your vows, and keeping your troth to Hugh?  When last we
spoke together you declared that naught would suffice but a clear sign,
vouchsafed you from our Lady herself, making it plain that your highest
duty was to Hugh, and that Heaven absolved you from your vows.  Was
such a sign vouchsafed?"

"Indeed it was, my lord, in wondrous fashion, our Lady choosing as the
mouthpiece of her will, by means of a most explicit and unmistakable
revelation, one so humble and so simple, that I could but exclaim:
'Thou hast hid these things from the wise and prudent, and hast
revealed them unto babes.'"

"And who," asked the Bishop, his eyes upon a peach which he was peeling
with extreme care; "who, my daughter, was the babe?"

"The old lay-sister, Mary Antony."

"Ah," murmured the Bishop, "an ancient babe.  Yet truly, a most worthy
babe.  Almost, I should be inclined to say, a wise and prudent babe."

"Nay, my Lord Bishop," cried Mora, with a sharp decision of tone which
made it please him to imagine that, should he look up from the peach,
he would see the severe lines of the wimple and scapulary: "you and I
were the wise and prudent, arguing for and against, according to our
own theories and reason.  But to this babe, our Lady vouchsafed a clear
vision."

"Tell me of it," said the Bishop, splitting his peach and removing the
stone which he carefully washed, and slipped into his sash.  The Bishop
always kept peach stones, and planted them.

She told him.  She began at the beginning, and told him all, to the
minutest detail; the full description of Hugh--the amazingly correct
repetition, in the vision, of the way in which she and Hugh had
actually kneeled together before the shrine of the blessèd Virgin, of
their very words and actions; and, finally, the sublime and gracious
tenderness of our Lady's pronouncement, clearly heard at the close of
the vision, by the old lay-sister: "Take her; she hath been ever thine.
I have but kept her for thee."

"What say you to that, Reverend Father?" exclaimed Mora, concluding.

"I scarce know what to say," replied the Bishop.  "For lack of anything
better, I fall back upon my favourite motto, and I say: 'Love never
faileth.'"

Now, generally, she delighted in the exceeding aptness of the Bishop's
quotations; but this time it seemed to Mora that his favourite motto
bore no sort of relevance.

She felt, with a chill of disappointment and a sense of vexation, that
the Bishop's mind had been so intent upon the fruit, that he had not
fully taken in the wonder of the vision.

"It has naught to do with love, my lord," she said, rather coldly;
"unless you mean the divine lovingkindness of our blessèd Lady."

"Precisely," replied the Bishop, leaning back in his seat, and at
length looking straight into Mora's earnest eyes.  "The divine
lovingkindness of our blessèd Lady never faileth."

"You agree, my lord, that the vision shed a clear light upon all my
perplexities?"

"Absolutely clear," replied the Bishop.  "The love which arranged the
vision saw to that.  Revelations, my daughter, are useless unless they
are explicit.  Had our Lady merely waved her marble hand, instead of
stooping to take yours and place it in that of the Knight, you might
have thought she was waving him away, and bidding you to remain.  If
her marble hand moved at all, it is well that it moved in so definite
and practical a manner."

"It seems to me, Reverend Father," said Mora, leaning upon the table,
her face framed in her hands, and looking with knitted brows at the
Bishop; "it almost seems to me that you regard the entire vision with a
measure of secret incredulity."

"Nay, my daughter, there you mistake.  On the contrary I am fully
convinced, by that which you tell me, that the ancient babe, Mary
Antony, was undoubtedly permitted to see you and your knightly lover
kneeling hand in hand before our Lady's shrine; also I praise our
blessèd Lady that by vouchsafing this sight to Mary Antony, and by
allowing her to hear words which you yourself know to have been in very
deed actually spoken, your mind has been led to accept as the divine
will for you, this return to the world and union with your lover, which
will, I feel sure, be not only for your happiness and his, but also a
fruitful source of good to many.  Yet, I admit----"

The Bishop paused, and considered; as if anxious to say just so much,
and neither more nor less.  Continuing, he spoke slowly, weighing each
word.  "Yet, I frankly admit, I would sooner for mine own guidance
listen for the Voice of God within, or learn His will from the written
Word, than ask for miraculous signs, or act upon the visions of others.

"No doubt you read, in the Chronicle I lately lent you, how 'in the
year of our Lord eleven hundred and thirty-seven--that time of many
sorrows, of burning, pillaging, rapine and torture, when the city of
York was burned together with the principal monastery; the city of
Rochester was consumed; also the Church of Bath, and the city of
Leicester; when owing to the absence of King Stephen abroad and the
mildness of his rule when at home, the barons greatly oppressed and
ill-used the Church and the people--while many were standing at the
Celebration of Mass at Windsor, they beheld the Crucifix, which was
over the altar, moving and wringing its hands, now the right hand with
the left, now the left with the right, after the manner of those who
are in distress.'

"This wondrous sight convinced those who saw it that the crucified
Redeemer sympathised with the grievous sorrows of the land.

"But no carven crucifix, wringing its hands before a gazing crowd,
could so deeply convince me of the sympathy of the Redeemer as to sit
alone in mine own chamber and read from the book of Isaiah the Prophet:
'Surely He hath borne our griefs, and carried our sorrows.'"

Mora's brow cleared.

"I think I understand, my lord; and that you should so feel, helps me
to confess to you a thing which I have scarce dared admit to myself.  I
found it difficult in mine own soul to attach due weight to our blessèd
Lady's words as heard by Mary Antony.  Mine own test--the robin's
flight, straight from the hand of the Madonna to the world
without--spoke with more sense of truth to my heart.  I blame myself
for this; but so it is.  Yet it was the vision which decided me as to
my clear path of duty."

"Doubtless," remarked the Bishop, "the medium of Mary Antony took from
the solemnity of the pronouncement.  There would be a twist of
quaintness in even the holiest vision, as described by the old
lay-sister."

"Nay, my lord," said Mora.  "Truth to tell, it was not so.  Once fairly
started on the telling, she seemed lifted into a strange sublimity of
utterance.  I marvelled at it, and at the unearthly radiance of her
face.  At the end, I thought she slept; but later I heard from the
Sub-Prioress that she was found swooning before the crucifix and they
had much ado to bring her round.

"My lord, my heart fails me when I think to-day of my empty cell, and
of the sore perplexity of my nuns.  How soon will it be possible that
you see them and put the matter right, by giving the Holy Father's
message?"

"So soon as you are wed, my daughter, I ride back to Worcester.  I
shall endeavour to reach the Convent before the hour when they leave
for Vespers."

"May I beg, my lord, that you speak a word of especial kindness to old
Antony, whose heart will be sore at my departure?  I had thought to bid
her be silent concerning the vision; but as she declares the shining
Knight was Saint George or Saint Michael, the nuns, in their devout
simplicity, will doubtless hold the vision to have been merely symbolic
of my removal to 'higher service.'"

"I will seek old Antony," said the Bishop, "and speak with her alone."

"Father," said Mora, with deep emotion, "during all these years, you
have been most good to me; kind beyond words; patient always.  I fear I
ofttimes tried you by being too firmly set on my own will and way.
But, I pray you to believe, I ever valued your counsel and could scarce
have lived without your friendship.  Last night, on first entering the
Castle, I fear I spoke wildly and acted strangely.  I was sore
overwrought.  I came in, out of the night, not knowing whom I should
find in the hall chamber; and--for a moment, my lord, for one wild,
foolish moment--I took you not for yourself but for another."

"For whom did you take me, my daughter?" asked the Bishop.

"For one of whom you have oft reminded me, my lord, if I may say so
without offence, seeing I speak of a priest who was the ideal of my
girlhood's dreams.  Knew you, many years ago, one Father Gervaise, held
in high regard at the Court, confessor to the Queen and her ladies?"

The Bishop smiled, and his blue eyes looked into Mora's with an
expression of quiet interest.

"Father Gervaise?" he said.  "Preacher at the Court?  Indeed, I knew
him, my daughter; and more than knew him.  Father Gervaise and I had
the same grandparents."

"Ah," cried Mora, eagerly, "then that accounts for a resemblance which
from the first has haunted me, making of our friendship, at once, so
sweetly intimate a thing.  The voice and the eyes alone were like--but,
ah, so like!  Father Gervaise wore a beard, which hid his mouth and
chin; but his blue eyes had in them that kindly yet searching look,
though not merry as yours oft are, my lord; and your voice has ever
made me think of his.

"And once--just once--his eyes looked at me, across the Castle hall at
Windsor, with a deep glow of fire in them; a look which made me feel
called to an altar whereon, if I could but stand the test of fire, I
should be forever purified, uplifted, blest as was never earthly maid
before, save only our blessèd Lady.  All that night I dreamed of it,
and my whole soul was filled with it, yet never again did I see Father
Gervaise.  The next morning he left the Court, and soon after sailed
for Spain; and on the passage thither the ship foundered in a great
storm, and he, with all on board, perished.  Heard you of that, my
lord?"

"I heard it," said the Bishop.

"All believed it, and mourned him; for by all he was belovèd.  But
never could I feel that he was dead.  Always for me it seemed that he
still lived.  And last night--when I entered--across the great hall
chamber, it seemed as if, once more, the eyes of Father Gervaise looked
upon me, with that glowing fire in them, which called me to an altar."

The Bishop smiled again, and there was in his look a gentle merriment.

"You were over-strained, my daughter.  When you drew near, you
found--instead of a ghostly priest with eyes of fire, drowned many
years ago, off the coast of Spain--your old friend, Symon of Worcester,
who had stolen a march on you, by reason of the swift paces of his good
mare, Shulamite."

Mora leaned forward, and laid her hand on his.

"Mock not, my friend," she said.  "There was a time when Father
Gervaise stood to me for all my heart held dearest.  Yet I loved him,
not as a girl loves a man, but rather as a nun loves her Lord.  He
stood to me for all that was noblest and best; and, above all, for all
that was vital and alive in life and in religion; strong to act; able
to endure.  He confessed me once, and told me, when I kneeled before
the crucifix, to say of Him Who hangs thereon: 'He ever liveth to make
intercession for us.'  Never have I forgotten it.  And--sometimes--when
I say the sacred words, and, saying them, my mind turns to Father
Gervaise, an echo seems to whisper to my spirit: '_He, also, liveth_.'"

Symon of Worcester rose.

"My daughter," he said, "the sun is high in the heavens.  We must not
linger here.  Hugh will be seeking his bride, and Mistress Deborah be
waxing anxious over the escape of her charge.  The morning meal will be
ready in the banqueting hall; after which we must to the chapel, for
the marriage.  Then, without delay, I ride to Worcester to make all
right at the Nunnery.  Let us go."

As Mora walked beside him across the sunny lawn, "Father," she said,
"think you the heart of a nun can ever become again as the heart of
other women?"

CHAPTER XXXVI

STRONG TO ACT; ABLE TO ENDURE

Back to Worcester rode the Bishop.

Gallop!  Gallop! along the grassy rides, beside the hard highway.

Hasten good Shulamite, black and comely still, though flecked with foam.

Important work lies ahead.  Every moment is precious.

If Mother Sub-Prioress should send to the Palace, mischief will be
done, which it will not be easy to repair.

If news of the flight of the Prioress reaches the city of Worcester, a
hundred tongues, spiteful, ignorant, curious, or merely idle, will at
once start wagging.

Gallop, gallop, Shulamite!

How impossible to overtake a rumour, if it have an hour's start of you.
As well attempt to catch up the water which first rushed through the
sluice-gates, opened an hour before you reached the dam.

How impossible to remake a reputation once broken.  Before the
priceless Venetian goblet fell from the table on to the flagged floor,
one hand put forth in time might have hindered its fall.  But--failing
that timely hand--when, a second later, it lies in a hundred pieces,
the hands of the whole world are powerless to make it again as it was
before it fell.

Faster, faster, Shulamite!

When the messenger of Mother Sub-Prioress reports the absence of the
Bishop, he will most certainly be sent in haste to Father Benedict, who
will experience a sinister joy at the prospect of following his long
nose into the Prioress's empty cell, who will scent out scandal where
there is but a fragrance of lilies, and tear to pieces Mora's
reputation, with as little compunction as a wolf tears a lamb.

Gallop, gallop, Shulamite!  If no hand be put forth to save it, between
Mother Sub-Prioress and Father Benedict, this crystal bowl will be
broken into a hundred pieces.


At length the Bishop drew rein, and walked his mare a mile.  He had
left Warwick ten miles behind him.  He would soon be half-way to
Worcester.

He had left Warwick behind him!

It seemed to the Bishop that, ever since he had first known Mora de
Norelle, he had always been riding away and leaving behind.

For her sake he rode away, leaving behind the Court, his various
offices, his growing influence and popularity.

For her sake he left his identity as Father Gervaise at the bottom of
the ocean, taking up his life again, in Italy, under his other name.

For her sake, when he heard that she had entered the Convent of the
White Ladies, he obtained the appointment to the see of Worcester,
leaving the sunny land he loved, and the prospect of far higher
preferment there.

And now for her sake he rode away from Warwick as fast as steed could
carry him, leaving her the bride of another, in whose hand he had
himself placed hers, pronouncing the Church's blessing upon their union.

Riding away--leaving behind; leaving behind--riding away.  This was
what his love had ever brought him.

Yet he felt rich to-day, finding himself in possession of the certain
knowledge that he had been right in judging necessary, that first
departure into exile long years ago.

For had not Mora told him--little dreaming to whom she spoke--that
there was a time when he had stood to her for all her heart held
dearest; yet that she had loved him, not as a girl loves a man, but
rather as a nun loves her Lord.

But surely a man would need to be divine to be so loved, and to hold
such love aright.  And, even then, when that other man arrived who
would fain woo her to love him as a girl loves a man, would her heart
be free to respond to the call of nature?  Nay.  To all intents and
purposes, her heart would be a cloistered thing; yet would she be
neither bride of Christ nor bride of man.  The fire in his eyes would
indeed have called her to an altar, and the sacrifice laid thereon
would be the full completion of her womanhood.

"I did well to pass into exile," said the Bishop, reviewing the past,
as he rode.  Yet deep in his heart was the comfort of those words she
had said: that once he had stood to her for all her heart held dearest.
Mora, the girl, had felt thus; Mora, the woman, remembered it; and the
Bishop, as he thought of both, offered up a thanksgiving that neither
he nor Father Gervaise had done aught which was unworthy of the ideal
of her girlhood's dream.

Gathering up the reins, he urged Shulamite to a rapid trot.  There must
be no lingering by the way.


Hasten, Shulamite!  Even now the sluice-gates may be opening.  Even now
the crystal bowl may be slipping from its pedestal, presently to lie in
a hundred fragments on the ground.

Nay, trotting will scarce do.  Gallop, gallop, brave black mare!

The city walls are just in sight.

Well done!

      *      *      *      *      *      *

Not far from the Convent gate, the Bishop chanced, by great good
fortune, upon Brother Philip, trying in the meadows the paces of a
young horse, but lately purchased.

The Bishop bade the lay-brother ride with him to the Nunnery and, so
soon as he should have dismounted, lead Shulamite to the Palace
stables, carefully feed and tend her; then bring him out a fresh mount.

As they rode forward: "Hath any message arrived at the Palace from the
Convent, Philip?" inquired the Bishop.

"None, my lord."

"Or at the Priory?"

"Nay, my lord.  But I did hear, at the Priory, a strange rumour"----

"Rumours are rarely worth regarding or repeating, Brother Philip."

"True, my lord.  Yet having so lately aided her to ride upon Icon"----

"'Her'?  With whom then is rumour making free?  And what saith this
Priory rumour concerning 'her'?"

"They say the old lay-sister, Mary Antony, hath fled the Convent."

"Mary Antony!" exclaimed the Bishop, and his voice held the most
extraordinary combination of amazement, relief, and incredulity.  "But,
in heaven's name, good brother, wherefore should the old lay-sister
leave the Convent?"

"They say she was making her way into the city in search of you, my
lord; but she hath not reached the Palace."

"Any other rumour, Philip?"

"Nay, my lord, none; save that the Prioress is distraught with anxiety
concerning the aged nun, and has commanded that the underground way to
the Cathedral crypt be searched; though, indeed, the porteress
confesses to having let Sister Mary Antony out at the gate."

"Rumour again," said the Bishop, "and not a word of truth in it, I
warrant.  Deny it, right and left, my good Philip; and say, on my
authority, that the Reverend Mother hath most certainly not caused the
crypt way to be searched.  I would I could lay hands on the originator
of these foolish tales."

The Bishop spoke with apparent vexation, but his heart had bounded in
the upspring of a great relief.  Was he after all in time to save with
outstretched hand that most priceless crystal bowl?

The Bishop dismounted outside the Convent gate.  He took Shulamite's
nose into his hand, and spoke gently in her ear.

Then: "Lead her home, Philip," he said, "and surround her with
tenderest care.  Her brave heart hath done wonders this day.  It is for
us to see that her body doth not pay the penalty.  Here!  Take her
rein, and go."


Mary Mark looked out through the wicket, in response to a knocking on
the door.  She gasped when she saw the Lord Bishop, on foot, without
the gate.

Quickly she opened, wide, and wider; hiding her buxom form behind the
door.

But the Bishop had no thought for Mary Mark, nor inclination to play
hide-and-seek with a conscience-stricken porteress.

Avoiding the front entrance, he crossed the courtyard to the right,
passed beneath the rose-arch, along the yew walk, and over the lawn, to
the seat under the beech, where two days before he had awaited the
coming of the Prioress.

Here he paused for a moment, looking toward the silent cloisters, and
picturing her tall figure, her flowing veil and stately tread,
advancing toward him over the sunny lawn.

Yet no.  Even in these surroundings he could not see her now as
Prioress.  Even across the Convent lawn there moved to meet him the
lovely woman with jewelled girdle, white robe, and coronet of golden
hair--the bride of Hugh.

Perhaps this was the hardest moment to Symon of Worcester, in the whole
of that hard day.

It was the one time when he thought of himself.

"I have lost her!" he said.  "Holy Jesu--Thou Whose heart did break
after three hours of darkness and of God-forsaken loneliness--have
pity!  The light of my life is gone from me, yet must I live."

Overwhelmed by this sudden realisation of loss, worn out in mind and
exhausted in body, the Bishop sank upon the seat.

Mora was safe with Hugh.  That much had been accomplished.

For the rest, things must take their own course.  He could do no
more--go no further.

Then he heard again her voice in the arbour of golden roses, saying, in
those low sweet tones which thrilled his very soul: "He stood to me for
all that was vital and alive, in life and in religion; strong to act;
able to endure."

During five minutes the Bishop sat, eyes closed, hands firmly clasped.

So still he sat, that the little Knight of the Bloody Vest, watching,
with bright eyes, from the tree overhead, almost made up his mind to
drop to the other end of the seat.  He was missing Sister Mary Antony,
who had not appeared at all that morning.  This meant neither crumbs
nor cheese, and the "little vain man" was hungry.

But at the end of five minutes the Bishop rose, calm and purposeful;
moved firmly up the lawn, mounted the steps, and passed into the
cloisters.




CHAPTER XXXVII

WHAT MOTHER SUB-PRIORESS KNEW

Mother Sub-Prioress had applied her eye, for the fiftieth time, to the
keyhole; but naught could she see in the Prioress's cell, save a
portion of the great wooden cross against the opposite wall.

Sister Mary Rebecca, mounted upon a stool, attempted to spy through the
hole over the rope and pulley by means of which the Reverend Mother
rang the Convent bell.  But all Sister Mary Rebecca saw, after bumping
her head upon a beam, and her nose on the wall, owing to the
impossibility of getting it out of the way of her eye, was a portion of
the top of the Reverend Mother's window.

She cried out, as a great discovery, that the curtains were drawn back;
upon which, Mother Sub-Prioress, exclaiming, tartly, that that had been
long ago observed from the garden below, pushed the stool in her anger,
and sent Sister Mary Rebecca flying.

Jumping to save herself, she alighted heavily on the feet of Sister
Teresa, striking Mary Seraphine full in the face with her elbow, and
scattering, to right and left, the crowd around the door.

This cleared a view for Mother Sub-Prioress straight down the passage
and through the big open door, to the cloisters; when, looking up--to
scold Mary Rebecca for taking such a leap, to bid Sister Teresa cease
writhing, and Mary Seraphine to shriek in her cell with the door shut,
if shriek she must--Mother Sub-Prioress saw the Bishop, alone and
unattended, walking toward them from the cloisters.

"_Benedicite_," said the Bishop, as he approached.  "I am fortunate in
chancing to find the whole community assembled."

The Bishop's uplifted fingers brought the nuns to their knees; but they
rose at once to their feet again and crowded behind Mother Sub-Prioress
as, taking a step forward, she hastened to explain the situation.

"My Lord Bishop, you find us in much distress.  The Reverend Mother is
locked into her cell, and we fear that, after a long night of vigil and
fasting, she hath swooned.  We cannot get an answer by much knocking,
and we have no means of forcing the door, which is of most massive
strength and thickness."

The Bishop looked searchingly into the ferrety face of Mother
Sub-Prioress, but he saw naught there save genuine distress and
perplexity.

He looked at the massive door, and at the excited crowd of nuns.  He
even gave himself time to note that the nose and lip of Seraphine were
beginning to swell, and to experience a whimsical wish that the Knight
could see her.

Then his calm, observant eye turned again to Mother Sub-Prioress.

"And why do you make so sure, Mother Sub-Prioress, that the Reverend
Mother is indeed within her cell?"

"Because we _know_ her to be," replied Mother Sub-Prioress, as tartly
as she dared, when addressing the Lord Bishop.  "Permit me, Reverend
Father, to recount to you the happenings of the last twenty hours.

"Soon after her return from Vespers, yestereven, the Reverend Mother
sent word by Mary Antony that she purposed again spending the night in
prayer and vigil, and would not be present at the evening meal; also
that she must not, on any account whatever, be disturbed.  Mary Antony
took this message to the kitchens, bidding the younger lay-sisters to
prepare the meal without her, saying she cared not how badly it was
served, seeing the Reverend Mother would not be there to partake of it."

Mother Sub-Prioress paused to sniff, and to give the other nuns an
opportunity for ejaculations concerning Sister Antony.  But their awe
of the Lord Bishop, and their genuine anxiety for the old lay-sister,
kept them silent.

The Bishop stroked his chin, keeping the corners of his mouth firmly in
place by means of his thumb and finger.  Old Antony was delectably
funny when she said these things herself; but she was delectably
funnier, when her remarks were repeated by Mother Sub-Prioress.

"The old _creature_," continued Mother Sub-Prioress, eyeing the
Bishop's meditative hand suspiciously, "then betook herself to the
outer gates, told the porteress that she had your orders, Reverend
Father, to report to you if the Reverend Mother again elected to pass a
night in vigil and in fasting, because you and she--you and _she_
forsooth!--were made anxious by the too constant fasting and the too
prolonged vigils of the Reverend Mother.  Mary Mark very properly
refused to allow the old"----

"Lay-sister," interposed the Bishop, sternly.

Mother Sub-Prioress gasped; then made obeisance:--"the old lay-sister
to leave the Convent.  Whereupon Sister Antony sent Mary Mark to
deliver the Reverend Mother's message to me, bribing her, with the
promise of a gift from you, my lord, to leave her the key.  When the
porteress returned, Mary Antony was gone, having left the great doors
ajar, and the key within the lock.  She has not been seen since.  Did
she reach the Palace, and speak with you, my lord?  Is she now in
safety at the Palace?"

"Nay," said the Bishop gravely.  "Sister Mary Antony hath not been seen
at the Palace."

"Alack-a-day!" exclaimed Sister Abigail; "she will have fallen by the
way, and perished!  She was too old to face the world or attempt to
reach the city."

"Peace, girl!" commanded the Sub-Prioress.  "Thy comments and thy
wailings mend not the matter, and do but incense the Lord Bishop."

Nothing could have appeared less incensed than the Bishop's benign
countenance.  But he had spoken sternly to Mother Sub-Prioress,
therefore she endeavoured to put herself in the right by charging him,
at the first opportunity, with unreasonable irritation.

The Bishop reassured Sister Abigail, with a smile; then, pointing
toward the closed door: "Proceed with your recital, Mother
Sub-Prioress," he said.  "You have as yet given me no proof confirming
your belief that the Prioress is within the cell."

"When the absence of Mary Antony became known, my lord," continued
Mother Sub-Prioress, "we felt it right to acquaint the Reverend Mother
with the old lay-sister's flight.  I, myself, knocked upon this door;
but the only reply I received was the continuous low chanting of
prayers, from within; not so much a clear chanting, as a murmur; and
whenever, during the night, nuns listened at the door, or ventured
again to tap, the sound of the Reverend Mother's voice, reciting psalms
or prayers, reached them.  As you may remember, my lord, the ground
upon the other side of the building is on a lower level than the
cloister lawn.  The windows of the Reverend Mother's cell are therefore
raised above the shrubbery and it is not possible to see into the
chamber.  But Sister Mary Rebecca, who went round after dark, noted
that the Reverend Mother had lighted her tapers and drawn her curtains.
This morning the light is extinguished, the curtains are drawn back,
and the casement flung open.  Moreover at the usual hour for rising,
the Reverend Mother rang the bell, as is her custom, to waken the
nuns--rang it from within her cell, by means of this rope and pulley."

"Ah," said the Bishop.

"Sister Abigail, up already, thereupon ran to the Reverend Mother's
cell; and, the bell still swinging, tapped and asked if she might bring
in milk and bread.  Once more the only answer was the low chanting of
prayers.  Also, Sister Abigail declares, the voice was so weak and
faltering, she scarce knew it for the Reverend Mother's.  And since
then, my lord, there has been silence within the cell, and a sore sense
of fear within our hearts; for it is unlike the Reverend Mother to keep
her door locked, when the entire community calls and knocks without."

The Bishop lifted his hand.

"In that speak you truly, Mother Sub-Prioress," said he.  "Also I must
tell you without further delay, that the Prioress is not within her
cell."

"_Not_ within her cell!" exclaimed Mother Sub-Prioress.

"Not within her cell!" shrieked a score of terrified voices, like
seagulls calling to each other, before a gathering storm.

"The Prioress left the Convent yesterday afternoon," said the Bishop,
"with my knowledge and approval; travelling at once, with a sufficient
escort, to a place some distance from Worcester, where I also spent the
night.  I have come to bring you a message from His Holiness the Pope,
sent to me direct from Rome. . . .  The Holy Father bids me say that
your Prioress has been moved on by me, with his full knowledge and
approval, to a place where she is required for higher service.  Perhaps
I may also tell you," added the Bishop, looking with kindly sympathy
upon all the blankly disconcerted faces, "that this morning I myself
performed a solemn rite, for which I held the Pope's especial mandate,
setting apart your late Prioress for this higher service.  She grieved
that it was not possible to bid you farewell.  She sends you loving
greetings, her thanks for loyalty and obedience, and prays that the
blessing of the Lord may ever be with you."

The Bishop ceased speaking.

At first there was an amazed silence.

Then the unexpected happened.  Mother Sub-Prioress, without any
warning, broke into passionate weeping.

Never before had Mother Sub-Prioress been known to weep.  The sight
petrified the Convent.  Yet somehow all knew that she wept because, in
the hard old nut which did duty for her heart, there was a kernel of
deep love for their noble Prioress.

The other nuns wept, because Mother Sub-Prioress wept.

The sobbing became embarrassing in its completeness.  Wheresoever the
Bishop looked he was confronted by a weeping nun.

Suddenly Mother Sub-Prioress dried her eyes, holding herself once more
in control.  It had just occurred to her that the Bishop's word could
not be taken against the evidence of all their senses!  On that very
morning, at five o'clock the Convent call to rise had been rung from
_within_ the Prioress's cell!

So Mother Sub-Prioress dried her eyes, punished her nose for sharing in
the general breakdown, and looking with belligerent eye at the Bishop,
said: "_If_ the Reverend Mother _be_ not within her cell, _perhaps_ it
will please you, my lord, to _inform_ the Convent who is within it!"

"That point," said the Bishop, "can speedily be settled."

He took from his girdle the Prioress's master-key, handed over to him
before he left Warwick.

Fitting it into the lock, he opened the door of the cell, and entered,
followed by the Sub-Prioress and a crowd of palpitating, eager nuns.

A few paces from the door the Bishop paused, signing to Mother
Sub-Prioress to come forward, but restraining, with uplifted hand,
those who pressed in behind her.

The chamber was very still.

The chair of the Prioress was empty.

But, before the shrine of the Madonna, there lay, stretched upon the
floor, the unconscious form of the old lay-sister, Mary Antony.




CHAPTER XXXVIII

THE BISHOP KEEPS VIGIL

Old Mary Antony lay dying.

The Bishop had not allowed her to be carried from the cell of the
Prioress, to her own.

He had commanded that the Reverend Mother's couch be moved from the
inner room and placed before the shrine of the Virgin.  On this lay
Mary Antony, while the Bishop himself kept watch beside her.

The evening light came in through the open casement, illumining the
calm old face, from which the soothing hand of death was already
smoothing the wrinkles.

Five hours had passed since they found her.

It had taken long to restore her to consciousness; and so soon as she
awoke to her surroundings, and recognised Mother Sub-Prioress, and the
many faces around her, she relapsed into silence, refusing to answer
any questions, yet keeping her eyes anxiously fixed upon the door.

Seeing which, Sister Teresa slipped from the room and ran secretly to
tell the Lord Bishop, who had paid but a brief visit to the Palace and
was now pacing the lawn below the cloisters.

The Bishop came at once; when, seeing him enter, Mary Antony gave a
cry, striving to raise herself from the pillows.

Moving to the bedside, the Bishop laid his hand upon the shaking hands,
which had been clasped at sight of him.

An eager question was in the eyes lifted to his.

The Bishop bent over the couch.

"Yes," he said, and smiled.

The anxious look faded.  The eyes closed.  A triumphant smile illumined
the dying face.

Turning, the Bishop asked a few whispered questions of the Sub-Prioress.

Mary Antony had taken a sip of wine, but seemed to find it impossible
to partake of food.  She had been so long without, that now nature
refused it.

"Undoubtedly she is dying," said Mother Sub-Prioress, not unkindly, but
in the matter-of-fact tone of one to whom the hard outline of a fact is
unsoftened by the atmosphere of imagination or of sympathy.

"I know it," said the Bishop, in low tones.  "Therefore am I come to
confess our sister and to administer the final rites and consolations
of the Church.  I have with me all that is needed.  You may now
withdraw, and leave me to watch alone beside Sister Mary Antony."

"We sent for Father Peter," began Mother Sub-Prioress, "but she paid no
heed to any of his questions, neither would she"----

The Bishop took one step toward Mother Sub-Prioress, with uplifted
hand, pointing to the door.

Mother Sub-Prioress hastened out.

The Bishop followed her into the passage, where a waiting crowd of nuns
created that atmosphere of excited tension, which seizes certain minds
at the near approach of death.

"I bid you all to go to your cells," said the Bishop, "there to spend
the next hour in earnest prayer for the passing soul of this aged nun
who, during so long a time, has lived and worked in this Convent.  Let
every door be closed.  I keep the final vigil alone.  When I need help
I shall ring the Convent bell."

Immovable in the passage stood the Bishop, until every figure had
vanished; every door had closed.

Then he re-entered the Prioress's cell, and shut the door.

He placed the holy oil on the step, before the shrine of the Madonna,
just where old Antony had knelt when she had prayed our blessèd Lady to
be pleased to sharpen her old wits.

Then he drew forth a tiny flask of rare Italian workmanship, let fall a
few drops from it into a spoonful of wine, and firmly poured the liquid
between the old lay-sister's parted lips.

One anxious moment; then he heard her swallow.

At that, the Bishop drew the Prioress's chair to the side of the couch,
and sat down to await events.

In a few moments the stertorous breathing ceased, the open mouth
closed.  Mary Antony sighed thrice, as a little child that has wept
before sleeping sighs in its sleep.

Then she opened her eyes, and fixed them on the Bishop.

"Reverend Father"--she began, then chuckled, gleefully.  Her voice had
come back, and with it a great activity of brain, though the hands upon
the coverlet seemed to belong to someone else, and she hoped they would
not rise up and strike her.  Her feet, she could not feel at all; but,
seeing that she was most comfortably lying there where she best loved
to be, why should she require feet?  Feet are such tired things.  One
rests better without them.

"Speak low," said the Bishop, bending forward.  "Speak low, dear Sister
Antony; partly to spare thy strength; and partly because, though I have
sent all the White Ladies to their cells, our good Mother Sub-Prioress,
in her natural anxiety for thy welfare, may be outside the door, even
now."

Mary Antony chuckled.

"If we could but thrust a nail through into her ear," she whispered.
Then suddenly serious, she put the question which already her eyes had
asked: "Did I succeed in keeping from them the flight of the Reverend
Mother, until you arrived, Reverend Father?"

"Yes, faithful heart, wise beyond all expectation, you did."

Again Mary Antony chuckled.

"I locked them out," she said, with a knowing wink, "but I also took
them in.  Yea, verily, I took them in!  Scores of times they called me
'Reverend Mother.'  'Open the door, I humbly pray you, Reverend
Mother,' pleaded Mother Sub-Prioress at the keyhole.  '_Dixi: Custodiam
vias meas_,' chanted Mary Antony, in a beauteous voice! . . .  'Open,
open, Reverend Mother!' besought a multitude without.  '_Quid
multiplicati sunt gui tribulant me_!' intoned Mary Antony,
within. . . .  'Most dear and Reverend Mother,' crooned Sister Mary
Rebecca, at midnight, 'I have something of deepest importance to
say'--'_Dixit insipiens_,' was Mary Antony's appropriate response.  Eh,
and Sister Mary Rebecca, thinking none could observe her, had already
been round, in the moonlight, and attempted to climb a tree.  All the
Reverend Mother's windows were closely curtained; but old Antony had
her eye to a crack, and the sight of Sister Mary Rebecca climbing, made
all the other trees to shake with laughter, but is not a sight to be
described to the great Lord Bishop. . . .  Nay, then!"--with a startled
cry--"Why doth this knotted finger rise up and shake itself at me?"

The Bishop took the worn old hand, now stone cold, laid it back upon
the quilt, and covered it with his own.

The drug he had administered had indeed revived the powers, but the
over-excited brain was inclined to wander.

He recalled it with a name which he knew would act as a potent spell.

"Would you have news of the Prioress, Sister Antony?"

Instantly the eyes grew eager.

"Is she safe, Reverend Father?  Is she well?  Hath she taken happiness
to her with both hands, not thrusting it away?"

"Happiness hath taken her by both hands," said the Bishop.  "This
morning I blest her union with a noble knight to whom she was betrothed
before she came hither."

"_I_ know," whispered old Antony ecstatically.  "I heard it all, I and
my meat chopper, hidden in there; I and my meat chopper--not willing to
let the Reverend Mother face danger alone.  And I did thrust the handle
of the chopper between my gums, that I might not cry 'Bravely done!'
when the noble Knight and his men-at-arms flung a rope over a strong
bough, and hanged that clerkly fellow--somewhat lean and out at elbows.
Oh, ah?  It was bravely done!  I heard it all!  I saw it all!"

Then the joy faded; a look of shame and grief came into the old face.

"But having thus seen and heard has led me into grievous sin, Reverend
Father.  Alas, I have lied about holy things, sinning, I fear me,
beyond forgiveness, though indeed I did it, meaning to do well.  May I
tell you all, Reverend Father, that you may judge whether in that which
I did, I acted according to our blessèd Lady's will and intention, or
whether the deceitfulness of mine own heart has led me into mortal sin?"

The Bishop looked anxiously at the sun dipping slowly in the west.  The
effect of the drug he had given should last an hour, if care were taken
of this spurious strength.  He judged a quarter of that time to have
already sped.

"Tell me from the beginning, without reserve, dear Antony," he said.
"But speak low, for my ear only.  Remember possible listeners outside
the door."

So presently the whole tale was told, with many a quaint twist of old
Antony's.  And the Bishop's heart melted to tenderness as she whispered
the story, and he realised the greatness of the devotion which had gone
forward, without a thought of self, in the bold endeavour to bring
happiness to the Prioress she loved, yet the anxious conscience, which
now trembled at the thought of that which the fearless heart had done.

"I lied about holy things; I put words into our blessèd Lady's mouth; I
said she moved her hand.  But you did tell me, Reverend Father, that
the Reverend Mother was so made that unless there was a vision or
revelation from our Lady, she would thrust away her happiness with both
hands.  And there would not have been a vision if old Antony had not
contrived one.  Yet I fear me, for the sin of that contriving, I shall
never find forgiveness; my soul must ever stay in torment."

Tears coursed down the wrinkled cheeks.

The Bishop kneeled beside the bed.

"Dear Antony," he said.  "Listen to me.  'Perfect love casteth out
fear, because fear hath torment.'  You have loved with a perfect love.
You need have no fear.  Trust in the love of God, in the precious blood
of the Redeemer, which cleanseth from all sin, in the understanding
tenderness of our Lady, who knoweth a woman's heart.  You meant to do
right; and if, honestly intending to do well, you used the wrong means,
Divine love, judging you by your intention, will pardon the mistake.
'If we confess our sins, He is faithful and just to forgive us our
sins, and to cleanse us from all unrighteousness.'  Think no more of
yourself, in this.  Dwell solely on our Lord.  Silence your own fears,
by repeating: 'He is faithful and just.'"

"Think you, Reverend Father," quavered the pathetic voice, "that They
will sometimes let old Antony out of hell for an hour, to sit on her
jasper seat and see the Reverend Mother walk up the golden stairs, with
the splendid Knight on one side and the great Lord Bishop on the other?"

"Sister Mary Antony," said the Bishop, clearly and solemnly, "there is
no place in hell for so faithful and so loving a heart.  You shall go
straight to your jasper seat; and because, with the Lord, one day is as
a thousand years, and a thousand years as one day, your eyes will
scarce have time to grow used to the great glory, before you see the
Reverend Mother coming, walking between the two who have faithfully
loved her; and you, who have also loved her faithfully, will also mount
the golden stair, and together we all shall kneel before the throne of
God, and understand at last the full meaning of those words of wonder:
GOD IS LOVE."

A look of ineffable joy lit up the dying face.

"Straight to my jasper seat," she said, "to watch--to wait"----

Then came the sudden fading of the spurious strength.  The Bishop put
out his hand and reached for the holy oil.

      *      *      *      *      *      *

The golden sunset light flooded the chamber with radiance.

The Bishop still watched beside the couch.

Having rallied sufficiently to make her last confession, short and
simple as a child's; having received absolution and the last sacred
rites of the Church, Mary Antony had slipped into a peaceful slumber.

The Bishop had to bend over and listen, to make sure that she still
breathed.

Suddenly she opened her eyes and looked full into his.

"Did you wed the Reverend Mother to the splendid Knight?" she asked,
and her voice was strong again and natural, with the little chuckle of
curiosity and humour in it, as of old.

"This morning," answered the Bishop, "I wedded them."

"Did he kiss her?" asked old Antony, with an indescribable twinkle of
gleeful enjoyment, though those twinkling eyes seemed the only living
thing in the old face.

"Nay," said the Bishop.  "They who truly kiss, kiss not in public."

"Ah," whispered Mary Antony.  "Yea, verily!  I know that to be true."

She lifted wandering fingers and, after much groping, touched her
forehead, with a happy smile.

Not knowing what else the action could mean, the Bishop leaned forward
and made the sign of the cross on her brow.

Mary Antony gave that peculiar little chuckle of enjoyment, which had
always marked her pleasure when the very learned made mistakes.  It
gave her so great a sense of cleverness.

After this the light faded from the old eyes, and the Bishop had begun
to think they would not again open upon this world, when a strange
thing happened.

There was a flick of wings, and in, through the open window, flew the
robin.

First he perched on the marble hand of the Madonna.  Then, with a
joyful chirp, dropped straight to the couch on which lay Mary Antony.

At sound of that chirp, Mary Antony opened her eyes, and saw her much
loved little bird hopping gaily on the coverlet.

"Hey, thou little vain man!" she said.  "Ah, naughty Master Pieman!
Art come to look upon old Antony in her bed?  The great Lord Bishop
will have thee hanged."

The robin hopped nearer, and pecked gently at the hand which so oft had
fed him, now lying helpless on the quilt.

A look of exquisite delight came into the old woman's eyes.

"Ah, my little Knight of the Bloody Vest," she whispered, "dost want
thy cheese?  Wait a minute, while old Antony searches in her wallet."

She sat up suddenly, as if to reach for something.

Then a startled look came into her face.  She stretched out appealing
hands to the Bishop.

Instantly he caught them in his.

"Fear not, dear Antony," he said.  "All is well."

The robin, spreading his wings, flew out at the window.  And the loving
spirit of Mary Antony went with him.

The Bishop laid the worn-out body gently back upon the couch, closed
the eyes, and folded the hands upon the breast.

Then he walked over to the window, and stood looking at the golden
ramparts of that sunset city, glowing against the delicate azure of the
evening sky.

Great loneliness of soul came to the Bishop, standing thus in the empty
cell.

The Prioress had gone; the robin had gone; Mary Antony had gone; and
the Bishop greatly wished that he might go, also.

Presently he turned to the Prioress's table.  She had sent to the
Palace the copy she had made, and the copy she had mended, of the
Pope's mandate.  But she had left upon the table the strips of
parchment upon which she had inscribed, on the night of her vigil,
copies and translations of ancient prayers from the Sacramentaries.
The Bishop gathered these up, reading them as he stood.  Two he slipped
into his sash, but the third he took to the couch and placed beneath
the folded hands.

"Take this with thee to thy jasper seat, dear faithful heart," he said;
"for truly it was given unto thee to perceive and know what things thou
oughtest to do, and also to have grace and power faithfully to fulfil
the same."

The peaceful face, growing beautiful with that solemn look of eternal
youth which death brings, even to the aged, seemed to smile, as the
precious parchment passed into the keeping of those folded hands.

The Bishop knelt long in prayer and thanksgiving.  At length, with
uplifted face, he said: "And grant, O my God, that I too may be
faithful, unto the very end."

Then he rose, and rang the Convent bell.




CHAPTER XXXIX

THE "SPLENDID KNIGHT"

On the steps of Warwick Castle stood the Knight and his bride.

Their eyes still lingered on the archway through which the noble figure
of Symon, Bishop of Worcester, mounted upon his black mare, Shulamite,
had just disappeared from view.

The marriage had taken place in the Castle chapel, half an hour before,
with an astonishing amount of pomp and ceremony.  Priests and acolytes
had appeared from unexpected places.  Madonna lilies, on graceful stem,
gleamed white in the shadows of the sacred place.  Solemn music rose
and fell; the deep roll of the Gregorian chants, beginning with a low
hum as of giant bees in a vast field of clover; swelling, in
full-throated unison, a majestic volume of sound which rang against the
rafters, waking echoes in the clerestory; then rumbling back into
silence.

Standing beneath the sacred canopy, the bridal pair lifted their eyes
to the high altar and saw, amid a cloud of incense, the Bishop, in
gorgeous vestments, descending the steps and coming toward them.

To Mora, at the time, and afterwards in most thankful remembrance, the
wonder of that which followed lay in the fact that where she had
dreaded an inevitable sense of sacrilege in giving to another that
which had been already consecrated to God, the Bishop so worded the
service as to make her feel that she could still be spiritually the
bride of Christ, even while fulfilling her troth to Hugh; also that, in
accepting the call to this new Vocation, she was not falling from her
old estate, but rather rising above it.

As the words were spoken which made her a wife, it seemed as if the
Bishop gently wrapped her about with a fresh mantle of dignity--that
dignity which had fallen from her in those moments of humiliation when,
at Hugh's bidding she laid herself down upon the stretcher.

The Bishop voiced the Church with a pomp and power which could not be
withstood; and when, in obedience to his command Hugh grasped her right
hand with his right hand, and the Bishop laid his own on either side of
their clasped hands, and pronounced them man and wife, it seemed indeed
as if a Divine touch united them, as if a Divine voice ratified their
vows and sanctified their union.

Mora had never before seen the _man_ so completely merged in his high
office.

And, when all was over, even as he mounted Shulamite and rode away, he
rode out of the courtyard with the air of a Knight Templar riding
forth-to do battle in a Holy War.

It seemed to Mora that she had bidden farewell to her old friend of the
kindly smile, the merry eye, and the ready jest, in the early hours of
that morning, as together they left the arbour of the golden roses.

There remained therefore but one man to be considered: the "splendid
Knight" of old Antony's vision; the lover who had pursued her into her
Nunnery; wooed her in her own cell, unabashed by the dignity of her
office; mastered her will; forced her numbed heart to awaken, disturbed
by the thrill of an unwilling tenderness; moved her to passion by the
poignant anguish of a parting, which she regarded as inevitably final;
won the Bishop over, to his side, and, through him, the Pope; and
finally, by the persistence of his pleadings, moved our blessèd Lady to
vouchsafe a vision on his behalf.

This was the "splendid Knight" against whom the stars in their courses
had most certainly not fought.  Principalities and powers had all been
for him; against him, just a woman and her conscience, and--he had won.

When, at their first interview in her cell, in reply to her demand:
"Why are you not with your wife?" he had answered: "I _am_ with my
wife; the only wife I have ever wanted, the only woman I shall ever
wed, is here"--she stood ready to strike with ivory and steel, at the
first attempt upon her inviolable chastity, and could afford to smile,
in pitying derision, at so empty a boast.

But now?  If he said: "My wife is here," and chose to seize her with
possessive grasp, she must meekly fold her hands upon her breast, and
say: "Even so, my lord.  I am yours.  Deal with me as you will."

As the Bishop's purple cloak and the hind quarters of his noble black
mare, disappeared from view, the crowd which hitherto had surrounded
the bridal pair, also vanished, as if at the wave of a magic wand.
Thus for the first time, since those tense moments in the Cathedral
crypt, Mora found herself alone with Hugh.

She was not young enough to be embarrassed; but she was old enough to
be afraid; afraid of him, and afraid of herself; afraid of his
masterful nature and imperious will, which had always inclined to break
rather than bend anything which stood in his way; and afraid of
something in herself which leapt up in response to this fierce strength
in him, yearning to be mastered, hungry to yield, wishful to obey; yet
which, if yielded to, would lay her spirit in the dust, and turn the
awakened tenderness in her heart to scorn of herself, and anger against
him.

So she feared as she stood in the sunshine, watching the now empty
archway through which her sole remaining link with Convent life had
vanished; conscious, without looking round, that Debbie, who had been
curtseying behind her, was there no longer; that Martin Goodfellow, who
had held Shulamite's bridle while the Bishop mounted, had disappeared
in one direction, the rest of the men in another; intensely conscious
that she and Hugh were now alone; and fearing, she shivered again, as
she had shivered in the crypt; then, of a sudden, knew that she had
done so, and, with a swift impulse of shame and contrition, turned and
looked at Hugh.

He was indeed the "splendid Knight" of Mary Antony's vision!  He had
donned for his bridal the dress of white and silver, which he had last
put on when he supped at the Palace with the Bishop.  This set off,
with striking effect, his dark head and the noble beauty of his
countenance; and Mora, who chiefly remembered him as a handsome youth,
graceful and gay, realised for the first time his splendour as a man,
and the change wrought in him by all he had faced, endured, and
overcome.

In the crypt, the day before, and during the hours which followed, she
had scarce let herself look at him; and he, though always close beside
her, had kept out of her immediate range of vision.

Since that infolding clasp in the crypt when he had flung the cloak
about her, not once had he touched her, until the Church just now bade
him, with authority, to take her right hand, with his.

Her mind flew back to the happenings of the previous day.  With the
lightning rapidity of retrospective thought, she passed again through
each experience from the moment when the call of the blackbird sounded
in the crypt.  The helpless horror of being lifted by unseen hands; the
slow, swinging progress, to the accompaniment of the measured tread of
the men-at-arms; the stifling darkness, air and light shut out by the
heavy cloak, and yet the clear consciousness of the moment when the
stretcher passed from the Cathedral into the sunshine without; the
sudden pause, as the Bishop met the stretcher, and then--as she lay
helpless between them--Symon's question and Hugh's reply, with their
subtlety of hidden meaning, which filled her with impotent anger,
shewing as it did the completeness of the Bishop's connivance at Hugh's
conspiracy.  Then Hugh's request, and the Bishop's hand laid upon her,
the Bishop's voice uplifted in blessing.  Then once again the measured
tramp, tramp, and the steady swing of the stretcher; but now the men's
heels rang on cobbles, and voices seemed everywhere; cheery greetings,
snatches of song, chance words concerning a bargain or a meeting, a
light jest, a coarse oath; and, all the while, the steady, tramp,
tramp, and the ring of Hugh's spurs.

She grew faint and it seemed to her she was about to die beneath the
cloak, and that when at length Hugh removed it, it would prove a pall
beneath which he would find a dead bride.

"Dead bride!  Dead bride!" sounded the tramping footsteps.  And all the
way she was haunted by the belief, assailing her confused senses in the
darkness, that the spirit of Father Gervaise had met the stretcher;
that his was the voice which murmured low and tenderly; "Be not afraid,
neither be thou dismayed.  Go in peace."

With this had come a horror of the outer world, a wild desire for the
safety and shelter of the Cloister, and an absolute physical dread of
the moment when the covering cloak should be removed, and she would
find herself alone with her lover; and, on rising from the stretcher,
be seized by his arms.

Yet when, having been tilted up steps, she was conscious of the silence
of passages and soon the even more complete quiet of a room; when the
stretcher was set down, and the bearers' feet died away, Hugh's deep
voice said gently: "Change thy garments quickly, my belovèd.  There is
no time to lose."  But he laid no hand upon the cloak, and his
footsteps, also, died away.

Then pushing back the heavy folds and sitting up, she had found herself
alone in a bedchamber, everything she could need laid ready to her
hand; while, upon the bed, lay her green riding-dress, discarded
forever, eight years before!

Her mind refused to look back upon the half-hour that followed.

She saw herself next appearing in the doorway at the top of a flight of
eight steps, leading down into the yard of the hostelry, where a
cavalcade of men and horses waited; while Icon, the Bishop's beautiful
white palfrey, was being led to and fro, and Hugh stood with an open
letter in his hand.

As she hesitated in the doorway, gazing down upon the waiting, restive
crowd, Hugh looked up and saw her.  Into his eyes flashed a light of
triumphant joy, of adoring love and admiration.  She had avoided
looking at her own reflection; but his face, as he came up the steps,
mirrored her loveliness.  It had cost her such anguish of soul to
divest herself of her sacred habit and don these gay garments belonging
to a life long left behind, that his evident delight in the change,
moved her to an unreasonable resentment.  Also that sudden blaze of
love in his dark eyes, dazzled her heart, even as a burst of sunshine
might dazzle one used to perpetual twilight.

She took the Bishop's letter, with averted eyes; read it; then moved
swiftly down the steps to where Icon waited.

"Mount me," she said to Martin Goodfellow, as she passed him; and it
was Martin who swung her into the saddle.

Then she trembled at what she had done, in yielding to this impulse
which made her shrink from Hugh.

As the black mane of his horse drew level with Icon's head, and side by
side they rode out from the courtyard, she feared a thunder-cloud on
the Knight's brow, and a sullen silence, as the best she could expect.
But calm and cheerful, his voice fell on her ear; and glancing at him
furtively, she still saw on his face that light which dazzled her
heart.  Yet no word did he speak which all might not have heard, and
not once did he lay his hand on hers.  Each time they dismounted, she
saw him sign to Martin Goodfellow, and it was Martin who helped her to
alight.

All this, in rapid retrospect, passed through Mora's mind as she stood
alone beside her splendid Knight, miserably conscious that she had
shivered, and that he knew it; and fearful lest he divined the
shrinking of her soul away from him, away from love, away from all for
which love stood.  Alas, alas!  Why did this man--this most human,
ardent, loving man--hang all his hopes of happiness upon the heart of a
nun?  Would it be possible that he should understand, that eight years
of cloistered life cannot be renounced in a day?

Mora looked at him again.

The stern profile might well be about to say: "Shudder again, and I
will do to thee that which shall give thee cause to shudder indeed!"

Yet, at that moment he spoke, and his voice was infinitely gentle.

"Yonder rides a true friend," he said.  "One who has learned love's
deepest lesson."

"What is love's deepest lesson?" she asked.

He turned and looked at her, and the fire of his dark eyes was drowned
in tenderness.

"That true love means self-sacrifice," he said.  "Come, my belovèd.
Let us walk in the gardens, where we can talk at ease of our plans for
the days to come."




CHAPTER XL

THE HEART OF A NUN

Hugh and Mora passed together through the great hall, along the
armoury, down the winding stair and so out into the gardens.

The Knight led the way across the lawn and through the rose garden,
toward the yew hedge and the bowling-green.

Old Debbie, looking from her casement, thought them beautiful beyond
words as she watched them cross the lawn--she in white and gold, he in
white and silver; his dark head towering above her fair one, though she
was uncommon tall.  And, falling upon her knees, old Debbie prayed to
the Angel Gabriel that she might live to hold in her arms, and rock to
sleep upon her bosom, sweet babes, both fair and dark: "Fair little
maids," she said, "and fine, dark boys," explaining to Gabriel that
which she thought would be most fit.

Meanwhile Hugh and Mora, walking a yard apart--all unconscious of these
family plans, being so anxiously made for them at an upper
casement--bent their tall heads and passed under the arch in the yew
hedge, crossed the bowling-green, and entered the arbour of the golden
roses.

Hugh led the way; yet Mora gladly followed.  The Bishop's presence
seemed to abide here, in comfort and protection.

All signs of the early repast were gone from the rustic table.

Mora took her seat there where in the early morning she had sat; while
Hugh, not knowing he did so, passed into the Bishop's place.

The sun shone through the golden roses, hanging in clusters over the
entrance.

The sense of the Bishop's presence so strongly pervaded the place, that
almost at once Mora felt constrained to speak of him.

"Hugh," she said, "very early this morning, long before you were awake,
the Bishop and I broke our fast, in this arbour, together."

The Knight smiled.

"I knew that," he said.  "In his own characteristic way the Bishop told
it me.  'My son,' he said, 'you have reversed the sacred parable.  In
your case it was the bride-groom who, this morning, slumbered and
slept.'  'True, my lord,' said I.  'But there were no foolish virgins
about.'  'Nay, verily!' replied the Bishop.  'The two virgins awake at
that hour were pre-eminently wise: the one, making as the sun rose most
golden pats of butter and crusty rolls; the other, rising early to
partake of them with appetite.  Truly there were no foolish virgins
about.  There was but one foolish prelate.'"

She, who so lately had been Prioress of the White Ladies, flushed with
indignation at the words.

"Wherefore said he so?" she inquired, severely.  "He, who is always
wiser than the wisest."

Hugh noted the heightened colour and the ready protest.

"Perhaps," he suggested, speaking slowly, as if choosing his words with
care, "the Bishop's head, being so wise, revealed to him, in himself, a
certain foolishness of heart."

Mora struck the table with her hand.

"Nay then, verily!" she cried.  "Head and heart alike are wise;
and--unlike other men--the Bishop's head rules his heart."

"And a most noble heart,", the Knight said, with calmness; neither
wincing at the blow upon the table, nor at the "unlike other men,"
flung out in challenge.

Then, folding his arms upon the table, and looking searchingly into the
face of his bride: "Tell me," he said, "during all these years, has
this friendship with Symon of Worcester meant much to thee?"

Something in his tone arrested Mora.  She answered, with an equal
earnestness: "Yes, Hugh.  It has done more for me than can well be
told.  It has kept living and growing in me much that would otherwise
have been stunted or dead; an ever fresh flow of thought, where, but
for him, would have been a stagnant pool.  My sad heart might have
grown bitter, my nature too austere, particularly when advancement to
high office brought with it an inevitable loneliness, had it not been
for the interest and charm of his visits and missives; his constant
gifts and kindness.  There is about him a light-hearted gaiety, a
whimsical humour, a joy in life, which cannot fail to wake responsive
gladness in any heart with which he comes in contact.  And mingled with
his shrewd wisdom, his wide knowledge of men and matters, there is ever
a tender charity, which thinks no evil, always believing in good and
hoping for the best; a love which never fails; a kindness which makes
one ashamed of harbouring hard or revengeful thoughts."

Hugh made no reply.  He sat with his eyes fixed upon the beautiful face
before him, now glowing with enthusiasm.  He waited for something more.
And presently it came.

"Also," said Mora, slowly: "a very precious memory of my early days at
Court, when as a young maiden I attended on the Queen, was kept alive
by a remarkable likeness in the Bishop to one who was, as I learned
this morning for the first time, actually near of kin to him.  Do you
remember, Hugh, long years ago, that I spoke to you of Father Gervaise?"

"I do remember," said the Knight.

She leaned her elbows on the table, framed her face in her hands, and
looked straight into his eyes.

"Father Gervaise was more to me than I then told you, Hugh."

"What was he to thee, Mora?"

"He was the Ideal of my girlhood.  For a time, I thought of him by day,
I dreamed of him by night.  No word of his have I ever forgotten.  Many
of his sayings and precepts have influenced, and still deeply
influence, my whole life.  In fact, Hugh, I loved Father Gervaise; not
as a woman loves a man--ah, no!  But, rather, as a nun loves her Lord."

"I see," said the Knight.  "But you were not then a nun, Mora."

"No, I was not then a nun.  But I have been a nun since then; and that
is how I can best describe my love for the Queen's Confessor."

"Long after," said the Knight, "you were betrothed to me?"

"Yes, Hugh."

"How did you love me, Mora?"

Across the rustic table they looked full into each other's eyes.
Tragedy, stalking around that rose-covered arbour, drew very near, and
they knew it.  Almost, his grim shadow came between them and the
sunshine.

Then the Knight smiled; and with that smile rushed back the flood-tide
of remembrance; remembrance of all which their young love had meant, of
the sweet promise it had held.

His eyes still holding hers, she smiled also.

The golden roses clustering in the entrance swayed and nodded in the
sunlight, as a gently rising breeze fanned them to and fro.

"Dear Knight," she said, softly, a wistful tenderness in her voice, "I
suppose I loved you, as a girl loves the man who has won her."

"Mora," said Hugh, "I have something to tell thee."

"I listen," she said.

"My wife--so wholly, so completely, do I love thee, that I would not
consciously keep anything from thee.  So deeply do I love thee, that I
would sooner any wrong or sin of mine were known to thee and by thee
forgiven, than that thou shouldest think me one whit better than I am."

He paused.

Her eyes were tender and compassionate.  Often she had listened, with a
patient heart of charity, to the tedious, morbid, self-centred
confessions of kneeling nuns, who watched with anxious eyes for the
sign which would mean that they might clutch at the hem of her robe and
press it to their lips in token that they were forgiven.

But she had had no experience of the sins of men.  What had the
"splendid Knight" upon his conscience, which must now be told her, in
this sunny arbour, on the morning of their bridal day?

Her heart throbbed painfully.  Alas, it was still the heart of a nun.
It would not be controlled.  Must she hear wild tales of wickedness and
shame, of which she would but partly understand the meaning?

Oh, for the calm of the Cloister!  Oh, for the sheltered purity of her
quiet cell!

Yet his eyes, still meeting hers, were clear and fearless.

"I listen," she said.

"Mora, not long ago a wondrous tale was told me of a man's great love
for thee--a man, nobler than I, in that he mastered all selfish
desires; a love higher than mine, in that it put thy welfare, in all
things, first.  Hearing this tale, I failed both myself and thee, for I
said: 'I pray heaven that, if she come to me, she may never know that
she once won the love of so greatly better a man than I.'  But, since I
clasped thy hand in mine, and the Bishop, laying his on either side,
gave thee to be my wife, I have known there would be no peace for me if
I feared to trust thee with this knowledge, because that the man who
loved thee was a better man than the man who, by God's mercy and our
Lady's grace, has won thee."

As the Knight spoke thus, the grey eyes fixed on his face grew wide
with wonder; soft, with a great compunction; yet, at the corners,
shewed a little crinkle in which the Bishop would instantly have
recognised the sign of approaching merriment.

Was this then a sample of the unknown sins of men?  Nothing here,
surely, to cause the least throb of apprehension, even to the heart of
a nun!  But what strange tale had reached the ears of this most dear
and loyal Knight?  She leaned a little nearer to him, speaking in a
tone which was music to his heart.

"Dear Knight of mine," she said, "no tale of a man's love for me can
have been a true one.  Yet am I glad that, deeming it true, and feeling
as it was your first impulse to feel, you now tell me quite frankly
what you felt, thus putting from yourself all sense of wrong, while
giving me the chance to say to you, that none more noble than this
faithful Knight can have loved me; for, saving a few Court pages,
mostly popinjays, and Humphry of Camforth, of whom the less said the
better, no other man hath loved me."

More kindly she looked on him than she yet had looked.  She leaned
across the table.

By reaching out his arms he could have caught her lovely face between
his hands.

Her eyes were merry.  Her lips smiled.

Greatly tempted was the Knight to agree that, saving himself, and
Humphry of Camforth, of whom the less said the better, none save Court
popinjays had loved her.  Yet in his heart he knew that ever between
them would be this fact of his knowledge of the love of Father Gervaise
for her, and of the noble renunciation inspired by that love.  He had
no intention of betraying the Bishop; but Mora's own explanation,
making it quite clear that she would not be likely to suspect the
identity of the Bishop with his supposed cousin, Father Gervaise,
seemed to the Knight to remove the one possible reason for concealment.
He was willing to risk present loss, rather than imperil future peace.

With an effort which made his voice almost stern: "The tale was a true
one," he said.

She drew back, regarding him with grave eyes, her hands folded before
her.

"Tell me the tale," she said, "and I will pronounce upon its truth."

"Years ago, Mora, when you were a young maiden at the Court, attending
on the Queen, you were most deeply loved by one who knew he could never
ask you in marriage.  That being so, so noble was his nature and so
unselfish his love, that he would not give himself the delight of
seeing you, nor the enjoyment of your friendship, lest, being so strong
a thing, his love--even though unexpressed--should reach and stir your
heart to a response which, might hinder you from feeling free to give
yourself, when a man who could offer all sought to win you.  Therefore,
Mora, he left the Court, he left the country.  He went to foreign
lands.  He thought not of himself.  He desired for you the full
completion which comes by means of wedded love.  He feared to hinder
this.  So he went."

Her face still expressed incredulous astonishment.

"His name?" she demanded, awaiting the answer with parted lips, and
widely-open eyes.

"Father Gervaise," said the Knight.

He saw her slowly whiten, till scarce a vestige of colour remained.

For some minutes she spoke no word; both sat silent, Hugh ruefully
facing his risks, and inclined to repent of his honesty.

At length: "And who told you this tale," she said; "this tale of the
love of Father Gervaise for a young maid, half his age?"

"Symon of Worcester told it me, three nights ago."

"How came the Bishop to know so strange and so secret a thing?  And
knowing it, how came he to tell it to you?"

"He had it from Father Gervaise himself.  He told it to me, because his
remembrance of the sacrifice made so long ago in order that the full
completion of wifehood and motherhood might be thine, had always
inclined him to a wistful regret over thy choice of the monastic life,
with its resultant celibacy; leading him, from the first, to espouse
and further my cause.  In wedding us to-day, methinks the Bishop felt
he was at last securing the consummation of the noble renunciation made
so long ago by Father Gervaise."

With a growing dread at his heart, Hugh watched the increasing pallor
of her face, the hard line of the lips which, but a few moments before,
had parted in such gentle sweetness.

"Alas!" he exclaimed, "I should not have told thee!  With my clumsy
desire to keep nothing from thee, I have spoilt an hour which else
might have been so perfect."

"You did well to tell me, dear Knight of mine," she said, a ripple of
tenderness passing across her stern face, as swiftly and gently as the
breeze stirs a cornfield.  "Nor is there anything in this world so
perfect as the truth.  If the truth opened an abyss which plunged me
into hell, I would sooner know it, than attempt to enter Paradise
across the flimsy fabric of a lie!"

Her voice, as she uttered these words, had in it the ring which was
wont to petrify wrong-doers of the feebler kind among her nuns.

"Dear Knight, had the Bishop not forestalled me when he named his
palfrey, truly I might have found a fine new name for you!  But now, I
pray you of your kindness, leave me alone with my fallen image for a
little space, that I may gather up the fragments and give them decent
burial."

With which her courage broke.  She stretched her clasped hands across
the table and laid her head upon her arms.

Despair seized the Knight as he stood helpless, looking down upon that
proud head laid low.

He longed to lay his hand upon the golden softness of her hair.

But her shoulders shook with a hard, tearless sob, and the Knight fled
from the arbour.


As he paced the lawn, on which the Bishop had promenaded the evening
before, Hugh cursed his rashness in speaking; yet knew, in the heart of
his heart, that he could not have done otherwise.  Mora's words
concerning truth, gave him a background of comfort.  Even so had he
ever himself felt.  But would it prove that his honesty had indeed
shattered his chances of happiness, and hers?

A new name? . . .  What might it be? . . .  What the mischief, had the
Bishop named his palfrey? . . .  Sheba?  Nay, that was the ass!
Solomon?  Nay, that was the mare!  Yet--how came a mare to be named
Solomon?

In his disturbed mental state it irritated him unreasonably that a mare
should be called after a king with seven hundred wives!  Then he
remembered "black, but comely," and arrived at the right name,
Shulamite.  Of course!  Not Solomon but Shulamite.  He had read that
love-poem of the unnamed Eastern shepherd, with the Rabbi in the
mountain fastness.  The Rabbi had pointed out that the word used in
that description signified "sunburned."  The lovely Shulamite maiden,
exposed to the Eastern sun while tending her kids and keeping the
vineyards, had tanned a ruddy brown, beside which the daughters of
Jerusalem, enclosed in King Solomon's scented harem, looked pale as
wilting lilies.  Remembering the glossy coat of the black mare, Hugh
wondered, with a momentary sense of merriment, whether the Bishop
supposed the maiden of the "Song of Songs" to have been an Ethiopian.

Then he remembered "Iconoklastes."  Yes, surely!  The palfrey was
Iconoklastes.  Now wherefore gave the Bishop such a name to his white
palfrey?

Striding blindly about the lawn, of a sudden the Knight stepped full on
to a flower-bed.  At once he seemed to hear the Bishop's gentle voice:
"I named him Iconoklastes because he trampled to ruin some flower-beds
on which I spent much time and care, and of which I was inordinately
fond."

Ah! . . .  That was it!  The destroyer of fair bloom and blossom, of
buds of promise; of the loveliness of a tended garden. . . .  Was this
then what he seemed to Mora?  He, who had forced her to yield to the
insistence of his love? . . .  In her chaste Convent cell, she could
have remained true to this Ideal love of her girlhood: and, now that
she knew it to have been called forth by love, could have received,
mentally, its full fruition.  Also, in time she might have discovered
the identity of the Bishop with Father Gervaise, and long years of
perfect friendship might have proved a solace to their sundered hearts,
had not he--the trampler upon flower-beds--rudely intervened.

And yet--Mora had been betrothed to him, her love had been his, long
after Father Gervaise had left the land.

How could he win her back to be once more as she was when they parted
on the castle battlements eight years before?

How could he free himself, and her, from these intangible,
ecclesiastical entanglements?

He was reminded of his difficulties when he tried to walk disguised in
the dress of the White Ladies, and found his stride impeded by those
trailing garments.  He remembered the relief of wrenching them off, and
stepping clear.

Why not now take the short, quick road to mastery?

But instantly that love which seeketh not its own, the strange new
sense so recently awakened in him, laid its calm touch upon his
throbbing heart.  Until that moment in the crypt the day before, he had
loved Mora for his own delight, sought her for his own joy.  Now, he
knew that he could take no happiness at the cost of one pang to her.

"She must be taught not to shudder," cried the masterfulness which was
his by nature.

"She must be given no cause to shudder," amended this new, loyal
tenderness, which now ruled his every thought of her.


Presently, returning to the arbour, he found her seated, her elbows on
the table, her chin cupped in her hands.

She had been weeping; yet her smile of welcome, as he entered, held a
quality he had scarce expected.

He spoke straight to the point.  It seemed the only way to step clear
of immeshing trammels.

"Mora, it cuts me to the heart that, in striving to be honest with you,
I have all unwittingly trampled upon those flower-beds in which you
long had tended fair blossoms of memory.  Also I fear this knowledge of
a nobler love, makes it hard for you to contemplate life linked to a
love which seems to you less able for self-sacrifice."

She gazed at him, wide-eyed, in sheer amazement.

"Dear Knight," she said, "true, I am disillusioned, but not in aught
that concerns you.  You trampled on no flower-beds of mine.  My
shattered idol is the image of one whom I, with deepest reverence,
loved, as a nun might love her Guardian Angel.  To learn that he loved
me as a man loves a woman, and that he had to flee before that love,
lest it should harm me and himself, changes the hallowed memory of
years.  This morning, three names stood to me for all that is highest,
noblest, best: Father Gervaise, Symon of Worcester, and Hugh d'Argent.
Now, the Bishop and yourself alone are left.  Fail me not, Hugh, or I
shall be bereft indeed."

The Knight laughed, joyously.  The relief at his heart demanded that
much vent.  "Then, if I failed thee, Mora, there would be but the
Bishop?"

"There would be but the Bishop."

"I will not fail thee, my belovèd.  And I fear I must have put the
matter clumsily, concerning Father Gervaise.  As the Bishop told it to
me, there was naught that was not noble.  It seemed to me it should be
sweet to the heart of a woman to be so loved."

"Hush," she said, sternly.  "You know not the heart of a nun."

He did not reason further.  It was enough for him to know that the
shattered image she had buried was not the ideal of his love and hers,
or the hope of future happiness together.

"Time flies, dear Heart," he said.  "May I speak to thee of immediate
plans?"

"I listen," she answered.

Hugh stood in the entrance, among the yellow roses, leaning against the
doorpost, his arms folded on his breast, his feet crossed.

At once she was reminded of the scene in her cell, when he had taken up
that attitude while still garbed as a nun, and she had said: "I know
you for a man," and, in her heart had added: "And a stronger man,
surely, than Mary Seraphine's Cousin Wilfred!"

"We ride on to-day," said the Knight, "if you feel able for a few hours
in the saddle, to the next stage in our journey.  It is a hostel in the
forest; a poor kind of place, I fear; but there is one good room where
you can be made comfortable, with Mistress Deborah.  I shall sleep on
the hay, without, amongst my men.  Some must keep guard all night.  We
ride through wild parts to reach our destination."

He paused.  He could not hold on to the matter of fact tones in which
he had started.  When he spoke again, his voice was low and very tender.

"Mora, I am taking thee first to thine own home; to the place where,
long years ago, we loved and parted.  There, all is as it was.  Thy
people who loved thee and had fled, have been found and brought back.
Seven days of journeying should bring us there.  I have sent men on
before, to arrange for each night's lodging, and make sure that all is
right.  Arrived at thine own castle, Mora, we shall be within three
hours' ride of mine--that home to which I hope to bring thee.  Until we
enter there, my wife, although this morning most truly wed, we will
count ourselves but betrothed.  Once in thy home, it shall be left to
thine own choice to come to mine when and how thou wilt.  The step now
taken--that of leaving the Cloister and coming to me--had perforce to
be done quickly, if done at all.  But, now it is safely accomplished,
there is no further need for haste.  The wings of my swift desire shall
be dipt to suit thine inclination."

Hugh paused, looking upon her with a half-wistful smile.  She made no
answer; so presently he continued.

"I have planned that, each day, Mistress Deborah, with the baggage and
a good escort, shall go by the most direct route, and the best road.
Thus thou and I will be free to ride as we will, visiting places we
have known of old and which it may please thee to see again.  To-day we
can ride out by Kenilworth, and so on our first stage northward.
Martin will take Mistress Deborah on a pillion behind him.  Should she
weary of travelling so, she can have a seat in the cart with the
baggage.  But they tell me she travels bravely on horseback.  We will
send them on ahead of us, and on arrival all will be in readiness for
thee.  If this weather holds, we shall ride each day through a world of
sunshine and beauty; and each day's close, my wife, will find us one
day nearer home.  Does this please thee?  Have I thought of all?"

Rising, she came and stood beside him in the entrance to the arbour.

A golden rose, dipping from above, rested against her hair.

Her eyes were soft with tears.

"So perfectly have you thought and planned, dear faithful Knight, that
I think our blessèd Lady must have guided you.  As we ride out into the
sunshine, I shall grow used to the great world once more; and you will
have patience and will teach me things I have perhaps forgot."

She hesitated; half put out her hands; but his not meeting them, folded
them on her breast.

"Hugh, it seems hard that I should clip your splendid wings; but--oh,
Hugh!  Think you the heart of a nun can ever become again as the heart
of other women?"

"Heaven forbid!" said the Knight, fervently, thinking of Eleanor and
Alfrida.

And, as leaving the arbour they walked together over the lawn, she
smiled, remembering, how that morning the Bishop had answered the same
question in precisely the same words.  Whatever Father Gervaise might
have said, the Bishop and the Knight were agreed!

Yet she wished, somewhat wistfully, that this most dear and loyal
Knight had taken her hands when she held them out.

She would have liked to feel the strong clasp of his upon them.

Possibly our Lady, who knoweth the heart of a woman, had guided the
Knight in this matter also.




CHAPTER XLI

WHAT THE BISHOP REMEMBERED

Symon, Bishop of Worcester, sat in his library, in the cool of the day.

He was weary, with a weariness which surpassed all his previous
experience of weariness, all his imaginings as to how weary, in body
and spirit, a man could be, yet continue to breathe and think.

With some, extreme fatigue leads to restlessness of body.  Not so with
the Bishop.  The more tired he was, the more perfectly still he sat;
his knees crossed, his elbows on the arms of his chair, the fingers of
both hands pressed lightly together, his head resting against the high
back of the chair, his gaze fixed upon the view across the river.

As he looked with unseeing eyes upon the wide stretch of meadow, the
distant woods and the soft outline of the Malvern hills, he was
thinking how good it would be never again to leave this quiet room;
never to move from this chair; never again to see a human being; never
to have to smile when he was heart-sick, or to bow when he felt
ungracious!

Those who knew the Bishop best, often spoke together of his wondrous
vitality and energy, their favourite remark being: that he was never
tired.  They might with more truth have said that they had never known
him to appear tired.

It had long been a rule in the Bishop's private code, that weariness,
either of body or spirit, must not be shewn to others.  The more tired
he was, the more ready grew his smile, the more alert his movements,
the more gracious his response to any call upon his sympathy or
interest.

He never sighed in company, as did Father Peter when, having supped too
well off jolly of salmon, roast venison, and raisin pie, he was fain to
let indigestion pass muster for melancholy.

He never yawned in Council, either gracefully behind his hand, as did
the lean Spanish Cardinal; or openly and unashamed, as did the round
and rosy Abbot of Evesham, displaying to the fascinated gaze of the
brethren in stalls opposite, a cavernous throat, a red and healthy
tongue, and a particularly fine set of teeth.

Moreover the Bishop would as soon have thought of carrying a garment
from the body of a plague-stricken patient into the midst of a family
of healthy children, as of entering an assemblage with a jaded
countenance or a languorous manner.

Therefore: "He is never weary," said his friends.

"He knoweth not the meaning of fatigue," agreed his acquaintances.

"There is no merit in labour which is not in anywise a burden, but,
rather, a delight," pronounced those who envied his powers.

"He is possessed," sneered his enemies, "by a most energetic demon!
Were that demon exorcised, the Bishop would collapse, exhausted."

"He is filled," said his admirers, "by the Spirit of God, and is thus
so energized that he can work incessantly, without experiencing
ordinary human weakness."

And none knew that it was a part of his religion to Symon of Worcester,
to hide his weariness from others.

Yet once when, in her chamber, he sat talking with the Prioress, she
had risen, of a sudden, saying: "You are tired, Father.  Rest there in
silence, while I work at my missal."

She had passed to the table; and the Bishop had sat resting, just as he
was sitting now, save that his eyes could then dwell on her face, as
she bent, absorbed, over the illumination.

After a while he had asked: "How knew you that I was tired, my dear
Prioress?"

Without lifting her eyes, she had made answer: "Because, my Lord
Bishop, you twice smiled when there was no occasion for smiling."

Another period of restful silence, while she worked, and he watched her
working.  Then he had remarked: "My friends say I am never tired."

And she had answered: "They would speak more truly if they said that
you are ever brave."

It had amazed the Bishop to find himself thus understood.  Moreover he
could scarce put on his biretta, so crowned was his head by the laurels
of her praise.  Also this had been the only time when he had wondered
whether the Prioress really believed Father Gervaise to be at the
bottom of the ocean.  It is ever an astonishment to a man when the
unerring intuition of a woman is brought to bear upon himself.

Now, in this hour of his overwhelming fatigue, he recalled that scene.
Closing his eyes on the distant view, and opening them upon the
enchanted vistas of memory, he speedily saw that calm face, with its
chastened expression of fine self-control, bending above the page she
was illuminating.  He saw the severe lines of the wimple, the folds of
the flowing veil, the delicate movement of the long fingers,
and--yes!--resting upon her bosom the jewelled cross, sign of her high
office.

Thus looking back, he vividly recalled the extraordinary restfulness of
sitting there in silence, while she worked.  No words were needed.  Her
very presence, and the fact that she knew him to be weary, rested him.

He looked again.  But now the folds of the wimple and veil were gone.
A golden circlet clasped the shining softness of her hair.

The Bishop opened tired eyes, and fixed them once again upon the
landscape.

He supposed the long rides on two successive days had exhausted him
physically; and the strain of securing and ensuring the safety and
happiness of the woman who was dearer to him than life, had reacted now
in a mental lassitude which seemed unable to rise up and face the
prospect of the lonely years to come.

The thought of her as now with the Knight, did not cause him suffering.
His one anxiety was lest anything unforeseen should arise, to prevent
the full fruition of their happiness.

He had never loved her as a man loves the woman he would wed;--at
least, if that side of his love had attempted to arise, it had
instantly been throttled and flung back.

It seemed to him that, from the very beginning he had ever loved her as
Saint Joseph must have loved the maiden intrusted to his keeping--his,
yet not his; called, in the inspired dream, "Mary, thy wife"; but so
called only that he might have the right to guard and care for her--she
who was shrine of the Holiest, o'ershadowed by the power of the
Highest; Mother of God, most blessèd Virgin forever.

It seemed to the Bishop that his joy in watching over Mora, since his
appointment to the See of Worcester, had been such as Saint Joseph
could well have understood; and now he had accomplished the supreme
thing; and, in so doing, had left himself desolate.

On the afternoon of the previous day, so soon as the body of the old
lay-sister had been removed from the Prioress's cell, the Bishop had
gathered together all those things which Mora specially valued and
which she had asked him to secure for her; mostly his gifts to her.

The Sacramentaries, from which she so often made copies and
translations, now lay upon his table.

His tired eyes dwelt upon them.  How often he had watched the firm
white fingers opening those heavy clasps, and slowly turning the pages.

The books remained; yet her presence was gone.

His weary brain repeated, over and over, this obvious fact; then began
a hypothetical reversal of it.  Supposing the books had gone, and her
presence had remained? . . .  Presently a catalogue formed itself in
his mind of all those things which might have gone, unmissed,
unmourned, if her dear presence had remained. . . .  Before long the
Palace . . . the City . . . the Cathedral itself . . . all had swelled
the list. . . .  He was alone with Mora and the sunset; . . . and the
battlements of glory were the radiant walls of heaven; . . . and soon
he and she were walking up old Mary Antony's golden stair
together. . . .

Hush! . . .  "So He giveth His belovèd sleep."

      *      *      *      *      *      *

The Bishop had but just returned from laying to rest, in the
burying-ground of the Convent, the worn-out body of the aged lay-sister.

When he had signified that he intended himself to perform the last
rites, Mother Sub-Prioress had ventured upon amazed expostulation.

Such an honour had never, in the history of the Community, been
accorded even to the Canonesses, much less to a lay-sister.  Surely
Father Peter--or the Prior?  Had it been the Prioress herself, why
then----

Few can remember the petrifying effect of a flash of sudden anger in
the kindly eyes of Symon of Worcester.  Mother Sub-Prioress will never
forget it.

So, with as much pomp and circumstance as if she had been Prioress of
the White Ladies, old Mary Antony's humble remains were laid in that
plot in the Convent burying-ground which she had chosen for herself,
half a century before.

Much sorrow was shewn, by the entire Community.  The great loss they
had sustained by the mysterious passing of the Prioress from their
midst, weighed heavily upon them; and seemed, in some way which they
could not fathom, to be connected with the death of the old lay-sister.

As the solemn procession slowly wended its way from the Chapel, along
the Cypress Walk, and so, across the orchard, to the burying-ground,
the tears which ran down the chastened faces of the nuns, were as much
a tribute of love to their late Prioress, as a sign of sorrow for the
loss of Mary Antony.  The little company of lay-sisters sobbed without
restraint.  Sister Abigail, so often called "noisy hussy" by old
Antony, fully, on this final occasion, justified the name.

As the procession was re-forming to leave the grave, Sister Mary
Seraphine felt that the moment had now arrived, old Antony being
disposed of, when she might suitably become the centre of attention,
and be carried, on the return journey.  She therefore fell prone upon
the ground, in a fainting fit.

The Bishop, his chaplain, the priests and acolytes, paused uncertain
what to do.

Sister Teresa, and other nuns, would have hastened to raise her, but
the command of Mother Sub-Prioress rang sharp and clear.

"Let her lie!  If she choose to remain with the Dead, it is but small
loss to the Living."

And with hands devoutly crossed upon her breast, ferret face peering to
right and left from out the curtain of her veil, Mother Sub-Prioress
moved forward at the head of the nuns.

The Bishop's procession, which had wavered, continued to lead the way;
solemn chanting began; and, as the Bishop turned into the Cypress Walk
he saw the flying figure of Mary Seraphine running among the trees in
the orchard, trying to catch up, and to take her place again,
unnoticed, among the rest.

The Bishop smiled, remembering his many talks with the Prioress
concerning Seraphine, and the Knight's dismay when he feared they were
foisting the wayward nun upon him.

Then he sighed as he realised that the control of the Convent had now
passed into the able hands of Mother Sub-Prioress; and that, in these
unusual circumstances, the task of selecting and appointing a new
Prioress, fell to him.

Perhaps his conversations on this subject, first with the Prior, and
later on with Mother Sub-Prioress, partly accounted for his extreme
fatigue, now that he found himself at last alone in his library.


But the reward of those "whose strength is to sit still," had come to
the Bishop.

Soon after he fixed his eyes upon the Gregorian and Gelasian
Sacramentaries, his eyelids gently began to droop.  Sleep was already
upon him when he decided to let the Palace, the City, yea, even the
Cathedral go, if he might but keep the Prioress.  And as he walked with
Mora up the golden stair, his mind was at rest; his weary body slept.

A very few minutes of sleep sufficed the Bishop.

He awoke as suddenly as he had fallen asleep; and, as he awoke, he
seemed to hear himself say: "Nay, Hugh.  None save the old lay-sister,
Mary Antony."

He sat up, wondering what this sentence could mean; also when and where
it had been spoken.

As he wondered, his eye fell upon the white stone which he had flung
into the Severn, and which the Knight, diving from the parapet, had
retrieved from the river bed.  The stone seemed in some way connected
with this chance sentence which had repeated itself in his brain.

The Bishop rose, walked over to his deed chest, took the white stone in
his hand and stood motionless, his eyes fixed upon it, wrapped in
thought.  Then he passed out on to the lawn, and paced slowly to and
fro between the archway leading from the courtyard, to the parapet
overlooking the river.

Yes; it was here.

He had ridden in on Shulamite, from the heights above the town, whence
he had watched the Prioress ride in the river meadow.

He had found Hugh d'Argent awaiting him, and together they had paced
this lawn in earnest conversation.

Hugh had been anxious to hear every detail of his visit to the Convent
and the scene in the Prioress's cell when he had shewn her the copy of
the Pope's mandate, just received from Rome.  In speaking of the
possible developments which might take place in the course of the next
few hours, Hugh had asked whether any in the Convent, beside Mora
herself, knew of his presence in Worcester, or that he had managed to
obtain entrance to the cloisters by the crypt passage, to make his way
disguised to Mora's cell, and to have speech with her.

The Bishop had answered that none knew of this, save the old lay-sister
Mary Antony, who was wholly devoted to the Prioress, made shrewd by
ninety years of experience in outwitting her superiors, and could be
completely trusted.

"How came she to know?" the Bishop seemed to remember that the Knight
had asked.  And he had made answer that he had as yet no definite
information, but was inclined to suspect that when the Prioress had
bidden the old woman begone, she had slipped into some place of
concealment from whence she had seen and heard something of what passed
in the cell.

To this the Knight had made no comment; and now, walking up and down
the lawn, the white stone in his hand, the Bishop could not feel sure
how far Hugh had taken in the exact purport of the words; yet well he
knew that sentences which pass almost unnoticed when heard with a mind
preoccupied, are apt to return later on, with full significance, should
anything occur upon which they shed a light.

This then was the complication which had brought the Bishop out to pace
the lawn, recalling each step in the conversation, there where it had
taken place.

Sooner or later, Mora will tell her husband of Mary Antony's wondrous
vision.  If she reaches the conclusion, uninterrupted, all will be
well.  The Knight will realise the importance of concealing the fact of
the old lay-sister's knowledge--by non-miraculous means--of his
presence in the cell, and his suit to the Prioress.  But should she
preface her recital by remarking that none in the Community had
knowledge of his visit, the Knight will probably at once say: "Nay,
there you are mistaken!  I have it from the Bishop that the old
lay-sister, Mary Antony, knew of it, having stayed hidden where she saw
and heard much that passed; yet being very faithful, and more than
common shrewd, could--so said the Bishop--be most completely trusted."

Whereupon irreparable harm would be done; for, at once, Mora would
realise that she had been deceived; and her peace of mind and calm of
conscience would be disturbed, if not completely overthrown.

One thing seemed clear to the Bishop.

Hugh must be warned.  Probably no harm had as yet been done.  The
vision was so sacred a thing to Mora, that weeks might elapse before
she spoke of it to her husband.

With as little delay as possible Hugh must be put upon his guard.




CHAPTER XLII

THE WARNING

Alert, determined, all trace of lassitude departed, the Bishop returned
to the library, laid the stone upon the deed chest, sat down at a table
and wrote a letter.  He had made up his mind as to what must be said,
and not once did he pause or hesitate over a word.

While still writing, he lifted his left hand and struck upon a silver
gong.

When his servant entered, the Bishop spoke without raising his eyes
from the table.

"Request Brother Philip to come here, without loss of time."

When the Bishop, having signed his letter, laid down the pen, and
looked up, Brother Philip stood before him.

"Philip," said the Bishop, "select a trustworthy messenger from among
the stable men, one possessed of wits as well as muscle; mount him on a
good beast, supply him with whatsoever he may need for a possible six
days' journey.  Bring him to me so soon as he is ready to set forth.
He must bear a letter, of much importance, to Sir Hugh d'Argent; and,
seeing that I know only the Knight's route and stopping places, on his
northward ride, but not his time of starting, which may have been
yesterday or may not be until to-morrow, my messenger must ride first
to Warwick, which if the Knight has left, he must then follow in his
tracks until he overtake him."

"My lord," said Brother Philip, "the sun is setting and the daylight
fades.  The messenger cannot now reach Warwick until long after
nightfall.  Would it not be safer to have all in readiness, and let him
start at dawn.  He would then arrive early in the day, and could
speedily overtake the most worshipful Knight who, riding with his lady,
will do the journey by short stages."

"Nay," said the Bishop, "the matter allows of no delay.  Mount him so
well, that he shall outdistance all dangers.  He must start within half
an hour."

Brother Philip, bowing low, withdrew.

The Bishop bent again over the table, and read what he had written.
Glancing quickly through the opening greetings, he considered carefully
what followed.


_"This comes to you, my son, by messenger, riding in urgent haste,
because the advice herein contained is of extreme importance.

"On no account let Mora know that which I told you here, four days
since, as we paced the lawn; namely: that the old lay-sister, Mary
Antony, was aware of your visit to the Convent, and had, from some
place of concealment, seen and heard much of what passed in Mora's
cell.  How far you realised this, when I made mention of it, I know
not.  You made no comment.  It mattered little, then; but has now
become a thing of extreme importance.

"On that morning, finding the old lay-sister knew more than any
supposed, and was wholly devoted to the Prioress, I had chanced to
remark to her as I rode out of the courtyard that the Reverend Mother
would thrust happiness from her with both hands unless our Lady herself
offered it, by vision or revelation.

"Whereupon, my dear Knight, that faithful old heart using wits she had
prayed our Lady to sharpen, contrived a vision of her own devising, so
wondrously contrived, so excellently devised, that Mora--not dreaming
of old Antony's secret knowledge--could not fail to believe it true.
In fact, my son, you may praise heaven for an old woman's wits, for, as
you will doubtless some day hear from Mora herself, they gave you your
wife!

"But beware lest any chance words of yours lead Mora to suspect the
genuineness of the vision.  It would cost HER her peace of mind.  It
might cost YOU her presence.

"Meanwhile the agèd lay-sister died yesterday, after having mystified
the entire Community by locking herself into the Prioress's cell, and
remaining there, from the time she found it empty when the nuns
returned from Vespers, until I arrived on the following afternoon.  She
thus prevented any questionings concerning Mora's flight, and averted
possible scandal.  But the twenty-four hours without food or drink cost
the old woman her life.  A faithful heart indeed, and a most shrewd wit!

"Some day, if occasion permit, I will recount to you the full story of
Mary Antony's strategy.  It is well worth the hearing.

"I trust your happiness is complete; and hers, Hugh, hers!

"But we must take no risks; and never must we forget that, in dealing
with Mora, we are dealing with the heart of a nun.

"Therefore, my son, be wary.  Heaven grant this may reach you without
delay, and in time to prevent mischief."_


When the messenger, fully equipped for his journey, was brought before
the Bishop by Brother Philip, this letter lay ready, sealed, and
addressed to Sir Hugh d'Argent, at Warwick Castle in the first place,
but failing there, to each successive stopping place upon the northward
road, including Castle Norelle, which, the Bishop had gathered, was to
be reached on the seventh day after leaving Warwick.

So presently the messenger swung into the saddle, and rode out through
the great gates.  In a leathern wallet at his belt, was the letter, and
a good sum of money for his needs on the journey; and in his somewhat
stolid mind, the Bishop's very simple instructions--simple, yet given
with so keen a look, transfixing the man, that it seemed to the honest
fellow he had received them from the point of a blue steel blade.

He was to ride to Warwick, without drawing rein; to wake the porter at
the gate, and the seneschal within, no matter at what hour he arrived.
If the Knight were still at the Castle, the letter must be placed in
his hands so soon as he left his chamber in the morning.  But had he
already gone from Warwick, the messenger, after food and rest for
himself and his horse, was to ride on to the next stage and, if
needful, to the next, until he overtook Sir Hugh and delivered into his
own hands, with as much secrecy as possible, the letter.


The Bishop passed along the gallery, after the messenger had left the
library, mounted to the banqueting hall and watched him ride away, from
that casement, overlooking the courtyard, from which Hugh had looked
down upon the arrival of Roger de Berchelai, bringing the letter from
Rome.

A great relief filled the mind of the Bishop as he heard the clattering
hoofs of the fastest nag in his stables, ring on the paving stones
without, and die away in the distance.

A serious danger would be averted, if the Knight were warned in time.

The Bishop prayed that his letter might reach Hugh's hands before Mora
was moved to speak to him of Mary Antony's vision.

He blamed himself bitterly for not having sooner recalled that
conversation on the lawn.  How easy it would have been, after hearing
Mora's story in the arbour, to have given Hugh a word of caution before
leaving Warwick.

Just after sunset, one of the Bishop's men, who had remained behind at
Warwick, reached the Palace, bringing news that the Knight, his Lady,
and their entire retinue, had ridden out from Warwick in the afternoon
of the previous day.

The Bishop chafed at the delay this must involve, yet rejoiced at the
prompt beginning of the homeward journey, having secretly feared lest
Hugh should find some difficulty in persuading his bride to set forth
with him.

After all, they were but two days ahead of the messenger who, by fast
riding, might overtake them on the morrow.  Mistress Deborah, even on a
pillion, should prove a substantial impediment to rapid progress.

But, alas, before noon on the day following, Brother Philip appeared in
haste, with an anxious countenance.

The messenger had returned, footsore and exhausted, bruised and
wounded, with scarce a rag to his back.

In the forest, while still ten miles from Warwick, overtaken by the
darkness, he had met a band of robbers, who had taken his horse and all
he possessed, leaving him for dead, in a ditch by the wayside.  Being
but stunned and badly bruised, when he came to himself he thought it
best to make his way back to Worcester and there report his
misadventure.

The Bishop listened to this luckless tale in silence.

When it was finished he said, gently: "My good Philip, thou art proved
right, and I, wrong.  Had I been guided by thee, I should not have lost
a good horse, nor--which is of greater importance at this
juncture--twenty-four hours of most precious time."

Brother Philip made a profound obeisance, looking deeply ashamed of his
own superior foresight and wisdom, and miserably wishful that the
Reverend Father had been right, and he, wrong.

"However," continued the Bishop, after a moment of rapid thought, "I
must forgo the melancholy luxury of meditating upon my folly, until
after we have taken prompt measures, so far as may be, to put right the
mischief it has wrought.

"This time, my good Philip, you shall be the bearer of my letter.  Take
with you, as escort, two of our men--more, if you think needful.  Ride
straight from here, by the most direct route to Castle Norelle, the
home of the noble Countess, lately wedded to Sir Hugh.  I will make you
a plan of the road.

"If, when you reach the place, Sir Hugh and his bride have arrived, ask
to have speech with the Knight alone, and put the letter into his own
hands.  But if they are yet on the way, ride to meet them, by a road I
will clearly indicate.  Only be careful to keep out of sight of all
save the Knight or his body-servant, Martin Goodfellow.

"The letter delivered, and the answer in thy hands, return, to me as
speedily as may be, without overpressing men or steeds.  How soon canst
thou set forth?"

"Within the hour, my lord," said Brother Philip, joyfully, cured of his
shame by this call to immediate service; "with an escort of three, that
we may ride by night as well as by day."

"Good," said the Bishop; and, as the lay-brother, bowing low, hastened
from the chamber, Symon of Worcester drew toward him writing materials,
and penned afresh his warning to the Knight; not at such length as in
the former missive, but making very clear the need for silence
concerning Mary Antony's previous knowledge of his visit to the
Nunnery, lest Mora should come to doubt the genuineness of the vision
which had brought her to her great decision, and which in very truth
had been wholly contrived by the loving heart and nimble wits of Mary
Antony.


So once again the Bishop stood at the casement in the banqueting hall;
and, looking down into the courtyard, saw faithful Philip, with an
escort fully armed, ride out at the Palace gates.

No time had been lost in repairing the mistake.  Yet there was heavy
foreboding at the Bishop's heart, as he paced slowly down the hall.

Greatly he feared lest this twenty-four hours' delay should mean
mischief wrought, which could never be undone.

Passing into the chapel, he kneeled long before the shrine of Saint
Joseph praying, with an intense fervour of petition, that his warning
might reach the Knight before any word had passed his lips which could
shake Mora's belief in that which was to her the sole justification for
the important step she had taken.

The Bishop prayed and fasted; fasted, prayed, and kept vigil.  And all
the night through, in thought, he followed Brother Philip and his
escort as they rode northward, through the forests, up the glens, and
over the moors, making direct for Mora's home, to which she and Hugh
were travelling by a more roundabout way.




CHAPTER XLIII

MORA MOUNTS TO THE BATTLEMENTS

The moonlight, shining in at the open casement, illumined, with its
clear radiance, the chamber which had been, during the years of her
maidenhood, Mora de Norelle's sleeping apartment.

It held many treasures of childhood.  Every familiar thing within it,
whispered of the love and care of those long passed into the realm of
silence and of mystery; a noble father, slain in battle; a gentle
mother, unable to survive him, the call to her of the spirit of her
Warrior, being more compelling than the need of the beautiful young
daughter, to whom both had been devoted.

The chamber seemed to Mora full of tender and poignant memories.

How many girlish dreams had been dreamed while her healthy young body
rested upon that couch, after wild gallops over the moors, or a long
day's climbing among the rocky hills, searching for rare ferns and
flowers to transplant into her garden.

In this room she had mourned her father, with her strong young arms
wrapped around her weeping mother.

In this room she had wept for her mother, with none to comfort her,
saving the faithful nurse, Deborah.

To this room she had fled in wrath, after the scene with, her
half-sister, Eleanor, who had tried to despoil her of her heritage--the
noble Castle and lands left to her by her father, and confirmed to her,
with succession to her father's title, by the King.  These Eleanor
desired for her son; but neither bribes nor cajolery, threats, nor
cruel insinuations, had availed to induce Mora to give up her rightful
possession--the home of her childhood.

Before the effects of this storm had passed, Hugh d'Argent had made his
first appearance upon the scene, riding into the courtyard as a King's
messenger, but also making himself known to the young Countess as a
near neighbour, heir to a castle and lands, not far distant, among the
Cumberland hills.

With both it had been love at first sight.  His short and ardent
courtship had, unbeknown to him, required not so much to win her heart,
as to overcome her maidenly resistance, rendered stubborn by the
consciousness that her heart had already ranged itself on the side of
her lover.

When at last, vanquished by his eager determination, she had yielded
and become betrothed to him, it had seemed to her that life could hold
no sweeter joy.

But he, hard to content, ever headstrong and eager, already having
taken the cross, and being now called at once to join the King in
Palestine, begged for immediate marriage that he might take her with
him to the Court of the new Queen, to which his cousin Alfrida had
already been summoned; or, if he must leave her behind, at least leave
her, not affianced maid, but wedded wife.

Here Eleanor and her husband had interposed; and, assuming the position
of natural guardians, had refused to allow the marriage to take place.
This necessitated the consent of the King, which could not be obtained,
he being in the Holy Land; and Hugh had no wish to make application to
the Queen-mother, then acting regent during the absence of the King; or
to allow his betrothed to be brought again into association with the
Court at Windsor.

Mora--secretly glad to keep yet a little longer the sweet bliss of
betrothal, with its promise of unknown yet deeper joys to
come--resisted Hugh's attempts to induce her to defy Eleanor, flout her
wrongful claim to authority, and wed him without obtaining the Royal
sanction.  Steeped in the bliss of having taken one step into an
unimagined state of happiness, she felt no necessity or inclination
hurriedly to take another.

Yet when, upheld by the ecstasy of those final moments together, she
had let him go, as she watched him ride away, a strange foreboding of
coming ill had seized her, and a restless yearning, which she could not
understand, yet which she knew would never be stilled until she could
clasp his head again to her breast, feel his crisp hair in her fingers,
and know him safe, and her own.

This chamber then had witnessed long hours of prayer and vigil, as she
knelt at the shrine in the nook between the casements, beseeching our
Lady and Saint Joseph for the safe return of her lover.

Then came the news of Hugh's supposed perfidy; and from this chamber
she had gone forth to hide her broken heart in the sacred refuge of the
Cloister; to offer to God and the service of Holy Church, the life
which had been robbed of all natural joys by the faithlessness of a man.


And this had happened eight years ago, as men count time.  But as nuns
count it?  And lovers?  A lifetime?  A night?

It had seemed indeed a lifetime to the Prioress of the White Ladies,
during the first days of her return to the world.  But to the woman who
now kneeled at the casement, drinking in the balmy sweetness of the
summer night, looking with soft yearning eyes at the well-remembered
landscape flooded in silvery moonlight, it seemed--a night.

A night--since she stood on the battlements, her lover's arms about her.

A night--since she said: "Thou wilt come back to me, Hugh. . . .  My
love will ever be around thee as a silver shield."

A night--since, as the last words he should hear from her lips, she had
said: "Maid or wife, God knows I am all thine own.  Thine, and none
other's, forever."

Of all the memories connected with this chamber, the clearest to-night
was of the hungry ache at her heart, when Hugh had gone.  It had seemed
to her then that never could that ache be stilled, until she could once
again clasp his head to her breast.  She knew now that it never had
been stilled.  Dulled, ignored, denied; called by other names; but
stilled--never.

On this night it was as sweetly poignant as on that other night eight
years ago, when she had slowly descended to this very room, from the
moonlit battlements.

Yet to-night she was maid _and_ wife.  Moreover Hugh was here, under
this very roof.  Yet had he bidden her a grave good-night, without so
much as touching her hand.  Yet his dark eyes had said: "I love thee."

Kneeling at the casement, Mora reviewed the days since they rode forth
from Warwick.

It had been a wondrous experience for her--she, who had been Prioress
of the White Ladies--thus to ride out into the radiant, sunny world.

Hugh was ever beside her, watchful, tender, shielding her from any
possible pain or danger, yet claiming nothing, asking nothing, for
himself.

One night, not being assured of the safety of the place where they
lodged, she found afterwards that he had lain all night across the
threshold of the chamber within which she and Debbie slept.

Another night she saw him pacing softly up and down beneath her window.

Yet when each morning came, and they began a new day together, he
greeted her gaily, with clear eye and unclouded brow; not as one
chilled or disappointed, or vexed to be kept from his due.

And oh, the wonder of each new day!  The glory of those rides over the
mossy softness of the woodland paths, where the sunlight fell, in
dancing patches, through the thick, moving foliage, and shy deer peeped
from the bracken, with soft eyes and gentle movements; out on to the
wild liberty of the moors, where Icon, snuffing the fresher air, would
stretch his neck and gallop for pure joy at having left cobbled streets
and paved courtyards far behind him.  And ever they rode northward, and
home drew nearer.  Looking back upon those long hours spent alone
together, Mora realised how simply and easily she had grown used to
being with Hugh, and how entirely this was due to his unselfishness and
tact.  He talked with her constantly; yet never of his own feelings
regarding her.

He told her of his adventures in Eastern lands; of the happenings in
England during the past eight years, so far as he had been able to
learn them; of his home and property; of hers, and of the welcome which
awaited her from her people.

He never spoke of the Convent, nor of the eventful days through which
he and she had so recently passed.

So successfully did he dominate her mind in this, that almost it seemed
to her she too was returning home after a long absence in a foreign
land.

Her mind awoke to unrestrained enjoyment of each hour, and to the keen
anticipation of the traveller homeward bound.

Each day spent in Hugh's company seemed to wipe out one, or more, of
the intervening years, so that when, toward evening, on the seventh
day, the grey turrets of her old home came in sight, it might have been
but yesterday they had parted, on those same battlements, and she had
watched him ride away, until the firwood from which they were now
emerging, had hidden him from view.

Kneeling at her casement, her mind seemed lost in a whirlpool of
emotion, as she reviewed the hour of their arrival.  The road up to the
big gates--every tree and hillock, every stock and stone, loved and
familiar, recalling childish joys and sorrows, adventure and
enterprise.  Then the passing in through the gates, the familiar faces,
the glad greetings; Zachary--white-haired, but still rosy and
stalwart--at the foot of the steps; and, in the doorway, just where
loneliness might have gripped her, old Debbie, looking as if she had
never been away, waiting with open arms.  So this was the moment
foreseen by Hugh when he had planned an early start, that morning, for
Mistress Deborah, and a more roundabout ride for her.

She turned, with an impulsive gesture, holding out to him her left
hand, that he might cross the threshold with her.  But the Knight was
stooping to examine the right forehoof of her palfrey, she having
fancied Icon had trod tenderly upon it during the last half-mile; so
she passed in alone.

Afterwards she overheard old Debbie say, in her most scolding tones:
"She did stretch out her hand to you, Sir Hugh, and you saw it not!"
But the Knight's deep voice made courteous answer: "There is no look or
gesture of hers, however slight, good Mistress Deborah, which doth
escape me."  And at this her heart thrilled far more than if he had met
her hand, responsive; knowing that thus he did faithfully keep his
pledge to her, and that he could so keep it, only by never relaxing his
stern hold upon himself.

Yet almost she began to wish him less stern and less faithful, so much
did she long to feel for one instant the strong clasp of his arms about
her.  By his rigid adherence to his promise, she felt herself punished
for having shuddered.  Why had she shuddered? . . .  Would she shudder
now?  This wonderful first evening had quickly passed, in going from
chamber to chamber, walking in the gardens, and supping with Hugh in
the dining-hall, waited on by Mark and Beaumont, with Zachary to
supervise, pour the wine, and stand behind her chair.

Then a final walk on the terrace; a grave good-night upon the stairs;
and, at last, this time of quiet thought, in her own chamber.

She could not realise that she was wedded to Hugh; but her heart awoke
to the fact that truly she was betrothed to him.  And she was
happy--deeply happy.

Leaving the casement, she kneeled before the shrine of the
Virgin--there where she had put up so many impassioned prayers for the
safe return of her lover.

"Blessèd Virgin," she said, "I thank thee for sending me home."

Years seemed to roll from her.  She felt herself a child again.  She
longed for her mother's understanding tenderness.  Failing that, she
turned to the sweet Mother of God.

The image before which she knelt, shewed our Lady standing, tall and
fair and gracious, the Infant Saviour, seated upon her left hand, her
right hand holding Him leaning against her, His baby arms outstretched.
Neither the Babe nor His Mother smiled.  Each looked grave and somewhat
sad.

"Home," whispered Mora.  "Blessèd Virgin I thank thee for sending me
home."

"Nay," answered a voice within her.  "I sent thee not home.  I gave
thee to him to whom thou didst belong.  He hath brought thee home.
What said the vision?  'Take her.  She is thine own.  I have but kept
her for thee.'"

Yet Hugh knew naught of this gracious message--knew naught of the
vision which had given her to him.  Until to-night she had felt it
impossible to tell him of it.  Now she longed that he should share with
her the wonder.

She sought her couch, but sleep would not come.  The moonlight was too
bright; the room too sweetly familiar.  Moreover it seemed but
yesterday that she had parted from Hugh, in such an ecstasy of love and
sorrow, up on the battlements.

A great desire seized her to mount to those battlements, and to stand
again just where she had stood when she bade him farewell.

She rose.

Among the garments put ready for her use, chanced to be the robe of
sapphire velvet which she had worn on that night.

She put it on; with jewels at her breast and girdle.  Then, with the
mantle of ermine falling from her shoulders, and her beautiful hair
covering her as a veil, she left her chamber, passed softly along the
passage, found the winding stair, and mounted to the ramparts.

As she stepped out from the turret stairway, she exclaimed at the
sublime beauty of the scene before her; the sleeping world at midnight,
bathed in the silvery light of the moon; the shadows of the firs, lying
like black bars across the road to the Castle gate.

"There I watched him ride away," she said, with a sweep of her arm
toward the road, "watched, until the dark woods swallowed him.  And
here"--with a sweep toward the turret--"here, we parted."

She turned; then caught her breath.

Leaning against the wall with folded arms, stood Hugh.




CHAPTER XLIV

"I LOVE THEE"

Mora stood, for some moments, speechless; and Hugh did not stir.  They
faced one another, in the weird, white light.

At last: "Did you make me come?" she whispered.

"Nay, my belovèd," he answered at once; "unless constant thought of
thee, could bring thee to me.  I pictured thee peacefully sleeping."

"I could not sleep," she said.  "It seemed to me our Lady was not
pleased, because, dear Knight, I have failed, in all these days, to
tell you of her wondrous and especial grace which sent me to you."

"I have wondered," said the Knight; "but I knew there would come a time
when I should hear what caused thy mind to change.  That it was a thing
of much import, I felt sure.  The Bishop counselled me to give up hope.
But I had besought our Lady to send thee to me, and I could not lose my
trust in prayer."

"It was indeed our blessèd Lady who sent me," said Mora, very softly.
"Hugh, dare I stay and tell you the whole story, here and now?  What if
we are discovered, alone upon the ramparts, at this hour of the night?"

Hugh could not forbear a smile.

"Dear Heart," he said, "we shall not be discovered.  And, if we were,
methinks we have the right to be together, on the ramparts, or off
them, at any hour of the day or night."

A low wooden seat ran along beneath the parapet.

Mora sat down and motioned the Knight to a place beside her.

"Sit here, Hugh.  Then we can talk low."

"I listen better standing," said the Knight; but he came near, put one
foot on the seat, leaned his elbow on his knee, his chin in his hand,
and stood looking down upon her.

"Hugh," she said, "I withstood your pleadings; I withstood the Bishop's
arguments; I withstood the yearnings of my own poor heart.  I tore up
the Pope's mandate, and set my foot upon it.  I said that nothing could
induce me to break my vows, unless our Lady herself gave me a clear
sign that my highest duty was to you, thus absolving me from my vows,
and making it evident that God's will for me was that I should leave
the Cloister, and keep my early troth to you."

"And gave our Lady such a sign?" asked the Knight, his dark eyes fixed
on Mora's face.

She lifted it, white and lovely; radiant in the moonlight.

"Better than a sign," she said.  "Our Lady vouchsafed a wondrous
vision, in which her own voice was heard, giving command and consent."

The Knight, crossing himself, dropped upon his knees, lifting his eyes
heavenward in fervent praise and adoration.  He raised to his lips a
gold medallion, which he wore around his neck, containing a picture of
the Virgin, and kissed it devoutly; then overcome by emotion, he
covered his face with his hands and knelt with bowed head, reciting in
a low voice, the _Salve Regina_.

Mora watched him, with deep gladness of heart.  This fervent joy and
devout thanksgiving differed so greatly from the half-incredulous,
whimsically amused, mental attitude with which Symon of Worcester had
received her recital of the miracle.  Hugh's reverent adoration filled
her with happiness.

Presently he rose and stood beside her again, expectant, eager.

"Tell me more; nay, tell me all," he said.

"The vision," began Mora, "was given to the old lay-sister, Mary
Antony."

"Mary Antony?" queried Hugh, with knitted brow.  "'The old lay-sister,
Mary Antony'?  Why do I know that name?  I seem to remember that the
Bishop spoke of her, as we walked together in the Palace garden, the
day following the arrival of the messenger from Rome.  Methinks the
Bishop said that she alone knew of my intrusion into the Nunnery; but
that she, being faithful, could be trusted."

"Nay, Hugh," answered Mora, "you mistake.  It was I who told you so,
even before I knew you were the intruder, while yet addressing you as
Sister Seraphine's 'Cousin Wilfred.'  I said that you had been thwarted
in your purpose by the faithfulness of the old lay-sister, Mary Antony,
who never fails to count the White Ladies, as they go, and as they
return, and who had reported to me that one more had returned than
went.  Afterward I was greatly perplexed as to what explanation I
should make to Mary Antony; when, to my relief, she came and confessed
that hers was the mistake, she having counted wrongly.  Glad indeed was
I to let it rest at that; so neither she, nor any in the Convent, knew
aught of your entrance there or your visit to my cell.  The Bishop,
you, and I, alone know of it."

"Then I mistake," said the Knight.  "But I felt certain I had heard the
name, and that the owner thereof had some knowledge of my movements.
Now, I pray thee, dear Heart, tell me all."

So sitting there on the ramparts of her old home, the stillness of the
fragrant summer night all around, Mora told from the beginning the
wondrous history of the trance of Mary Antony, and the blessèd vision
then vouchsafed to her.

The Knight listened with glowing eyes.  Once he interrupted to exclaim:
"Oh, true!  Most true!  More true than thou canst know.  Left alone in
thy cell, I kneeled to our Lady, saying those very words: 'Mother of
God, send her to me!  Take pity on a hungry heart, a lonely home, a
desolate hearth, and send her to me.'  I was alone.  Only our Lady whom
I besought, heard those words pass my lips."

Again Hugh kneeled, kissed the medallion, and lifted to heaven eyes
luminous with awe and worship.

Continuing, Mora told him all, even to each detail of her long night
vigil and her prayer for a sign which should be given direct to
herself, so soon granted by the arrival and flight of the robin.  But
this failed to impress Hugh, wholly absorbed in the vision, and unable
to see where any element of hesitation or of uncertainty could come in.
Hearing it from Mora, he was spared the quaint turn which was bound to
be given to any recital, however sacred, heard direct from old Mary
Antony.

The Knight was a Crusader.  Many a fight he had fought for that cause
representing the highest of Christian ideals.  Also, he had been a
pilgrim, and had visited innumerable holy shrines.  For years, his soul
had been steeped in religion, in that Land where true religion had its
birth, and all within him, which was strongest and most manly, had
responded with a simplicity of faith, yet with a depth of ardent
devotion, which made his religion the most vital part of himself.  This
it was which had given him a noble fortitude in bearing his sorrow.
This it was which now gave him a noble exultation in accepting his
great happiness.  It filled him with rapture, that his wife should have
been given to him in direct response to his own earnest petition.

When at length Mora stood up, stretching her arms above her head and
straightening her supple limbs:

"My belovèd," he said, "if the vision had not been given, wouldst thou
not have come to me?  Should I have had to ride away from Worcester
alone?"

Standing beside him, she answered, tenderly:

"Dear Hugh, my most faithful and loyal Knight, being here--and oh so
glad to be here--how can I say it?  Yet I must answer truly.  But for
the vision, I should not have come.  I could not have broken my vows.
No blessing would have followed had I come to you, trailing broken
vows, like chains behind me.  But our Lady herself set me free and bid
me go.  Therefore I came to you; and therefore am I here."

"Tell me again the words our Lady said, when she put thy hand in mine."

"Our Lady said: 'Take her.  She hath been ever thine.  I have but kept
her for thee.'"

Then she paled, her heart began to beat fast, and the colour came and
went in her cheeks; for he had come very near, and she could hear the
sharp catch of his breath.

"Mora, my belovèd," he said, "every fibre of my being cries out for
thee.  Yet I want thy happiness before my own; and, above and beyond
all else, I want the Madonna in my home.  Even at our Lady's bidding I
cannot take thee.  Not until thine own sweet lips shall say: 'Take me!
I have been ever thine.'"

She lifted her eyes to his.  In the moonlight, her face seemed almost
unearthly, in its pure loveliness; and, as on that night so long ago,
he saw her eyes, brighter than any jewels, shining with love and tears.

"Dear man of mine," she whispered, "to-night we are betrothed.  But
to-morrow I will ride home with thee.  To-morrow shall be indeed our
bridal day.  I will say all--I will say anything--I will say everything
thou wilt!  Nay, see!  The dawn is breaking in the east.  Call it
'to-day'--TO-DAY, dear Knight!  But now let me flee away, to fathom my
strange happiness alone.  Then, to sleep in mine own chamber, and to
awake refreshed, and ready to go with thee, Hugh, when and where and
how thou wilt."

The Knight folded his arms across his breast.

"Go," he said, softly, "and our Lady be with thee.  Our spirits
to-night have had their fill of holy happiness.  I ask no higher joy
than to watch the breaking of the day which gives thee to me, knowing
thee to be safely sleeping in thy chamber below."

"I love thee!" she whispered; and fled.


Hugh d'Argent watched the dawn break--a silver rift in the purple sky.

His heart was filled with indescribable peace and gladness.

It meant far more to him that his bride should have come to him in
obedience to a divine vision, than if his love had mastered her will,
and she had yielded despite her own conscience.

Also he knew that at last his patient self-restraint had won its
reward.  The heart of a nun feared him no longer.  The woman he loved
was as wholly his as she had ever been.

As the sun began to gild the horizon, flecking the sky with little rosy
clouds, Hugh turned into the turret archway, went down the steps, and
sought his chamber.  No sooner was he stretched upon his couch, than,
for very joy, he fell asleep.


But--beyond the dark fir woods, and over the hills on the horizon, four
horsemen, having ridden out from a wayside inn before the dawn,
watched, as they rode, the widening of that silver rift in the sky, and
the golden tint, heralding the welcome appearance of the sun.

So soundly slept Hugh d'Argent that, three hours later, be did not wake
when a loud knocking on the outer gates roused the porter; nor, though
his casement opened on to the courtyard, did he hear the noisy clatter
of hoofs, as Brother Philip, with his escort of three mounted men, rode
in.

Not until a knocking came on his own door did the Knight awake and,
leaping from his bed, see--as in a strange, wild dream--Brother Philip,
dusty and haggard, standing on the threshold, the Bishop's letter in
his hand.




CHAPTER XLV

THE SONG OF THE THRUSH

The morning sun already poured into her room, when Mora opened her
eyes, waking suddenly with that complete wide-awakeness which follows
upon profound and dreamless slumber.

Even as she woke, her heart said: "Our bridal day!  The day I give
myself to Hugh!  The day he leads me home."

She stretched herself at full length upon the couch, her hands crossed
upon her breast, and let the delicious joy of her love sweep over her,
from the soles of her feet to the crown of her head.

The world without lay bathed in sunshine; her heart within was flooded
by the radiance of this new and perfect realisation of her love for
Hugh.

She lay quite still while it enveloped her.

Ten days ago, our Lady had given her to Hugh.

Eight days ago, the Bishop, voicing the Church, had done the same.

But to-day she--she herself--was going to give herself to her lover.

This was the true bridal!  For this he had waited.  And the reward of
his chivalrous patience was to be, that to-day, of her own free will
she would say; "Hugh, my husband, take me home."

She smiled to remember how, riding forth from the city gates of
Warwick, she had planned within herself that, once safely established
in her own castle, she would abide there days, weeks, perhaps even,
months!

She stretched her arms wide, then flung them above her head.

"Take me home," she whispered.  "Hugh, my husband, take me home."

A thrush in the coppice below, whistled in liquid notes: "_Do it now!
Do it now!  Do it now!_"

Laughing joyously, Mora leapt from her bed and looked out upon a sunny
summer's day, humming with busy life, fragrant with scent of flowers,
thrilling with songs of birds.

"What a bridal morn!" she cried.  "All nature says 'Awake!  Arise!' Yet
I have slept so late.  I must quickly prepare myself to find and to
greet my lover."

"_Do it now!_" sang the thrush.


Half an hour later, fresh and fragrant as the morn, Mora left her
chamber and made her way to the great staircase.

Hearing shouting in the courtyard, and the trampling of horses' feet,
she paused at a casement, and looked down.

To her surprise she saw the well-remembered figure of Brother Philip,
mounted; with him three other horsemen wearing the Bishop's livery, and
Martin Goodfellow leading Hugh's favourite steed, ready saddled.

Much perplexed, she passed down the staircase, and out on to the
terrace where she had bidden them to prepare the morning meal.

From the terrace she looked into the banqueting hall, and her
perplexity grew; for there Hugh d'Argent, booted and spurred, ready for
a journey, strode up and down.

For two turns she watched him, noting his knitted brows, and the heavy
forward thrust of his chin.

Then, lifting his eyes as he swung round for the third time, he saw
her, outside in the sunlight; such a vision of loveliness as might well
make a man's heart leap.

He paused in his rapid walk, and stood as if rooted to the spot, making
no move toward her.

For a moment, Mora hesitated.

"_Do it now!_" sang the thrush.




CHAPTER XLVI

"HOW SHALL I LET THEE GO?"

Mora passed swiftly into the banqueting hall.

"Hugh," she said, and came to him.  "Hugh, my husband, this is our
bridal day.  Will you take me to our home?"

His eyes, as they met hers, were full of a dumb misery.

Then a fierce light of passion, a look of wild recklessness, flashed
into them.  He raised his arms, to catch her to him; then let them fall
again, glancing to right and left, as if seeking some way of escape.

But, seeing the amazement on her face, he mastered, by a mighty effort,
his emotion, and spoke with calmness and careful deliberation.

"Alas, Mora," he said, "it is a hard fate indeed for me on this day, of
all days, to be compelled to leave thee.  But in the early morn there
came a letter which obliges me, without delay, to ride south, in order
to settle a matter of extreme importance.  I trust not to be gone
longer than nine days.  You, being safely established in your own home,
amongst your own people, I can leave without anxious fears.  Moreover,
Martin Goodfellow will remain here representing me, and will in all
things do your bidding."

"From whom is this letter, Hugh, which takes you from me, on such a
day?"

"It is from a man well known to me, dwelling in a city four days'
journey from here."

"Why not say at once: 'It is from the Bishop, written from his Palace
in the city of Worcester'?"

Hugh frowned.

"How knew you that?" he asked, almost roughly.

"My dear Knight, hearing much champing of horses in my courtyard, I
looked down from a casement and saw a lay-brother well known to me, and
three other horsemen wearing the Bishop's livery.  What can Symon of
Worcester have written which takes you from me on this day, of all
days?"

"That I cannot tell thee," he made answer.  "But he writes, without
much detail, of a matter about which I must know fullest details,
without loss of time.  I have no choice but to ride and see the Bishop,
face to face.  It is not a question which can be settled by writing nor
could it wait the passing to and fro of messengers.  Believe me, Mora,
it is urgent.  Naught but exceeding urgency could force me from thee on
this day."

"Has it to do with my flight from the Convent?" she asked.

He bowed his head.

"Will you tell me the matter on your return, Hugh?"

"I know not," he answered, with face averted.  "I cannot say."  Then
with sudden violence: "Oh, my God, Mora, ask me no more!  See the
Bishop, I must!  Speak with him, I must!  In nine days at the very
most, I will be back with thee.  Duty takes me, my belovèd, or I would
not go."

Her mind responded instinctively to the word "duty," "Go then, dear
Knight," she said.  "Settle this business with Symon of Worcester.  I
have no desire to know its purport.  If it concerns my flight from the
Convent, surely the Pope's mandate is all-sufficient.  But, be it what
it may, in the hands of my faithful Knight and of my trusted friend,
the Bishop, I may safely leave it.  I do but ask that, the work
accomplished, you come with all speed back to me."

With a swift movement he dropped on one knee at her feet.

"Send me away with a blessing," he said.  "Bless me before I go."

She laid her hands on the bowed head.

"Alas!" she cried, "how shall I let thee go?"

Then, pushing her fingers deeper into his hair and bending over him,
with infinite tenderness: "How shall thy wife bless thee?" she
whispered.

He caught his breath, as the fragrance of the newly gathered roses at
her bosom reached and enveloped him.

"Bless me," he said, hoarsely, "as the Prioress of the White Ladies
used to bless her nuns, and the Poor at the Convent gate."

"Dear Heart," she said, and smiled.  "That seems so long ago!" Then, as
with bent head he still waited, she steadied her voice, lifting her
hands from off him; then laid them back upon his head, with reverent
and solemn touch.  "The Lord bless thee," she said, "and keep thee; and
may our blessèd Lady, who hath restored me to thee, bring thee safely
back to me again."

At that, Hugh raised his head and looked up into her face, and the
misery in his eyes stirred her tenderness as it had never been stirred
by the vivid love-light or the soft depths of passion she had
heretofore seen in them.

Her lips parted; her breath came quickly.  She would have caught him to
her bosom; she would have kissed away this unknown sorrow; she would
have smothered the pain, in the sweetness of her embrace.

But bending swiftly he lifted the hem of her robe and touched it with
his lips; then, rising, turned and left her without a word; without a
backward look.

He left her standing there, alone in the banqueting hall.  And as she
stood listening, with beating heart, to the sound of his voice raised
in command; to the quick movements of his horse's hoofs on the paving
stones, as he swung into the saddle; to the opening of the gates and
the riding forth of the little cavalcade, a change seemed to have come
over her.  She ceased to feel herself a happy, yielding bride, a
traveller in distant lands, after long journeyings, once more at home.

She seemed to be again Prioress of the White Ladies.  The calm fingers
of the Cloister fastened once more upon her pulsing heart.  The dignity
of office developed her.

And wherefore?

Was it because, when her lips had bent above him in surrendering
tenderness, her husband had chosen to give her the sign of reverent
homage accorded to a prioress, rather than the embrace which would have
sealed her surrender?

Or was it because he had asked her to bless him as she had been wont to
bless the Poor at the Convent gate?

Or was it the unconscious action of his mind upon hers, he being
suddenly called to face some difficulty which had arisen, concerning
their marriage, or the Bishop's share in her departure from the Nunnery?

The clang of the closing gates sounded in her ears as a knell.

She shivered; then remembered how she had shivered at sound of the
turning of the key in the lock of the crypt-way door.  How great the
change wrought by eight days of love and liberty.  She had shuddered
then at being irrevocably shut out from the Cloister.  She shuddered
now because the arrival of a messenger from the Bishop, and something
indefinable in Hugh's manner, had caused her to look back.

She stood quite still.  None came to seek her.  She seemed to have
turned to stone.

It was not the first time this looking back had had a petrifying effect
upon a woman.  She remembered Lot's wife, going forward led by the
gentle pressure of an angel's hand, yet looking back the moment that
pressure was removed.

She had gone forward, led by the sweet angel of our Lady's gracious
message.  Why should she look back?  Rather would she act upon the
sacred precept: "Forgetting those things which are behind, and reaching
forth unto those things which are before"--this, said the apostle Saint
Paul, was the one thing to do.  Undoubtedly now it was the one and only
thing for her to do; leaving all else which might have to be done, to
her husband and to the Bishop.

"This one thing I do," she said aloud; "this one thing I do."  And
moving forward, in the strength of that resolve, she passed out into
the sunshine.

"_Do it now!_" sang the thrush, in the rowan-tree.




CHAPTER XLVII

THE BISHOP IS TAKEN UNAWARES

Symon of Worcester, seated before a table in the library, pondered a
letter which had reached him the evening before, brought by a messenger
from the Vatican.

It was a call to return to the land he loved best; the land of sunshine
and flowers, of soft speech and courteous ways; the land of heavenly
beauty and seraphic sounds; and, moreover, to return as a Cardinal of
Holy Church.

His acceptance or refusal must be penned before night.  The messenger
expected to start upon his return journey early on the morrow.

Should he go?  Or should he stay?

Was all now well for Mora?  Or did she yet need him?

Surely never had Cardinal's hat hung poised for such a reason!  How
little would the Holy Father dream that a question affecting the
happiness or unhappiness of a woman could be a cause of hesitancy.

Presently, with a quick movement, the Bishop lifted his head.  The
library was far removed from the courtyard; but surely he heard the
clatter of horses' hoofs upon the raving stones.

He had hardly hoped for Brother Philip's return until after sunset;
yet--with fast riding----

If the Knight's answer were in all respects satisfactory--If Mora's
happiness was assured--why, then----

He sounded the silver gong.

His servant entered.

"What horsemen have just now ridden into the courtyard, Jasper?"

"My lord, Brother Philip has this moment returned, and with him----"

"Bid Brother Philip to come hither, instantly."

"May it please you, my lord----"

"Naught will please me," said the Bishop, "but that my commands be
obeyed without parley or delay."

Jasper's obeisance took him through the door.

The Bishop bent over the letter from Rome, shading his face with his
hand.

He could scarcely contain his anxiety; but he did not wish to give
Brother Philip occasion to observe his tremulous eagerness to receive
the Knight's reply.

He heard the door open and close, and a firm tread upon the floor.  It
struck him, even then, that the lay-brother had not been wont to enter
his presence with so martial a stride, and he wondered at the ring of
spurs.  But his mind was too intently set upon Hugh d'Argent's letter,
to do more than unconsciously notice these things.

"Thou art quickly returned, my good Philip," he said, without looking
round.  "Thou has done better than my swiftest expectations.  Didst
thou give my letter thyself into the hands of Sir Hugh d'Argent, and
hast thou brought me back an answer from that most noble Knight?"

Wherefore did Brother Philip make no reply?

Wherefore did his breath come sharp and short--not like a stout
lay-brother who has hurried; but, rather, like a desperate man who has
clenched his teeth to keep control of his tongue?

The Bishop wheeled in his chair, and found himself looking full into
the face of Hugh d'Argent--Hugh, haggard, dusty, travel-stained, with
eyes, long strangers to sleep, regarding him with a sombre intensity.

"You!" exclaimed the Bishop, surprised out of his usual gentle calm.
"You?  Here!"

"Yes, I," said the Knight, "I!  Does it surprise you, my Lord Bishop,
that I should be here?  Would it not rather surprise you, in view of
that which you saw fit to communicate to me by letter, that I should
fail to be here--and here as fast as horse could bring me?"

"Naught surprises me," said the Bishop, testily.  "I have lived so long
in the world, and had to do with so many crazy fools, that human
vagaries no longer have power to surprise me.  And, by our Lady, Sir
Knight, I care not where you are, so that you have left safe and well,
her peace of mind undisturbed, the woman whom I--acting as mouthpiece
of the Pope and Holy Church--gave, not two weeks ago, into your care
and keeping."

The Knight's frown was thunderous.

"It might be well, my Lord Bishop, to leave our blessèd Lady's name out
of this conversation.  It hath too much been put to shameful and
treacherous use.  Mora is safe and well.  How far her peace of mind can
be left undisturbed, I am here to discover.  I require, before aught
else, the entire truth."

But the Bishop had had time to recover his equanimity.  He rose with
his most charming smile, both hands out-stretched in gracious welcome.

"Nay, my dear Knight, before aught else you require a bath!  Truly it
offends my love of the beautiful to see you in this dusty plight."  He
struck upon the gong.  "Also you require a good meal, served with a
flagon of my famous Italian wine.  You did well to come here in person,
my son.  If naught hath been said to Mora, no harm is done; and
together we can doubly safeguard the matter.  I rejoice that you have
come.  But the strain of rapid travelling, when anxiety drives, is
great. . . .  Jasper, prepare a bath for Sir Hugh d'Argent in mine own
bath-chamber; cast into it some of that fragrant and refreshing powder
sent to me by the good brethren of Santa Maria Novella.  While the
noble Knight bathes, lay out in the ante-chamber the complete suit of
garments he was wearing on the day when the sudden fancy seized him to
have a swim in our river.  I conclude they have been duly dried and
pressed and laid by with sweet herbs? . . .  Good.  That is well.  Now,
my dear Hugh, allow Jasper to attend you.  He will give his whole mind
to your comfort.  Send word to Brother Philip, Jasper, that I will
speak with him here."

The Bishop accompanied the Knight to the door of the library; watched
him stride along the gallery, silent and sullen, in the wake of the
hastening Jasper; then turned and walked slowly back to the table,
smiling, and gently rubbing his hands together as he walked.

He had gained time, and he had successfully regained his sense of
supremacy.  Taken wholly by surprise, he had not felt able to cope with
this gaunt, dusty, desperately determined Knight.  But the Knight would
leave more than mere travel stains behind, in the scented waters of the
bath!  He would reappear clothed and in his right mind.  A good meal
and a flagon of Italian wine would further improve that mind, mellowing
it and rendering it pliable and easy to convince; though truly it
passed comprehension why the Knight should need convincing, or of what!
Even more incomprehensible was it, that a man wedded to Mora, not two
weeks since, should of his own free will elect to leave her.

The Bishop turned.

Brother Philip stood in the doorway, bowing low.

"Come in, my good Philip," said the Bishop; "come in, and shut the
door. . . .  I must have thy report with fullest detail; but, time
being short, I would ask thee to begin from the moment when the
battlements of Castle Norelle came into view."




CHAPTER XLVIII

A STRANGE CHANCE

On the fourth day of her husband's absence, Mora climbed to the
battlements to watch the glories of a most gorgeous sunset.

Also she loved to find herself again there where she and Hugh had spent
that wonderful hour in the moonlight, when she had told him of the
vision, and afterwards had given him the promise that on the morrow he
should take her to his home.

She paused in the low archway at the top of the winding stair,
remembering how she had turned a moment there, to whisper: "I love
thee."  Ah, how often she had said it since: "Dear man of mine, I love
thee!  Come back to me safe; come back to me soon; I love thee!"

That he should have had to leave her just as her love was ready to
respond to his, had caused that love to grow immeasurably in depth and
intensity.

Also she now realised, more fully, his fine self-control, his
chivalrous consideration for her, his noble unselfishness.  From the
first, he had been so perfect to her; and now her one desire was that,
if her love could give it, he should have his reward.

Ah, when would he come!  When would he come!

She could not keep from shading her eyes and looking along the road to
the point where it left the fir wood, though this was but the fourth
day since Hugh's departure--the day on which, by fast riding and long
hours, he might arrive at Worcester--and the ninth was the very
earliest she dared hope for his return.

How slowly, slowly, passed the days.  Yet they were full of a quiet joy
and peace.

From the moment when she had stepped out into the sunshine, resolved to
go steadily forward without looking back, she had thrown herself with
zest and pleasure into investigating and arranging her house and estate.

Also, on the second day an idea had come to her with her first waking
thoughts, which she had promptly put into execution.

Taking Martin Goodfellow with her she had ridden over to Hugh's home;
had found it, as she expected, greatly needing a woman's hand and mind,
and had set to work at once on those changes and arrangements most
needed, so that all should be in readiness when Hugh, returning, would
take her home.

Under her direction the chamber which should be hers was put into
perfect order; her own things were transported thither, and all was
made so completely ready, that at any moment she and Hugh could start,
without need of baggage or attendants, and ride together home.

This chamber had two doors, the one leading down a flight of steps on
to a terrace, the other opening directly into the great hall, the
central chamber of the house.

Mora loved to stand in this doorway, looking into the noble apartment,
with its huge fireplace, massive carved chairs on either side of the
hearth, weapons on the walls, trophies of feats of arms, all those
things which made it home to Hugh, and to remember that of this place
he had said in his petition to our Lady: "Take pity on a lonely home, a
desolate hearth . . . and send her to me."

No longer should it be lonely or desolate.  Aye, and no longer should
his faithful heart be hungry.

On this day she had been over for the third time, riding by the road,
because she and Martin both carried packages of garments and other
things upon their saddles; but returning by a shorter way through the
woods, silent and mossy, most heavenly cool and green.

This journey had served to complete her happy preparations.  So now,
should Hugh arrive, even at sunset, and be wishful to ride on without
delay, she could order the saddling of Icon, and say: "I am ready, dear
Knight; let us go."

She stood on the Castle wall, gazing at the blood-red banners of the
sunset, flaming from the battlements of a veritable city of gold; then,
shading her eyes, turned to look once again along the road.

And, at that moment, out from the dark fir wood there rode a horseman,
alone.


For one moment only did her heart leap in the wild belief that Hugh had
returned.  The next instant she knew this could not be he; even before
her eyes made out a stranger.

She watched him leave the road, and turn up the winding path which led
to the Castle gate; saw the porter go to the grating in answer to a
loud knocking without; saw him fetch old Zachary, who in his turn sent
for Martin Goodfellow; upon which the gates were opened wide, and the
stranger rode into the courtyard.

Whereupon Mora thought it time that she should descend from the
battlements and find out who this unexpected visitor might be.

At the head of the great staircase, she met Martin.

"Lady," he said, "there waits a man below who urgently desires speech
with Sir Hugh.  Learning from us that the Knight hath ridden south, and
is like to be away some days longer, he begs to have word with you,
alone; yet refuses to state his business or to give his name.  Master
Zachary greatly hopeth that it may be your pleasure that we bid the
fellow forthwith depart, telling him--if he so will--to ride back in
six days' time, when the worshipful Knight, whom he desires to see,
will have returned."

Mora knitted her brows.  It did not please her that Zachary and Martin
Goodfellow should arrange together what she should do.

"Describe him, Martin," she said.  "What manner of man is he?"

"Swarthy," said Martin, "and soldierly; somewhat of a dare-devil, but
on his best behaviour.  Zachary and I would suggest----"

"I will see him," said Mora, beginning to descend the stairs.  "I will
see him in the banqueting hall, and alone.  You, Martin, can wait
without, entering on the instant if I call.  Tell Zachary to bid them
prepare a meal of bread and meat, with a flagon of wine, or a pot of
good ale, which I may offer to this traveller, should he need
refreshment."

She was standing in the banqueting hall, on the very spot where Hugh
had kneeled at their parting, when the swarthy fellow, soldierly, yet
somewhat of a dare-devil, entered.

Most certainly he was on his best behaviour.  He doffed his cap at
first sight of her, advanced a few paces, then stood still, bowing low;
came forward a few more paces, then bowed again.

She spoke.

"You wished to see my husband, Friend, and speak with him?  He is away
and hardly can return before five days, at soonest.  Is your business
with Sir Hugh such as I can pass on to him for you, by word of mouth?"

She hoped those bold, dark eyes did not perceive how she glowed to
speak for the first time, to another, of Hugh as her husband.

He answered, and his words were blunt; his manner, frank and soldierly.

"Most noble Lady, failing the Knight, whom I have ridden far to find,
my business may most readily be told to you.

"Years ago, on a Syrian battle-field it was my good fortune, in the
thick of the fray, to find myself side by side with Sir Hugh d'Argent.
The Infidels struck me down; and, sorely wounded, I should have been at
their mercy, had not the noble Knight, seeing me fall, wheeled his
horse and, riding back, hewn his way through to me, scattering mine
assailants right and left.  Then, helping me to mount behind him,
galloped with me back to camp.  Whereupon I swore, by the holy Cross at
Lucca, that if ever the chance came my way to do a service to Sir Hugh
of the Silver Shield, I would travel to the world's end to do it.

"Ten nights ago, I chanced to be riding through a wood somewhere
betwixt Worcester and Warwick.  A band of lawless fellows coming by, I
and my steed drew off the path, taking cover in a thicket.  But a
solitary horseman, riding from Worcester, failed to avoid them.  Within
sight of my hiding-place he was set upon, made to dismount, stripped
and bidden to return on foot to the place from whence he came.  I could
do naught to help him.  We were two, to a round dozen.  The robbers
took the money from his wallet.  Within it they found also a letter,
which they flung away as worthless.  I marked where it fell, close to
my hiding-place.

"When the affray was over, their victim having fled and the lawless
band ridden off, I came forth, picked up the letter and slipped it into
mine own wallet.  So soon as the sun rose I drew forth the letter,
when, to my amaze, I found it addressed to my brave rescuer, the Knight
of the Silver Shield and Azure Pennant.  It appeared to be of
importance as, failing Warwick Castle, six halting places, all on the
northward road, were named on the outside; also it was marked to be
delivered with most urgent haste.

"It seemed to me that now had come my chance, to do this brave Knight
service.  Therefore have I ridden from place to place, following; and,
after some delay, I find myself at length at Castle Norelle, only to
hear that he to whom I purposed to hand the letter has ridden south by
another road.  Thus is my endeavour to serve him rendered fruitless."

"Nay, Friend," said Mora, much moved by this recital.  "Not fruitless.
Give me the letter you have thus rescued and faithfully attempted, to
deliver.  My husband returns in five days.  I will then hand him the
letter and tell him your tale.  Most grateful will he be for your good
service, and moved by your loyal remembrance."

The swarthy fellow drew from his wallet a letter, heavily sealed, and
inscribed at great length.  He placed it in Mora's hands.

Her clear eyes dwelt upon his countenance with searching interest.  It
was wonderful to her to see before her a man whose life Hugh had saved,
so far away, on an Eastern battle-field.

"In my husband's name, I thank you, Friend," she said.  "And now my
people will put before you food and wine.  You must have rest and
refreshment before you again set forth."

"I thank you, no," replied the stranger.  "I must ride on, without
delay.  I bid you farewell, Lady; and I do but wish the service, which
a strange chance has enabled me to render to the Knight, had been of
greater importance and had held more of risk or danger."

He bowed low, and departed.  A few moments later he was riding out at
the gates, and making for the northward road.

Had Brother Philip chanced to be at hand, he could not have failed to
note that the swarthy stranger was mounted upon the fastest nag in the
Bishop's stable.

For a life of lawlessness, rapine, and robbery, does not debar a man
from keeping an oath sworn, out of honest gratitude, in cleaner, better
days.

Left alone, Mora passed on to the terrace and, in the clearer light,
examined this soiled and much inscribed missive.

To her amazement she recognised the well-known script of Symon, Bishop
of Worcester.  How many a letter had reached her hands addressed in
these neat characters.

Yet Hugh had left her, and gone upon this ride of many days to
Worcester in order to see the Bishop, because he had received a letter
telling him, without sufficient detail, a matter of importance.
Probably the letter she now held in her hands should have reached him
first.  Doubtless had he received it, he need not have gone.

Pondering this matter, and almost unconscious that she did so, Mora
broke the seals.  Then paused, even as she began to unfold the
parchment, questioning whether to read it or to let it await Hugh's
return.

But not long did she hesitate.  It was upon a matter which closely
concerned her.  That much Hugh had admitted.  It might be imperative to
take immediate action concerning this first letter, which by so strange
a mishap had arrived after the other.  Unless she mastered its
contents, she could not act.

Ascending the turret stairway, Mora stepped again on to the battlements.

The golden ramparts in the west had faded; but a blood-red banner still
floated above the horizon.  The sky overhead was clear.

Sitting upon the seat on which she had sat while telling Hugh of old
Mary Antony's most blessèd and wondrous vision, Mora unfolded and read
the Bishop's letter.




CHAPTER XLIX

TWICE DECEIVED

The blood-red banner had drooped, dipped, and vanished.

The sky overhead had deepened to purple, and opened starry eyes upon
the world beneath.  Each time the silent woman, alone upon the
battlements, lifted a sorrowful face to the heavens, yet another bright
eye seemed to spring wide and gaze down upon her.

At length the whole expanse of the sky was studded with stars; the
planets hung luminous; the moon, already waning, rose large and golden
from behind the firs, growing smaller and more silvery as she mounted
higher.

Mora covered her face with her hands.  The summer night was too full of
scented sweetness.  The stars sang together.  The moon rode triumphant
in the heavens.  In this her hour of darkness she must shut out the
brilliant sky.  She let her face sink into her hands, and bowed her
head upon her knees.

Blow after blow had fallen upon her from the Bishop's letter.

First that the Bishop himself was plotting to deceive her, and seemed
to take Hugh's connivance for granted.

Then that she had been hoodwinked by old Mary Antony, on the evening of
Hugh's intrusion into the Nunnery; that this hoodwinking was known to
the Bishop, and appeared but to cause him satisfaction, tempered by a
faint amusement.

Then the overwhelming news that Mary Antony's vision had been an
imposition, devised and contrived by the almost uncannily shrewd wits
of the old woman; and that the Bishop advised the Knight to praise
heaven for those wits, and to beware lest any chance word of his should
lead her--Mora--to doubt the genuineness of the vision, and to realise
that she had been hocussed, hoodwinked, outwitted!  In fact the Bishop
and her husband were to become, and to continue indefinitely, parties
to old Antony's deception.

She now understood the full significance of the half-humorous,
half-sceptical attitude adopted by the Bishop, when she recounted to
him the history of the vision.  No wonder he had called Mary Antony a
"most wise and prudent babe."

But even as her anger rose, not only against the Bishop, but against
the old woman she had loved and trusted and who had so deceived her,
she came upon the news of the death of the aged lay-sister and the
account of her devoted fidelity, even to the end.

Mary Antony living, was often a pathetic figure; Mary Antony dead,
disarmed anger.

And, after all, the old lay-sister and her spurious vision faded into
insignificance in view of the one supreme question: What course would
Hugh take?  Would he keep silence and thus tacitly become a party to
the deception; or would he, at all costs, tell her the truth?

It was evidence of the change her love had wrought in her, that this
one point was so paramount, that until it was settled, she could not
bring herself to contemplate other issues.

She remembered, with hopeful comfort, his scrupulous honesty in the
matter of Father Gervaise.  Yet wherefore had he gone to consult with
the Bishop unless he intended to fall in with the Bishop's suggestions?

Not until she at last sought her chamber and knelt before the shrine of
the Madonna, did she realise that her justification in leaving the
Convent was gone, if there had been no vision.

"Blessèd Virgin," she pleaded, with clasped hands uplifted; "I, who
have been twice deceived--tricked into entering the Cloister, and
tricked into leaving it--I beseech thee, by the sword which pierced
through thine own soul also, grant me now a vision which shall be, in
very deed, a VISION OF TRUTH."




CHAPTER L

THE SILVER SHIELD

The Bishop sat at the round table in the centre of the banqueting hall,
sipping water from his purple goblet while the Knight dined.

They were not alone.  Lay-brethren, with sandalled feet, moved
noiselessly to and fro; and Brother Philip stood immovable behind the
Reverend Father's chair.

The Bishop discoursed pleasantly of many things, watching Hugh the
while, and blessing the efficacy of the bath.  It had, undoubtedly,
cleansed away much beside travel-stains.

The thunder-cloud had lifted from the Knight's brow; his eyes, though
tired, were no longer sombre; his manner was more than usually
courteous and deferential, as if to atone for the defiant brusquerie of
his first appearance.

He listened in absolute silence to the Bishop's gentle flow of
conversation; but this was a trait the Bishop had observed in him
before; and, after all, a lapse into silence could be easily understood
when a man had travelled far, on meagre fare, and found himself seated
at a well-spread board.

Yet the Knight ate but sparingly of the good cheer, so lavishly
provided; and the famous Italian wine, he scarce touched at all.

The meal over, the Bishop dismissed Brother Philip and the attendant
monks, and, rising, went to his chair near the hearth, motioning the
Knight to the one opposite.

Thus they found themselves seated again as they had sat on the night of
the arrival of the Pope's messenger; save that now no fire burned upon
the hearth; no candles were lighted on the table.  Instead, the summer
sunshine poured in through open casements.

"Well, my dear Hugh," said the Bishop, "suppose you now tell me the
reason which brings you hither.  It must surely be a matter of grave
importance which could cause so devoted a lover and husband to leave
his bride, and go a five days' journey from her, within two weeks of
the bridal day."

"I have come, my lord," said the Knight, speaking slowly and with
evident effort, "to learn from your lips the entire truth concerning
that vision which caused the Prioress of the White Ladies to hold
herself free to renounce her vows, leave her Nunnery, and give herself
in marriage where she had been betrothed before entering the Cloister."

"Tut!" said the Bishop.  "The White Ladies have no Prioress.  Mother
Sub-Prioress doth exercise the functions of that office until such time
as the Prior and myself shall make a fresh appointment.  We are not
here to talk of prioresses, my son, but of that most noble and gracious
lady who, by the blessing of God and our Lady's especial favour, is now
your wife.  See to it that you continue to deserve your great good
fortune."

The Knight made no protest at the mention of our Lady; but his left
hand moved to the medallion hanging by a gold chain from his neck,
covered it and clasped it firmly.

The Bishop paused; but finding that the Knight had relapsed into
silence, continued:

"So you wish the entire history of the inspired devotion of the old
lay-sister, Mary Antony--may God rest her soul."  Both men crossed
themselves devoutly, as the Bishop named the Dead.  "Shall I give it
you now, my son, or will you wait until the morrow, when a good night's
rest shall fit you better to enjoy the recital?"

"My lord," said Hugh, "ere this sun sets, I hope to be many miles on my
homeward way."

"In that case," said the Bishop, "I must tell you this moving story,
without further delay."

So, beginning with her custom of counting the White Ladies by means of
the dried peas, the Bishop gave the Knight the whole history of Mary
Antony's share in the happenings in the Nunnery on the day of his
intrusion, and those which followed; laying especial stress on her
devotion to Mora, and her constant prayers to our Lady to sharpen her
old wits.

The Bishop had undoubtedly intended to introduce into the recital
somewhat more of mysticism and sublimity than the actual facts
warranted.  But once launched thereon, his sense of humour could not be
denied its full enjoyment in this first telling of the entire tale.
Full justice he did to the pathos, but he also shook with mirth over
the ludicrous.  As he quoted Mary Antony, the old lay-sister's odd
manner and movements could be seen; her mumbling lips, and cunning
wink.  And here was Mother Sub-Prioress, ferret-faced and peering; and
here Sister Mary Rebecca, long-nosed, flat-footed, eager to scent out
and denounce wrong doing.  And at last the Bishop told of his talk with
Mora in the arbour of golden roses; and lo, there was Mora, devout,
adoring, wholly believing.  "Thou hast hid these things from the wise
and prudent and hast revealed them unto babes"; and here, the Bishop
himself, half amused, half incredulous: "An ancient babe!  Truly, a
most wise and prudent babe."  Then the scene outside the Prioress's
cell when the Bishop unlocked the door; the full confession and the
touching death of old Mary Antony.

To it all the Knight listened silently, shading his face with his right
hand.

"Therefore, my son," concluded Symon of Worcester, "when on a sudden I
remembered our conversation on the lawn, and that I had told you of my
belief that the old lay-sister knew of your visit to the Convent and
had seen you in Mora's cell, I hastened to send you a warning, lest you
should, unwittingly, mention this fact to Mora, and raise a doubt in
her mind concerning the genuineness of the vision, thus destroying her
peace, and threatening her happiness and your own.  Hath she already
told you of the vision?"

Still shielding his face the Knight spoke, very low:

"The evening before the messenger arrived, bringing your letter, my
lord, Mora told me of the vision."

"Said you aught concerning my words to you?"

"So soon as she mentioned the name of Mary Antony, I said that I seemed
to recall that you, my lord, had told me she alone knew of my visit to
the Convent.  But Mora at once said nay, that it was she herself who
had told me so, even while I stood undiscovered in her cell; but that
afterward the lay-sister had confessed herself mistaken.  This seemed
to me to explain the matter, therefore I said no more; nor did I, for a
moment, doubt the truth and wonder of the vision."

"For that, the saints be praised," said the Bishop.  "Then no harm is
done.  You and I, alone, know the entire story; and you and I, who
would safeguard Mora's happiness with our lives, must see to it that
she never has cause for misgivings."

Hugh d'Argent lifted his head, and looked full at the Bishop.

"My lord," he said, "had there been no vision, no message from our
Lady, no placing by her of Mora's hand in mine, think you she would
have left the Nunnery and come to me?"

"Nay, dear lad, that I know she would not.  On that very morning, as I
told you, she set her foot upon the Pope's mandate, and would accept no
absolving from her vows.  Naught would suffice, said she, but a direct
vision and revelation from our Lady herself."

"But," said the Knight, slowly, "was there a vision, my lord?  Was
there a revelation?  Was there a spoken message or a given sign?"

The Bishop met the earnest eyes, full of a deep searching.  He stirred
uneasily; then smiled, waving a deprecatory hand.

"Between ourselves, my dear Hugh--though even so, it is not well to be
too explicit--between ourselves of course nothing--well--miraculous
happened, beyond the fact that our Lady most certainly sharpened the
wits of old Antony.  Therefore is it, that you undoubtedly owe your
wife to those same wits, and may praise our Lady for sharpening them."

Then it was that the Knight rose to his feet.

"And I refuse," he said, "to owe my wife to sacrilege, fraud, and
falsehood."

The Bishop leaned forward, gripping with both hands the arms of his
chair.  His face was absolutely colourless; but his eyes, like blue
steel, seemed to transfix the Knight, who could not withdraw his regard
from those keen points of light.

The Bishop's whisper, when at length he spoke, was more alarming than
if he had shouted.

"Fool!" he said.  "Ungrateful, unspeakable fool!  What mean you by such
words?"

"Call me fool if you will, my Lord Bishop," said the Knight, "so long
as I give not mine own conscience cause to call me knave."

"What mean you by such words?" persisted the Bishop.  "I mean, my lord,
that if the truth opened out an abyss which plunged me into hell, I
would sooner know it than attempt to enter Paradise across the flimsy
fabric of a lie."

Now during many days, Symon of Worcester had worked incessantly,
suffered much, accomplished much, surrendered much, lost much.  Perhaps
it is hardly to be wondered at, that, at this juncture, he lost his
temper.

"By Saint Peter's keys!" he cried, "I care not, Sir Knight, whether you
drop to hell or climb to Paradise.  But it is my business to see to it
that you do not disturb the peace of mind of the woman you have wed.
Therefore I warn you, that if you ride from here set upon so doing, you
will not reach your destination alive."

The Knight smiled.  The film of weariness lifted as if by magic from
his eyes, and they shone bright and serene.

"I cannot draw my sword upon threats, my Lord Bishop; but let those
threats take human shape, and by Saint George, I shall find pleasure in
rendering a good account of them.  With this same sword I once did hew
my way through a score of Saracens.  Think you a dozen Worcester
cut-throats could keep me from reaching my wife?"

Something in the tone with which the Knight spoke these final words
calmed the Bishop; something in the glance of his eye quelled the angry
Prelate.  In the former he recognised a depth of love such as he had
not hitherto believed possible to Hugh d'Argent; in the latter, calm
courage, nay, a serene joy at the prospect of danger, against which his
threats and fury could but break themselves, even as stormy waves
against the granite rocks of the Cornish coast.

The Bishop possessed that somewhat rare though valuable faculty, the
ability to recognise instantly, and instantly to accept, the
inevitable.  Also when he had made a false move, he knew it, and was
preparing to counteract it almost before his opponent had perceived the
mistake.

So rarely was the Bishop angry, that his anger now affected him
physically, with a sickening sense of faintness.  With closed eyes, he
leaned his head against the back of the chair.  His face, always white
and delicate, now appeared as if carved in ivory.  His lips fell apart,
but no breath issued from them.  Except for a slight twitching of the
eyelids, the Bishop's countenance was lifeless.

Startled and greatly alarmed, Hugh looked around for some means whereby
he might summon help, but could see none.

Hastening to the table, he poured wine into the Venetian goblet,
brought it back, and moistened the Bishop's lips.  Then kneeling on one
knee loosed the cold fingers from their grip.

Presently the Bishop opened his eyes--no longer points of blue steel,
but soft and dreamy like a mist of bluebells on distant hills.  He
looked, with unseeing gaze, into the anxious face on a level with his
own; then turned his eyes slowly upon the ruby goblet which the Knight
had lifted from the floor and was trying to hold to his lips.

Waving it away, the Bishop slipped the finger and thumb of his left
hand into his sash, and drew out a small gold box of exquisite
workmanship, set with emeralds.

At this he gazed for some time, as if uncertain what to do with it;
then touched a spring and as the lid flew open, sat up and took from
the box a tiny white tablet.  This he dropped into the wine.

The Knight, watching with anxious eyes, saw it rapidly dissolve as it
sank to the bottom.

But all consciousness of the tablet, the wine, or the kneeling Knight,
appeared to have instantly faded from the Bishop's mind.  He lay back
gazing dreamily at a banner which, for no apparent reason, stirred and
wafted to and fro, as it hung from an oaken beam, high up among the
rafters.

"Wherefore doth it waft?" murmured the Bishop, thereby adding greatly
to the Knight's alarm.  "Wherefore?--Wherefore?--Wherefore doth it
waft?"

"Drink this, Reverend Father," urged the Knight.  "I implore you, my
dear lord, raise yourself and drink."

"Methinks there must be a draught," mused the Bishop.

"Yea, truly," said the Knight, "of your famous Italian wine.  Father, I
pray you drink."

"Among the rafters," said the Bishop.  But he sat up, took the goblet
from the Knight's hand, and slowly sipped its contents.

Almost at once, a faint tinge of colour shewed in his cheeks and on his
lips; his eyes grew bright.  He smiled at the Knight, as he placed the
empty goblet on the table beside him.

"Ah, my dear Hugh," he said, extending his hand; "it is good to find
you here.  Let us continue our conversation, if you are sufficiently
rested and refreshed.  I have much to say to you."

In the reaction of a great relief, Hugh d'Argent seized the extended
hand and fervently kissed the Bishop's ring.

It was the reverent homage of a loyal heart.  Symon of Worcester, as
with a _Benedicite_ he graciously acknowledged it, suffered a slight
twinge of conscience; almost as unusual an experience as the ebullition
of temper.  He took up the conversation exactly at that point to which
it best suited him to return, namely, there where he had made the first
false step.

"Therefore, my dear Hugh, I have now given you in detail the true
history of the vision, making it clear that we owe it, alas! to earthly
devotion, rather than to Divine interposition--though indeed the one
may well be the means used by the other.  It remains for us to
consider, and to decide upon, the best line to take with Mora in order
to safeguard most surely her peace of mind, and permanently to secure
her happiness."

"I have considered, Reverend Father," said the Knight, simply; "and I
have decided."

"What have you decided to do, my son?" questioned Symon of Worcester,
in his smoothest tones.

"To make known to Mora, so soon as I return, the entire truth."

The Bishop cast his eyes upward, to see whether the banner still waved.

It did.

Undoubtedly there must be a current of air among the rafters.

"And what effect do you suppose such a communication will have, my son,
upon the mind of your wife?"

"I am not called to face suppositions, Reverend Father; I am simply
confronted by facts."

"Precisely, my son, precisely," replied the Bishop, pressing his
finger-tips together, and raising them to his lips.  "Yet even while
dealing with causes, it is well sometimes to consider effects, lest
they take us wholly unawares.  Do you realise that, as your wife felt
justified in leaving the Nunnery and wedding you, solely by reason of
our Lady's miraculously accorded permission, when she learns that that
permission was not miraculous, she will cease to feel justified?"

"I greatly fear it," said the Knight.

"Do you yourself now consider that she was not justified?"

"Nay!" answered the Knight, with sudden vehemence.  "Always, since I
learned how we had been tricked by her sister, I have held her to be
rightfully mine.  Heaven knew, when she made her vows, that I was
faithful, and she therefore still my betrothed.  Heaven allowed me to
discover the truth, and to find her--alive, and still unwed.  To my
thinking, no Divine pronouncement was required; and when the Holy
Father's mandate arrived bringing the Church's sanction, why then
indeed naught seemed to stand between us.  But Mora thought otherwise."

A tiny gleam came into the Bishop's eyes; an exceedingly refined
edition of the look of cunning which used to peep out of old Mary
Antony's.

"Have you ever heard tell, my son, that two negatives make an
affirmative?  Think you not that, in something the same way, two
deceptions may make a truth.  Mora was deceived into entering the
Convent, and deceived into leaving it; but from out that double
deception arises the great truth that she has, in the sight of Heaven,
been all along yours.  The first deception negatives the second, and
the positive fact alone remains that Mora is wedded to you, is yours to
guard and shield from sorrow; and those whom God hath joined together,
let no man put asunder."

Hugh d'Argent passed his hand across his brow.

"I trust the matter may appear thus to Mora," he said.

The banner still wafted, gently.  The Bishop gave himself time to
ponder whence that draught could come.

Then: "It will not so appear," he said.  "My good Hugh, when your wife
learns from you that she was tricked by Mary Antony, she will go back
in mind to where she was before the spurious vision, and will feel
herself to be still Prioress of the White Ladies."

"I have so felt her, since the knowledge reached me," agreed the Knight.

The efficacy of the soothing drug taken by the Bishop was strained to
its utmost.

"And what then do you propose to do, my son, with this wedded Prioress?
Do you expect her to remain with you in your home, content to fulfil
her wifely duties?"

"I fear," said the Knight sadly, "that she will leave me."

"And I am certain she will leave you," said the Bishop.

"It was largely this fear for the future which brought me at once to
you, my lord.  If Mora desires, as you say, to consider herself as she
was, before she was tricked into leaving the Convent, will you arrange
that she shall return, unquestioned, to her place as Prioress of the
White Ladies of Worcester?"

"Impossible!" said the Bishop, shortly.  "It is too late.  We can have
no Madonna groups in Nunneries, saving those carven in marble or stone."

To which there followed a silence, lasting many minutes.

Then the Knight said, with effort, speaking very low: "It is _not_ too
late."

Instantly the keen eyes were searching his face.  A line of crimson
leapt to the Bishop's cheek, as if a whip-lash had been drawn across it.

Presently: "Fool!" he whispered, but the word savoured more of pitying
tenderness than of scorn.  Alas! was there ever so knightly a fool, or
so foolish a knight!  "What was the trouble, boy?  Didst find that
after all she loved thee not?"

"Nay," said Hugh, quickly, "I thank God, and our Lady, that my wife
loves me as I never dreamed that such as I could be loved by one so
perfect in all ways as she.  But--at first--all was so new and strange
to her.  It was wonder enough to be out in the world once more, free to
come and go; to ride abroad, looking on men and things.  I put her
welfare first. . . .  Nay, it was easy, loving her as I loved, also
greatly desiring the highest and the best.  Father, I wanted what you
spoke of as the Madonna in the Home.  Therefore--'twas I who made the
plan--we agreed that, the wedding having of necessity been so hurried,
the courtship should follow, and we would count ourselves but
betrothed, even after reaching Castle Norelle, for just so many days or
weeks as she should please; until such time as she herself should tell
me she was wishful that I should take her home.  But--each day of the
ride northward had been more perfect than that which went before; each
hour of each day, sweeter than the preceding.  Thus it came to pass
that on the very evening of our arrival at Mora's home, after parting
for the night at the door of her chamber, we met again on the
battlements, where years before we had said farewell; and there, seated
in the moonlight, she told me the wonder of our Lady's grace in the
vision; and, afterwards, in words of perfect tenderness, the even
greater wonder of her love, and that she was ready on the morrow to
ride home with me.  So we parted in a rapture so deep and pure, that
sleep came, for very joy of it.  But early in the morning I was wakened
by a rapping at my door, and there stood Brother Philip, holding your
letter, Reverend Father."

"Alas!" said the Bishop.  "Would that I had known she would have
whereby to explain away thy memory of that which I had said."

Yet the Bishop spoke perfunctorily; he spoke as one who, even while
speaking, muses upon other matters.  For, within his secret soul, he
was fighting the hardest temptation yet faced by him, in the whole
history of his love for Mora.

By rapid transition of mind, he was back on the seat in the garden of
the White Ladies' Nunnery, left there by Mary Antony while she went to
fetch the Reverend Mother.  He was looking up the sunny lawn toward the
cloisters, from out the shade of the great beech tree.  Presently he
saw the Prioress coming, tall and stately, her cross of office gleaming
upon her breast, her sweet eyes alight with welcome.  And at once they
were talking as they always talked together--he and she--each word
alive with its very fullest meaning; each thought springing to meet the
thought which matched it.

Next he saw himself again on that same seat, looking up the lawn to the
sunlit cloisters; realising that never again would the Prioress come to
greet him; facing for the first time the utter loneliness, the
irreparable loss to himself, of that which he had accomplished for Hugh
and Mora.

The Bishop's immeasurable loss had been Hugh's infinite gain.  And now
that Hugh seemed bent upon risking his happiness, the positions were
reversed.  Would not his loss, if he persisted, be the Bishop's gain?

How easy to meet her on the road, a few miles from Worcester; to
proceed, with much pomp and splendour, to the White Ladies' Nunnery; to
bid them throw wide the great gates; to ride in and, then and there,
reinstate Mora as Prioress, announcing that the higher service upon
which the Holy Father had sent her had been duly accomplished.  Picture
the joy in the bereaved Community!  But, above and beyond all, picture
what it would mean to have her there again; to see her, speak with her,
sit with her, when he would.  No more loneliness of soul, no more
desolation of spirit; and Mora's conscience at rest; her mind content.

But at that, being that it concerned the woman he loved, the true soul
of him spoke up, while his imaginative reason fell silent.

Never again could the woman who had told Hugh d'Argent, in words of
perfect tenderness, the wonder of her love, and that she was ready on
the morrow to ride home with him, be content in the calm of the
Cloister.

If Hugh persisted in this folly of frankness and disturbed her peace,
she might leave him.

If the Bishop made the way easy, she might return to the Nunnery.

But all the true life of her would be left behind with her lover.

She would bring to the Cloister a lacerated conscience, and a broken
heart.

Surely the two men who loved her, if they thrust away all thought of
self, and thought only of her, could save her this anguish.

At once the Bishop resolved to do his part.

"My dear Hugh," he said, "you did well to come to me in order to
consult over these plans before taking the irrevocable step which
should set them in motion.  I, alone, could reinstate your wife as
Prioress of the White Ladies; moreover my continued presence here would
be essential, to secure her comfort in that reinstatement.  And I shall
not be here.  I am shortly leaving Worcester, leaving this land and
returning to my beauteous Italy.  The Holy Father has been pleased to
tell me privately of high preferment shortly to be offered me.  I have
to-day decided to accept it.  I return to Italy a Cardinal of Holy
Church."

Hugh rose to his feet and bowed.  An immense scorn blazed in his eyes.

"My Lord High Cardinal, I congratulate you!  That a cardinal's hat
should tempt you from your cathedral, from this noble English city,
from your people who love you, from the land of your birth, may perhaps
be understood.  But that, for the sake of Church preferment, however
high, you should willingly depart, leaving Mora in sorrow, Mora in
difficulty, Mora needing your help----"

The Knight paused, amazed.  The Bishop, who seldom laughed aloud, was
laughing.  Yet no!  The Bishop, who never wept, seemed near to weeping.

The scales fell from Hugh's eyes, even before the Bishop spoke.  He
realised a love as great as his own.

"Ah, foolish lad!" said Symon of Worcester; "bent upon thine own ways,
and easy to deceive.  When I spoke of going, I said it for her sake,
hoping the prospect of my absence might hold you from your purpose.
But now truly am I convinced that you are bent upon risking your own
happiness, and imperilling hers.  Therefore will I devise some means of
detaining the Holy Father's messenger, so that my answer need not be
given until two weeks are past.  You will reach Mora, at longest, five
days from this.  As soon as she decides what she will do, send word to
me by a fast messenger.  Should she elect to return to the Nunnery,
state when and where, upon the road, I am to meet her.  Her habit as
Prioress, and her cross of office, I have here.  The former you
returned to me, from the hostel; the latter I found in her cell.  You
must take them with you.  If she returns, she must return fully robed.
If, on the other hand, she should decide to remain with you; if--as may
God grant--she is content, and requires no help from me, send me this
news by messenger.  I can then betake myself to that fair land to which
I first went for her sake; left for her sake, and to which I shall most
gladly return, if her need of me is over.  The time I state allows a
four days' margin for vacillation."

"My lord," said the Knight, humbly, "forgive the wrong I did you.
Forgive that I took in earnest that which you meant in jest; or rather,
I do truly think, that which you hoped would turn me from my purpose.
Alas, I would indeed that I might rightly be turned therefrom."

"Hugh," said the Bishop, eagerly, "you deemed her justified in coming
to you, apart from any vision."

"True," replied the Knight, "but I cannot feel justified in taking her,
and all she would give me, knowing she gives it, with a free heart,
because of her faith in the vision.  Moments of purest joy would be
clouded by my secret shame.  Being aware of the deception, I too should
be deceiving her; I, whom she loves and trusts."

"To withhold a truth is not to lie," asserted the Bishop.

"My lord," replied Hugh d'Argent, rising to his feet and standing
erect, his hand upon his sword, "I cannot reason of these things; I
cannot define the difference between withholding a truth and stating a
lie.  But when mine Honour sounds a challenge, I hear; and I ride out
to do battle--against myself, if need be; or, if it must so be, against
another.  On Eastern battle-fields, in Holy War, I won a name known
throughout all the camp, known also to the enemy: 'The Knight of the
Silver Shield.'  Our name is Argent, and we ever have the right to
carry a pure silver shield.  But I won the name because my shield was
always bright; because not once in battle did it fall in the dust;
because it never was allowed to tarnish.  So bright it was, that as I
rode, bearing it before me, reflecting the rays of the sun, it dazzled
and blinded the enemy.  My lord, I cannot tarnish my silver shield by
conniving at falsehood, or keeping silence when mine Honour bids me
speak."

Looking at the gallant figure before him, the Bishop's soul responded
to the noble words, and he longed to praise them and applaud.  But he
thought of Mora's peace of mind, Mora's awakened heart and dawning
happiness.  For her sake he must make a final stand.

"My dear Hugh," he said, "all this talk, of a silver shield and of the
challenge of honour, is well enough for the warrior on the
battle-field.  But the lover has to learn the harder lesson; he has to
give up Self, even the Self which holds honour dear.  When you polished
your silver shield, keeping it so bright, what saw you reflected
therein?  Why, your own proud face.  Even so, now, you fear the
faintest tarnish on your sense of honour, but you will keep that silver
shield bright at Mora's expense, riding on proudly alone in your glory,
reflecting the sun, dazzling all beholders, while your wife who loved
and trusted you, Mora, who told you the sweet wonder of her love in
words of deepest tenderness, lies desolate in the dark, with a
shattered life, and a broken heart.  Hugh, I would have you think of
the treasure of her golden heart, rather than of the brightness of your
own selfish, silver shield."

"Selfish!" cried the Knight.  "Selfish!  Is it selfish to hold honour
dear?  Is it selfish to be ashamed to deceive the woman one loves?
Have I, who have so striven in all things to put her welfare first,
been selfish towards my wife in this hour of crisis?"

He sat down, heavily; leaned his elbows on his knees, and dropped his
head into his hands.

This attitude of utter dejection filled the Bishop with thankfulness.
Was he, in the very moment when he had given up all hope of winning,
about to prove the victor?

"Perilously selfish, my dear Hugh," he said.  "But, thank Heaven, no
harm has yet been done.  Listen to me and I will shew you how you may
keep your honour safely untarnished, yet withhold from Mora all
knowledge which might cause her disquietude of mind, thus securing her
happiness and your own."




CHAPTER LI

TWO NOBLE HEARTS GO DIFFERENT WAYS

On that same afternoon, an hour before sunset, the two men who loved
Mora faced one another, for a final farewell.

The Bishop had said all he had to say.  Without interruption, his words
had flowed steadily on; eloquent, logical, conciliatory, persuasive.

At first he had talked to the top of the Knight's head, to the clenched
hands, to the arms outstretched across the table.

He had wondered what thoughts were at work beneath the crisp thickness
of that dark hair.  He had wished the rigid attitude of tense despair
might somewhat relax.  He had used the most telling inflexions of his
persuasive voice in order to bring this about, but without success.  He
had wished the Knight would break silence, even to rage or to disagree.
To that end he had cast as a bait an intentional slip in a statement of
facts; and, later on, a palpable false deduction in a weighty argument.
But the Knight had not risen to either.

After a while Hugh had lifted his head, and leaned back in his chair;
fixing his eyes, in his turn, upon the banner hanging from the rafters.

It had ceased to wave gently to and fro.  Probably Father Benedict had
closed the trap-door, concealed behind an upright beam, through which
he was wont to peer down into the banqueting hall below, in order to
satisfy himself that all was well and that the Reverend Father needed
naught.

Let it be here recorded that this exceeding vigilance, on the part of
Father Benedict, met with but scant reward.  For, having deduced a
draught, and its reason, from the slight stirring of the banner during
his conversation with the Knight, the Bishop gave certain secret
instructions to Brother Philip, with the result that the next time the
Chaplain peered down upon a private conference he found, at its close,
the door by which he had gained access to the roof chamber barred on
the outside, and, forcing it, he was in no better case, the ladder
which connected it with another disused chamber below having been
removed.  Thereafter Father Benedict watched the Bishop, and his guest,
partake of three meals, before he could bring himself to make known his
predicament, and beg to be released.  And, even then, the Bishop was
amazingly slow in locating the place from which issued the agitated
voice imploring assistance.  Several brethren were summoned to help; so
that quite a little crowd stood gazing up at the pallid countenance of
Father Benedict, framed in the trap-door as, lying upon his very empty
stomach, he called down replies to the Bishop's questions; vainly
striving to give a plausible reason for the peculiar situation in which
he was discovered.

But, to return to the interview which brought about this later
development.

The Knight had lifted his head, yet had still remained silent and
impassive.

Where at length the Bishop had paused, awaiting comment of some kind,
Hugh d'Argent, removing his eyes from the rafters, had asked:

"When, my lord, do you propose to meet the Prioress, should my wife,
upon learning the truth, elect to return to the Nunnery?"

Thus had the Bishop been forced to realise that the flow of his
eloquence, the ripple of his humour, the strong current of his
arguments, the gentle lapping of his tenderness, the breakers of his
threats, and the thunderous billows of his denunciations, had alike
expended themselves against the rock of the Knight's unshakable
resolve, and left it standing.

Whereupon, in silence, the Bishop had risen, and had led the way to the
library.

Here they now faced one another in final farewell.

Each knew that his loss would be the other's gain; his gain, the
other's irreparable loss.

Yet, at that moment, each thought only of Mora's peace of soul.  They
did but differ in their conception of the way in which that peace might
best be preserved and maintained.

"I must take her cross of office, my Lord Bishop," said the Knight,
with decision.

The Bishop went to a chest, standing in one corner of the room, opened
it, and bent over it, his back to Hugh d'Argent; then, slipping his
hand into his bosom drew therefrom a cross of gold gleaming with
emeralds.  Shutting down the massive lid of the chest, he returned, and
placed the cross in the outstretched hand of the Knight.

"I entrust it to you, my dear Hugh, only on one condition: that it
shall without fail return to me in two weeks' time.  Should you decide
to tell your wife the true history of the vision, I must see this cross
of office upon her breast when I meet her riding back to Worcester,
once more Prioress of the White Ladies.  If, on the other hand, wiser
counsel prevails, and you decide not to tell her, you must, by swift
messenger, at once return it to me in a sealed packet."

"I shall tell her," said the Knight.  "If she elects to leave me, you
will see the cross upon her breast, my lord.  If she elects to stay,
you shall receive it by swift messenger."

"She will leave you," said the Bishop.  "If you tell her, she will
leave you."

"She loves me," said the Knight; and he said it with a tender
reverence, and such a look upon his face, as a man wears when he speaks
of his faith in God.

"Hugh," said the Bishop, sadly; "Hugh, my dear lad, you have but little
experience of the heart of a nun.  The more she loves, the more
determined will she be to leave you, if you yourself give her reason to
think her love unjustified.  The very thing which is now a cause of
bliss will instantly become a cause for fear.  She will flee from joy,
as all pure hearts flee from sin; because, owing to your folly, her joy
will seem to her to be sinful.  My son!"--the Bishop stretched out his
hands; a passion of appeal was in his voice--"God and Holy Church have
given you your wife.  If you tell her this thing, you will lose her."

"I must take with me the dress she left behind," said the Knight, "so
that, should she decide to go, she may ride back fully robed."

The Bishop went again to the chest, raised the heavy lid, and lifted
out the white garments rolled together.  At sight of them both men fell
silent, as in presence of the dead; and the Knight felt his heart grow
cold with apprehension, as he received them from the Bishop's hand.

They passed together through the doorway leading to the river terrace,
and so down the lawn, under the arch, and into the courtyard.

There Brother Philip waited, mounted, while another lay-brother held
the Knight's horse.

As they came in sight of the horses: "Philip will see you a few miles
on your way," said the Bishop.

"I thank you, Father," replied the Knight, "but it is not needful.  The
good Brother has had many long days in the saddle."

"It is most needful," said the Bishop.  "Let Philip ride beside you
until you have passed through the Monk's Wood, and are well on to the
open ground beyond.  There, if you will, you may bid him turn back."

"Is this to ensure the safety of the Worcester cut-throats, my lord?"

The Bishop smiled.

"Possibly," he said.  "Saracens may be hewn in pieces, with impunity.
But we cannot allow our Worcester lads rashly to ride to such a fate.
Also, my dear Hugh, you carry things of so great value that we must not
risk a scuffle.  These are troublous times, and dangers lurk around the
city.  Three miles from here you may dismiss Brother Philip, and ride
forward alone."

Arrived at the horses, the Knight put away safely, that which he
carried, into his saddle-bag.  Then he dropped on one knee, baring his
head for the Bishop's blessing.

Symon of Worcester gave it.  Then, bending, added in low tones: "And
may God and the blessèd Saints aid thee to a right judgment in all
things."

"Amen," said Hugh d'Argent, and kissed the Bishop's ring.

Then he mounted; and, without one backward look, rode out through the
Palace gates, closely followed by Brother Philip.




CHAPTER LII

THE ANGEL-CHILD

Symon of Worcester turned, walked slowly across the courtyard, made his
way to the parapet above the river, and stood long, with bent head,
watching the rapid flow of the Severn.

His eyes rested upon the very place where the Knight had cleft the
water in his impulsive dive after the white stone, made, by the
Bishop's own words, to stand to him for his chances of winning the
Prioress.

Yet should that sudden leap be described as "impulsive"?  The Bishop,
ever a stickler for accuracy in descriptive words, considered this.

Nay, not so much "impulsive" as "prompt."  Even as the warrior who,
having tested his trusty sword, knowing its readiness in the scabbard
and the strength of his own right arm, draws, on the instant, when
surprised by the enemy.  Prompt, not impulsive.  A swift action, based
upon an assured certainty of power, and a steadfast determination, of
long standing, to win at all costs.

The Bishop's hand rested upon the parapet.  The stone in his ring held
neither blue nor purple lights.  Its colour had paled and faded.  It
shone--as the Prioress had once seen it shine--like a large tear-drop
on the Bishop's finger.

Deep dejection was in the Bishop's attitude.  With the riding away of
the Knight, something strong and vital seemed to have passed out of his
life.

A sense of failure oppressed him.  He had not succeeded in bending Hugh
d'Argent to his will, neither had he risen to a frank appreciation of
the loyal chivalry which would not enjoy happiness at the expense of
honour.

While his mind refused to accept the Knight's code, his soul yearned to
rise up and acclaim it.

Yet, working to the last for Mora's peace of mind, he had maintained
his tone of scornful disapproval.

He would never again have the chance to cry "Hail!" to the Silver
Shield.  The deft fingers of his sophistry had striven to loosen the
Knight's shining armour.  How far they had succeeded, the Bishop could
not tell.  But, as he watched the swiftly moving river, he found
himself wishing that his task had been to strengthen, rather than to
weaken; to gird up and brace, rather than subtly to unbuckle and
disarm.  Yet by so doing, would he not have been ensuring his own
happiness, bringing back the joy of life to his own heart, at the
expense of the two whom he had given to be each other's in the Name of
the Divine Trinity?

If Hugh persisted in his folly, he would lose his bride, yet would the
Bishop meet and reinstate the Prioress with a clear conscience, having
striven to the very last to dissuade the Knight.

If, on the other hand, Hugh, growing wiser as he rode northward,
decided to keep silence, why then the sunny land he loved, and the
Cardinal's office, for Symon, Bishop of Worcester.

But meanwhile, two weeks of uncertainty; and the Bishop could not abide
uncertainty.

He turned from the river and began to pace the lawn slowly from end to
end, his head bent, his hands clasped behind him.

Each time he reached the wall between the garden and the courtyard, he
found himself confronted by two rose trees, a red and a white, climbing
so near together that their branches intertwined, crimson blooms
resting their rich petals against the fragrant fairness of their white
neighbours.

Presently these roses became symbolic to the Bishop--the white, of the
fair presence of the Prioress; the red, of the high honour awaiting him
in Rome.

He was seized by the whimsical idea that, were he to close his eyes,
beseech the blessèd Saint Joseph to guide his hand, take three steps
forward, and pluck the first blossom his fingers touched, he might put
an end to this tiresome uncertainty.

But he smiled at the childishness of the fancy.  It savoured of the old
lay-sister, Mary Antony, playing with her peas and confiding in her
robin.  Moreover the Bishop never did anything with his eyes shut.  He
would have slept with them open, had not Nature decreed otherwise.

Once again he paced the full length of the lawn, his hands clasped
behind his back, his eyes looking beyond the river to the distant hills.

"Will she come, or shall I go?  Shall I depart, or will she return?"

As he turned at the parapet, a voice seemed to whisper with insistence:
"A white rose for her pure presence in the Cloister.  A red rose for
Rome."

And, as he reached the wall again, the bright eyes of a little maiden
peeped at him through the archway.

He stood quite still and looked at her.

Never had he seen so lovely an elf.  A sunbeam had made its home in
each lock of her tumbled hair.  Her little brown face had the soft
bloom of a ripe nectarine; her eyes, the timid glance of a startled
fawn.

The Bishop smiled.

The bright eyes lost their look of fear, and sparkled responsive.

The Bishop beckoned.

The little maid stole through the archway; then, gaining courage flew
over the turf, and stood between the Bishop and the roses.

"How camest thou here, my little one?" questioned Symon of Worcester,
in his softest tones.

"The big gate stood open, sir, and I ran in."

"And what is thy name, my little maid?"

"Verity," whispered the child, shyly, blushing to speak her own name.

"Ah," murmured the Bishop.  "Hath Truth indeed come in at my open gate?"

Then, smiling into the little face lifted so confidingly to his: "Dost
thou want something, Angel-child, that I can give thee?"

One little bare, brown foot rubbed itself nervously over the other.
Five little brown, bare toes wriggled themselves into the grass.

"Be not afraid," said the Bishop.  "Ask what thou wilt and I will give
it thee, unto the half of my kingdom.  Yea, even the head of Father
Benedict, in a charger."

"A rose," said the child, eagerly ignoring the proffered head of Father
Benedict and half the Bishop's kingdom.  "A rose from that lovely tree!
Their pretty faces looked at me over the wall."

The Bishop's lips still smiled; but his eyes, of a sudden, grew grave.

"Blessèd Saint Joseph!" he murmured beneath his breath, and crossed
himself.

Then, bending over the little maid, he laid his hand upon the tumbled
curls.

"Truly, my little Verity," he said, "thou shalt gather thyself a rose,
and thou shall gather one for me.  I leave thee free to make thy
choice.  See!  I clasp my hands behind me--thus.  Then I shall turn and
walk slowly up the lawn.  So soon as my back is turned, pluck thou two
roses.  Fly with those little brown feet after me, and place one of the
roses--whichever thou wilt--in my hands.  Then run home thyself, with
the other.  Farewell, little Angel-child.  May the blessing of
Bethlehem's purple hills be ever thine."

The Bishop turned and paced slowly up the lawn, head bent, hands
clasped behind him.

The small bare feet made no sound on the turf.  But before the Bishop
was half-way across the lawn, the stem of a rose was thrust between his
fingers.  As they closed over it, a gay ripple of laughter sounded
behind him, fading fleetly into the distance.

The Angel-child had made her choice, and had flown with her own rose,
leaving the Bishop's destiny in his clasped hands.

Without pausing or looking round, he paced onward, gazing for a while
at the sparkling water; then beyond it, to the distant woods through
which the Knight was riding.

Presently he turned, still with his hands behind him, passed to the
garden-door, left standing wide, and entered the library.

But not until he kneeled before the shrine of Saint Joseph did he move
forward his right hand, and bring into view the rose placed therein by
Verity.

It was many years since the Bishop had wept.  He had not thought ever
to weep again.  Yet, at sight of the rose, plucked for him by the
Angel-child, something gave way within him, and he fell to weeping
helplessly.

Saint Joseph, bearded and stalwart, seemed to look down with compassion
upon the bowed head with its abundant silvery hair.

Even thus, it may be, had he himself wept when, after his time of hard
mental torture, the Angel of the Lord appeared unto him, saying: "Fear
not."

After a while the Bishop left the shrine, went over to the deed chest,
and laid the rose beside the white stone.

"There, my dear Hugh," he murmured; "thy stone, and my rose.  Truly
they look well together.  Each represents the triumph of firm resolve.
Yet mine will shortly fade and pass away; while thine, dear lad, will
abide forever."

The Bishop seated himself at his table, and sounded the silver gong.

A lay-brother appeared.

"_Benedicite_," said the Bishop.  "Request Fra Andrea Filippo at once
to come hither.  I must have speech with him, without delay."




CHAPTER LIII

ON THE HOLY MOUNT

On the ninth day since Hugh's departure, the day when fast riding might
make his return possible before nightfall, Mora rose early.

At the hour when she had been wont to ring the Convent bell, she was
walking swiftly over the moors and climbing the heather-clad hills.

She had remembered a little chapel, high up in the mountains, where
dwelt a holy Hermit, held in high repute for his saintliness of life,
his wisdom in the giving of spiritual counsel, and his skill in
ministering to the sick.

It had come to Mora, as she prayed and pondered during the night, that
if she could make full confession to this holy man, he might be able to
throw some clear beam of light upon the dark tangle of her perplexity.

This hope was strongly with her as she walked.

"Lighten my darkness!  Lead me in a plain path!" was the cry of her
bewildered soul.

It seemed to her that she had two issues to consider.  First: the
question as to whether Hugh, guided by the Bishop, would keep silence;
thus making himself a party to her deception.  Secondly: the position
in which she was placed by the fact that she had left the Convent,
owing to that deception.  But, for the moment the first issue was so
infinitely the greater, that she found herself thrusting the second
into the background, allowing herself to be conscious of it merely as a
question to be faced later on, when the all-important point of Hugh's
attitude in the matter should be settled.

She walked forward swiftly, one idea alone possessing her: that she
hastened toward possible help.

She did not slacken speed until the chapel came into view, its grey
walls glistening in the morning light, a clump of feathery rowan trees
beside it; at its back a mighty rock, flung down in bygone centuries
from the mountain which towered behind it.  From a deep cleft in this
rock sprang a young oak, dipping its fresh green to the roof of the
chapel; all around it, in every crack and cranny, parsley fern,
hare-bells on delicate, swaying stalks, foxgloves tall and straight,
and glorious bunches of purpling heather.

Nearby was the humble dwelling of the Hermit.  The door stood ajar.

Softly approaching, Mora lifted her hand, and knocked.

No voice replied.

The sound of her knock did but make evident the presence of a vast
solitude.

Pushing open the door, she ventured to look within.

The Hermit's cell was empty.  The remains of a frugal meal lay upon the
rough wooden table.  Also an open breviary, much thumbed and worn.  At
the further end of the table, a little pile of medicinal herbs heaped
as if shaken hastily from the wallet which lay beside them.  Probably
the holy man, even while at an early hour he broke his fast, had been
called to some sick bedside.

Mora turned from the doorway and, shading her eyes, scanned the
landscape.

At first she could see only sheep, slowly moving from tuft to tuft as
they nibbled the short grass; or goats, jumping from rock to rock, and
suddenly disappearing in the high bracken.

But soon, on a distant ridge, she perceived two figures and presently
made out the brown robe and hood of the Hermit, and a little, barefoot
peasant boy, running to keep up with his rapid stride.  They vanished
over the crest of the hill, and Mora--alone in this wild
solitude--realised that many hours might elapse ere the Hermit returned.

This check to the fulfilment of her purpose, instead of disappointing
her, flooded her heart with a sudden sense of relief.

The interior of the Hermit's cell had recalled, so vividly, the
austerities of the cloistered life.

The Hermit's point of view would probably have been so completely from
within.

It would have been impossible that he should comprehend the wonder--the
growing wonder--of these days, since she and Hugh rode away from
Warwick, culminating in that exquisite hour on the battlements when she
had told him of the vision, whispered her full surrender, and yet
he--faithful and patient even then--had touched her only with his
glowing eyes.

How could a holy Hermit, dwelling alone among great silent hills,
realise the tremendous force of a strong mutual love, the glow, the
gladness, the deep, sweet unrest, the call of soul to soul, the throb
of hearts, filling the purple night with the soft beat of angels' wings?

How could a holy Hermit understand the shock to Hugh, how fathom the
maddening torment of suspense, the abyss of hope deferred, into which
the Bishop's letter must have plunged him, coming so soon after he had
said: "I ask no higher joy, than to watch the breaking of the day which
gives thee to my home"?  But the breaking of the day had brought the
stern necessity which took him from her.

Yet why?  How much was in that second letter?  Was it less detailed
than the first?  Had Hugh ridden south to learn the entire truth?  Or
had he ridden south to arrange with the Bishop for her complete and
permanent deception?

Standing on this mountain plateau--the morning breeze blowing about
her, the sun mounting triumphant in the heavens "as a bridegroom coming
out of his chamber," and all around the scent of heather, the hum of
bees, the joyful trill of the soaring lark; her own body bounding with
life after the swift climb--it seemed to Mora impossible that Hugh
should withstand the temptation to hold to his happiness, at all costs.
And how could a saintly Hermit judge him as mercifully as she--the
woman who loved him--knew that he should be judged?

She felt thankful for the good man's absence, yet baffled in her need
for help.

Looking back toward the humble dwelling, she perceived a rough device
of carved lettering on a beam over the doorway.  She made out Latin
words, and going nearer she, who for years had worked so continuously
at copying and translating, read them without difficulty.

"WITH HIM, IN THE HOLY MOUNT," was inscribed across the doorway of the
Hermit's dwelling.

Mora repeated the words, and again repeated them; and, as she did so
there stole over her the sense of an Unseen Presence in this solitude.

"With Him, in the Holy Mount."

She turned to the chapel.  Over that doorway also were carven letters.
Moving closer, she looked up and read them.

"AND WHEN THEY HAD LIFTED UP THEIR EYES, THEY SAW NO MAN, SAVE JESUS
ONLY."

Mora opened the door and entered the tiny chapel.  At first, coming in
from the outer brightness it seemed dark; but she had left the door
standing wide, and light poured in behind her.

Then she lifted up her eyes and saw; and seeing, understood the meaning
of the legend above the entrance.

In that little chapel was one Figure, and one Figure only.  No pictured
saints were there.  No image of our Lady.  No crucifix hung on the wall.

But, in a niche above the altar, stood a wondrous figure of the Christ;
not dying, not dead; not glorified and ascending; but the Christ as
very man, walking the earth in human form, yet calmly, unmistakably,
triumphantly Divine.  The marble form was carved by the same hand as
the Madonna which the Bishop had brought from Rome, and placed in
Mora's cell at the Convent.  It had been his gift to his old friend the
Hermit.  At first sight of it, Mora remembered hearing it described by
the Bishop himself.  Then the beauty of the sculpture took hold upon
her, and she forgot all else.

It lived!  The face wore a look of searching tenderness; on the lips, a
smile of loving comprehension; in the out-stretched hands, an attitude
of infinite compassion.

Mora fell upon her knees.  Instinctively she recalled the earnest
injunction of Father Gervaise to his penitents that, when kneeling
before the crucifix, they should repeat: "He ever liveth to make
intercession for us."  And, strangely enough, there came back with this
the remembrance of the wild voice of Mary Seraphine, shrieking, when
told to contemplate the dying Redeemer: "I want life--not death!"

Here was Life indeed!  Here was the Saviour of the world, in mortal
guise, the Word made manifest.

Mora lifted her eyes and read the words, illumined in letters of gold
around the arch of the niche, gleaming in the sunlight above the
patient head of the Man Divine.

"IN ALL POINTS TEMPTED LIKE AS WE ARE, YET WITHOUT SIN."

And higher still, above the arch:

"A GREAT HIGH PRIEST. . . . PASSED INTO THE HEAVENS."

In the silence and stillness of that utter solitude, she who had so
lately been Prioress of the White Ladies kneeled and worshipped.

The Unseen Presence drew nearer.

She closed her eyes to the sculptured form.

The touch of her Lord was upon her heart.

She had prayed in her cell that His piercèd feet nailed to the wood
might become as dear to her as the Baby feet on the Virgin Mother's
knees.  In her anguish of cloistered sorrow, that prayer had been
granted.

But out in the world of living men and things, she needed more.  She
needed Feet that walked and moved, passed in and out of house and home;
paused by the hearth; went to the wedding feast; moved to the fresh
closed grave; Feet that had sampled the dust of life's highway; Feet
that had trod rough places, yet never tripped nor stumbled.

"Tempted in all points." . . .  Then here was One Who could understand
Hugh's hard temptation; Who could pity, if Hugh fell.  Here was One Who
would comprehend the breaking of her poor human heart if, loving Hugh
as she now loved, she yet must leave him.

"A great High Priest." . . .  What need of any other priest, while
"with Him in the Holy Mount"?  Passed into the heavens, yet ever living
to make intercession for us.

Deep peace stole into her heart, as she knelt in absorbed communion in
this sacred place, where, for the first time, in her religious life,
she had found herself with "Jesus only."

"Ah, blessèd Lord!" she cried at length, "Thou Who knowest the heart of
a man, and canst divine the heart of a woman, grant unto me this day a
true vision; a vision which shall make clear to me, without any
possibility of doubt, what is Thy will for me."




CHAPTER LIV

THE UNSEEN PRESENCE

The world was a new and a wonderful world as, leaving the chapel, Mora
turned her steps homeward.  She had been wont to regard temptation
itself as sinful, but now this sacred fact "in all points tempted like
as we are" seemed to sanctify the state of being tempted, providing she
could add the three triumphant words: "Yet without sin."

As she walked, with springy step, down the grassy paths among the
heather, the Unseen Presence moved beside her.

It seemed strange that she should have found in the world this sweet
secret of the Perpetual Presence, which had evaded her in the Nunnery.
Often when her duties had taken her elsewhere in the Convent, or during
the walk through the underground way on the return from the Cathedral,
or even when walking for refreshment in the Convent garden, she would
yearn for the holy stillness of the chapel, or to be back in her cell
that she might kneel at the shrine of the Virgin and there realise the
adorable purity of our blessèd Lady's heart; or, prostrating herself
before the crucifix, gaze upon those piercèd feet, then slowly lift her
eyes to the other sacred wounds, and force her mind to realise and her
cold heart to receive the mighty fact that the Divine Redeemer thus
hung and suffered for her sins.

Transports of realisation had come to her in her cell, or when she kept
vigil in the Convent chapel, or when from the height of the Cathedral
clerestory she gazed down upon the High Altar, the lighted candles, the
swinging censers, and heard the chanting of the monks, and the tinkle
of the silver bell.  But these transports had resulted from her own
determination to realise and to respond.  The mental effort over, they
faded, and her heart had seemed colder than before, her spirit more
dead, her mind more prone to apathy.  The greater the effort to force
herself to apprehend, the more complete had been the reaction of
non-realisation.

But now, in this deep wonder of new experience, there was no effort.
She had but waited with every inlet of her being open to receive.  And
now the power was a Real Presence within, revealing an equally Real
Presence without.  The Risen Christ moved beside her as she walked.
Her eyes were no longer holden that she should not know Him, for the
promised Presence of the _Paracletos_ filled her, unveiling her
spiritual vision, whispering within her glowing heart; "It is the Lord!"

"Which Voice we heard," wrote Saint Peter, "when we were with Him in
the Holy Mount."  She, too, had first heard it there; but, as she
descended, it was with her still.  The songs of the birds, the rush of
the stream, the breeze in the pines, the bee on the wing, all Nature
seemed to say: "It is the Lord!"

Sorrow, suffering, disillusion might await her on the plain; but, with
the Presence beside her, and the Voice within, she felt strong to face
them, and to overcome.


Noon found her in her garden, calm and serene; yet wondering, with
quickening pulses, whether at nightfall or even at sunset, Hugh would
ride in; and what she must say if, giving some other reason for his
journey to Worcester, he deceived her as others had deceived; failed
her as others had failed.

And wondering thus, she rose and moved with slow step to the terrace.

For a while she stood pondering this hard question, her eyes lifted to
the distant hills.

Then something impelled her to turn and glance into the banqueting
hall, and there--on the spot where he had knelt that she might bless
him at parting--stood Hugh, his arms folded, his eyes fixed upon her,
waiting till she should see him.




CHAPTER LV

THE HEART OF A WOMAN

For a space, through the casement, they looked into one another's eyes;
she, standing in the full glory of the summer sunshine, a radiant
vision of glowing womanhood; he, in the shade of the banqueting-hall,
gaunt and travel-stained, yet in his eyes the light of that love which
never faileth.  But, even as she looked, those dark eyes wavered,
shifted, turned away, as if he could not bear any longer to gaze upon
her in the sunlight.

An immense pity filled Mora's heart.  She knew he was going to fail
her; yet the pathos of that failure lay in the fact that it was the
very force of his love which rendered the temptation so insuperable.

Swiftly she passed into the banqueting hall, went to him where he
stood, put up her arms about his neck, and lifted her lips to his.

"I thank God, my belovèd," she said, "that He hath brought thee in
safety back to me."

Hugh's arms, flung around her, strained her to him.  But he kept his
head erect.  The muscles of his neck were like iron bands under her
fingers.  She could see the cleft in his chin, the firm curve of his
lips.  His eyes were turned from her.

She longed to say: "Hugh, the Bishop's first letter, lost on its way,
hath reached my hands.  Already I know the true story of the vision."

Yet instead she clung to his neck, crying: "Kiss me, Hugh!  Kiss me!"

She could not rob her man of his chance to be faithful.  Also, if he
were going to fail her, it were better he should fail and she know it,
than that she should forever have the torment of questioning: "Had I
not spoken, would he have kept silence?"

Yet, while he was still hers, his honour untarnished, she longed for
the touch of his lips.

"Kiss me," she whispered again, not knowing how ten-fold more hard she
thus made it for him.

But loosing his arms from around her, he took her face between his
hands, looking long into her eyes, with such a yearning of hunger,
grief, and regret, that her heart stood still.  Then, just as, rendered
dizzy by his nearness, she closed her eyes, she felt his lips upon her
own.

For a moment she was conscious of nothing save that she was his.

Then her mind flew back to the last time they had stood, thus.  Again
the underground smell of damp earth seemed all about them; again her
heart was torn by love and pity; again she seemed to see Hugh, passing
up from the darkness into that pearly light which came stealing down
from the crypt--and she realised that this second kiss held also the
anguish of parting, rather than the rapture of reunion.

Before she could question the meaning of this, Hugh released her,
gently loosed her hands from about his neck, and led her to a seat.

Then he thrust his hand into his breast, and when he drew it forth she
saw that he held something in his palm, which gleamed as the light fell
upon it.

Standing before her, his eyes bent upon that which lay in his hand,
Hugh spoke.

"Mora, I have to tell thee a strange tale, which will, I greatly fear,
cause thee much sorrow and perplexity.  But first I would give thee
this, sent to thee by the Bishop with his most loving greetings; who
also bids me say that if, after my tale is told, thy choice should be
to return to Worcester, he himself will meet thee, and welcome thee,
conduct thee to the Nunnery and there reinstate thee Prioress of the
White Ladies, with due pomp and highest honour.  I tell thee this at
once to spare thee all I can of shock and anguish in the hearing of
that which must follow."

Kneeling before her, Hugh laid her jewelled cross of office on her lap.

"My wife," he said simply, speaking very low, with bent head, "before I
tell thee more I would have thee know thyself free to go back to the
point where first thy course was guided by the vision of the old
lay-sister, Mary Antony.  Therefore I bring thee thy cross of office as
Prioress of the White Ladies."

She laughed aloud, in the great gladness of her relief; in the rapture
of her pride in him.

"How can _thy wife_ be Prioress of the White Ladies?" she cried, and
caught his head to her breast, there where the jewelled cross used to
lie, raining tears and kisses on his hair.

For a moment he yielded, speaking, with his face pressed against her,
words of love beyond her imagining.

Then he regained control.

"Oh, hush, my belovèd!" he said.  "Hold me not!  Let me go, or our Lady
knoweth I shall even now fail in the task which lies before me."

"Our Lord, Who knoweth the heart of a man," she said, "hath made my man
so strong that he will not fail."

But she let him go; and rising, the Knight stood before her.

"The letter brought to me by Brother Philip," he began, "told me
something of that which I am about to tell thee.  But I could not speak
of it to thee until I knew it in fullest detail, and had consulted with
the Bishop concerning its possible effect upon thy future.  Hence my
instant departure to Worcester.  That which I now shall tell thee, I
had, in each particular, from the Bishop in most secret conversations.
He and I, alone, know of this matter."

Then with his arms folded upon his breast, his eye fixed upon the sunny
garden, beyond the window, deep sorrow, compunction, and, at times, awe
in his voice, Hugh d'Argent recited the entire history of the pretended
vision; beginning with the hiding of herself of old Antony in the inner
cell, her anxiety concerning the Reverend Mother, confided to the
Bishop; his chance remark, resulting in the old woman's cunningly
devised plan to cheat the Prioress into accepting happiness.

And, as he told it, the horror of the sacrilege fell as a dark shadow
between them, eclipsing even the radiance of their love.  Upon which
being no longer blinded, Mora clearly perceived the other issue which
she was called upon to face: If our Lady's sanction miraculously given
to the step she had taken in leaving the Nunnery had after all _not_
been given, what justification had she for remaining in the world?

Presently Hugh reached the scene of the full confession and death of
the old lay-sister.  He told it with reverent simplicity.  None of the
Bishop's flashes of humour had found any place in the Knight's recital.

But now his voice, of a sudden, fell silent.  The tale was told.


Mora had sat throughout leaning forward, her right elbow on her knee,
her chin resting in the palm of her right hand; her left toying with
the jewelled cross upon her lap.

Now she looked up.

"Hugh, you have made no mention of the Bishop's opinion as regards the
effect of this upon myself.  Did he advise that I be told the entire
truth?"

The Knight hesitated.

"Nay," he admitted at length, seeing that she must have an answer.
"The Bishop had, as you indeed know, from the first considered our
previous betrothal and your sister's perfidy, sufficient justification
for your release from all vows made through that deception.  Armed with
the Pope's mandate, the Bishop saw no need for a divine manifestation,
nor did he, from the first, believe in the vision of this old
lay-sister.  Yet, knowing you set great store by it, he feared for your
peace of mind, should you learn the truth."

"Did he command you not to tell me, Hugh?"

"For love of you, Mora, out of tender regard for your happiness, the
Bishop counselled me not to tell you."

"He would have had you to become a party, with himself, and old Mary
Antony, in my permanent deception?"

Hugh was a loyal friend.

"He would have had me to become a party, with himself, in securing your
permanent peace, Mora," he said, sternly.

She loved his sternness.  So much did she adore him for having
triumphed where she had made sure that he would fail, so much did she
despise herself for having judged him so poorly, rated him so low, that
she could have knelt upon the floor and clasped his feet!  Yet must she
strive for wisdom and calmness.

"Then how came you to tell me, Hugh, that which might well imperil not
only my peace but your own happiness?"

"Mora," said the Knight, "if I have done wrong, may our blessèd Lady
pardon me, and comfort you.  But I could not take my happiness knowing
that it came to me by reason of a deception practised upon you.  Our
love must have its roots in perfect truthfulness and trust.  Also you
and I had together accepted the vision as divine.  I had kneeled in
your sight and praised our blessèd Lady for this especial grace
vouchsafed on my behalf.  But now, knowing it to have been a
sacrilegious fraud, every time you spoke with joy of the special grace,
every time you blessed our Lady for her loving-kindness, I, by my
silence, giving mute assent, should have committed sacrilege afresh.
Aye, and in that wondrous moment which you promised should soon come,
when you would have said: 'Take me!  I have been ever thine.  Our Lady
hath kept me for thee!' mine honour would have been smirched forever
had I, keeping silence, taken advantage of thy belief in words which
that old nun had herself invented, and put into the mouth of the
blessèd Virgin.  The Bishop held me selfish because I put mine honour
before my need of thee.  He said I saw naught but mine own proud face,
in the bright mirror of my silver shield.  But"--the Knight held his
right hand aloft, and spoke in solemn tones--"methinks I see there the
face of God, or the nearest I know to His face; and, behind Him, I see
thy face, mine own belovèd.  I needs must put this, which I owe to
honour and to our mutual trust, before mine own content, and utter need
of thee.  I should be shamed, did I do otherwise, to call thee wife of
mine, to think of thee as mistress of my home, and of my heart the
Queen."

Mora's hand had sought the Bishop's letter; but now she let it lie
concealed.  She could not dim the noble triumph of that moment, by any
revelation of her previous knowledge.  Had Hugh failed, she must have
produced the first letter.  Hugh having proved faithful, it might well
wait.

A long silence fell between them.  Mora, fingering the cross, looked on
it with unseeing eyes.  To Hugh it seemed that this token of her high
office was becoming to her a thing of first importance.

"The dress is also here," he said.

"What dress?" she questioned, starting.

He pointed to where he had laid it: her white habit, scapulary, wimple,
veil and girdle; the dress of a Prioress of the Order of the White
Ladies.

She turned her startled eyes upon it.  Then quickly looked away.

"Did you yourself think a vision needed, in order that I might be
justified in leaving the Convent, Hugh?"

"Nay, then," he cried, "always from the first I held thee mine in the
sight of Heaven."

"Are you of opinion that, the vision being proved no vision, I should
go back?"

"No!" said the Knight; and the word fell like a blow from a battle-axe.

"Does the Bishop expect that I shall return?"

"Yes," replied the Knight, groaning within himself that she should have
chanced to change the form of her question.

"He would so expect," mused Mora.  "He would be sure I should return.
He remembers my headstrong temper, and my imperious will.  He remembers
how I tore the Pope's mandate, placing my foot upon it.  He knows I
said how that naught would suffice me but a divine vision.  Also he
knoweth well the heart of a nun; and when I asked him if the heart of a
nun could ever become as the heart of other women, he did most piously
ejaculate: 'Heaven forbid?'"

Little crinkles of merriment showed faintly at the corners of her eyes.
The Bishop would have seen them, and smiled responsive.  But the sad
Knight saw them not.

"Mora," he said, "I leave thee free.  I hold thee to no vows made
through falsehood and fraud.  I rate thy peace of mind before mine own
content; thy true well-being, before mine own desires.  Leaving thee
free, dear Heart, I must leave thee free to choose.  Loving thee as I
love thee, I cannot stay here, yet leave thee free.  My anguish of
suspense would hamper thee.  Therefore I purpose now to ride to my own
home.  Martin will ride with me.  But tomorrow he will return, to ask
if there is a message; and the next day, and the next.  The Bishop
allowed four days for hesitation.  If thy decision should be to return
to the Nunnery, his command is that thou ride the last stage of the
journey fully robed, wearing thy cross of office.  He himself will meet
thee five miles this side of Worcester, and riding in, with much pomp
and ceremony, will announce to the Community that, the higher service
to which His Holiness sent thee, being accomplished----"

"Accomplished, Hugh?"

The Knight smiled, wearily.  "I quote the Bishop, Mora.  He will
explain that he now reinstates thee as Prioress of the Order.  The
entire Community will, he says, rejoice; and he himself will be ever at
hand to make sure that all is right for thee."

"These plans are well and carefully laid, Hugh."

"They who love thee have seen to that, Mora."

"Who will ride with me from here to Worcester?"

"Martin Goodfellow, and a little band of thine own people.  A swifter
messenger will go before to warn the Bishop of thy coming."

"And what of thee?" she asked.

"Of me?" repeated the Knight, as if at first the words conveyed to him
no meaning.  "Oh, I shall go forth, seeking a worthy cause for which to
fight; praying God I may soon be counted worthy to fall in battle."

She pressed her clasped hands there where his face had rested.

"And if I find I cannot go back, Hugh?  If I decide to stay?"

He swung round and looked at her.

"Mora, is there hope?  The Bishop said there was none."

"Hugh," she made answer slowly, speaking with much earnestness, "shall
I not be given a true vision to guide me in this perplexity?"

"Our Lady grant it," he said.  "If you decide to stay, one word will
bring me back.  If not, Mora--this is our final parting."

He took a step toward her.

She covered her face with her hands.

In a moment his arms would be round her.  She could not live through a
third of those farewell kisses.  She had not yet faced out the second
question.  But--vision or no vision--if he touched her now, she would
yield.

"Go!" she whispered.  "Ah, for pity's sake, go!  The heart of a nun
might endure even this.  But I ask thy mercy for the heart of a woman!"

She heard the sob in his throat, as he knelt and lifted the hem of her
robe to his lips.

Then his step across the floor.

Then the ring of horses' hoofs upon the paving stones.

She was trembling from head to foot, yet she rose and went to the
window overlooking the courtyard.

Mark was shutting the gates.  Beaumont held a neglected stirrup cup,
and laughed as he drained it himself.  Zachary, stout and pompous, was
mounting the steps.

Hugh, her husband--Hugh, faithful beyond belief--Hugh, her dear Knight
of the Silver Shield--had ridden off alone, to the home to which he so
greatly longed to take her; alone, with his hopeless love, his hungry
heart, and his untarnished honour.

Turning from the window she gathered up the habit of her Order and,
clasping her cross of office, mounted to her bedchamber, there to face
out in solitude the hard question of the second issue.




CHAPTER LVI

THE TRUE VISION

To her bedchamber went Mora--she who had been Prioress of the White
Ladies--bearing in her arms the full robes of her Order, and in her
hand the jewelled cross of her high office.  She went, expecting to
spend hours in doubt and prayer and question before the shrine of the
Virgin.  But, as she pushed open the door and entered the sunlit
chamber, on the very threshold she was met by a flash of inward
illumination.  Surely every question had already been answered; the
second issue had been decided, while the first was yet wholly uncertain.

She had said she must have a divine vision.  Had she not this very day
been granted a two-fold vision, both human and divine; the Divine,
stooping in unspeakable tenderness and comprehension to the human; the
Human, upborne on the mighty pinions of pure love and stainless honour
in a self-sacrifice which lifted it to the Divine?

In the lonely chapel on the mountain, she had seen her Lord.  Not as
the Babe, heralded by angels, worshipped by Eastern shepherds, adored
by Gentile kings, throned on His Mother's knee, wise-eyed and God-like,
stretching omnipotent baby hands toward this mysterious homage which
was His due; accepting, with baby omniscience, the gold, the
frankincense, the myrrh, which typified His mission; nor as the Divine
Redeemer nailed helpless to the cross of shame; dead, that the world
might live.  These had been the visions of her cloistered years.

But in the chapel on the mountain she had seen Him as the human Jesus,
tempted in all points like as we are, His only visible halo the "yet
without sin," which set upon His brow in youth and manhood the divine
seal of perfect purity, and in His eyes the clear shining of
uninterrupted intercourse with Heaven.

As she had left the chapel, turning from the sculptured figure which
had helped her to this realisation, she had become wondrously aware of
the Unseen Presence of the Christ, close beside her.  "As seeing Him
Who is invisible" she had come down from the mount, conscious that He
went on before.  She seemed to be following those blessèd footsteps
over the heather of her native hills, even as the disciples of old
followed them through the cornfields of Judea, and over the grassy
slopes of Galilee.  Yet conscious also that He moved beside her, with
hand outstretched in case her spirit tripped; and that, should a hidden
foe fling shafts from an ambush in the rear, even there that Unseen
Presence would be behind her as a shield.  "Lo I am with you always,
even unto the end of the world."

Strong in this most human vision of the Divine, she had come down from
the Holy Mount, prepared to face the dumb demon she dreaded, the silent
acquiescence in deception, which threatened to tear her happiness,
bruise her spirit, and cast into the fire and into the waters to
destroy them, those treasures which her heart had lately learned to
hold so dear.

Prepared for this, she came; and lo, Heaven granted her the second
vision.  She saw deep into the heart of a true man's faithfulness; an
example of chivalry, of profound reverence for holy things, which
shamed her doubts of him; a self-sacrifice which lifted the great human
love, to which she, in her cloistered sanctity, had pictured herself as
stooping, far above her, to the ideal of the divine.  Was not this
indeed a Vision of Truth?

Crossing the room, Mora laid the robes she carried upon the couch.
While mounting the stairs she had planned, in the secret of her own
chamber, to clothe herself in them once again, to hang her jewelled
cross about her neck, and thus--once more Prioress of the White
Ladies--to kneel at our Lady's shrine, and implore guidance in this
final decision.  But now, she laid them gently down upon the bed.

She could not stand fast in this new liberty, with the heavy folds of
that white habit entangling her feet in a yoke of bondage.

The heart, filled with a love so full of glowing tenderness for her
Knight of the Silver Shield proved worthy, could not beat beneath a
scapulary.  Nor could her cross of office lie where his dear head had
rested.

She stood before the shrine.  The Madonna looked gravely upon her.  The
holy Babe gazed with omniscient eyes, holding forth tiny hands of
omnipotence.

Even so had they looked in her hour of joy, when she had kneeled in a
transport of thanksgiving.

Even so had they looked in her hour of anguish, when she had poured out
her despair at having been twice deceived.

Yet help had not come, until she had lifted her eyes unto the hills.

She turned from the shrine, went swiftly to the open casement, and
stood looking over the green tree tops, to the heavenly blue beyond,
flecked by swift moving clouds.

She, who had now learned to "look . . . at the things that are not
seen," could not find help through gazing on carven images.

Thoughts of our Lady seemed more living and vital while she kept her
eyes upon the fleecy whiteness of those tiny clouds, or watched a
flight of mountain birds, silver-winged in the sunshine.

What was the one command recorded as having been given, by the blessèd
Mother of our Lord, to men?  "Whatsoever He saith unto you, do it."
And what was His last injunction to His Church on earth?  "Go ye into
all the world and preach glad tidings to every creature. . . .  And lo,
I am with you always."

Mora could not but know that she had come forth into her world bringing
the glad tidings of love requited, of comfort, and of home.

By virtue of this promise the feet of the risen Christ would move
beside her "all the days."

It seemed to her, that if she went back now into her Convent cell, she
would nail those blessèd feet to the wood again.  In slaying this new
life within herself, she would lose forever the sense of living
companionship, retaining only the religion of the Crucifix.  Enough,
perhaps, for the cloistered life.  But this life more abundant,
demanded that grace should yet more abound.

A great apostolic injunction sounded, like a clarion call, from the
stored chancel of her memory.  "As ye have therefore received Christ
Jesus the Lord, so walk ye in Him."

She flung wide her arms.  A sense of all-pervading liberty, a complete
freedom from all bondage of spirit, soul, or body, leapt up responsive
to the call.

"I will!" she said.  "Without any further fear or faltering, I will!"

She passed to the couch, folded the robes she had worn so long, and
laid them away in an empty chest.

This done, she took her cross of office, and went down to the terrace.
Her one thought was to reach Hugh with as little delay as possible.
She could not leave that noble heart in suspense, a moment longer than
she need.

The sun was still high in the heavens.  By the short way through the
woods, she could reach the castle long before sunset.

She owed Hugh much.  Yet there was another to whom she also owed a
debt; how much she owed to him, this day's new light had shewn her.
She would go forward to her joy with a freer heart if she gave herself
time to discharge, by acknowledgment and thanks, the great debt she
owed to her old and faithful friend, Symon, Bishop of Worcester.

She sent for her steward.

"Zachary," she said, "Sir Hugh has ridden on before.  I follow by the
short way through the forest, and shall not return to-night.  Bid them
saddle my white palfrey, Icon.  I shall be ready to start within an
hour.  But first I must despatch to Worcester, a packet of importance.
Bid two of the men, who rode with us from Worcester, prepare to mount
and return thither.  If they start in an hour's time, they can be well
on their way, and make a safe lodging, before nightfall."

She passed into the library, laid the cross before her on the table,
and began her letter to the Bishop.

Straight from her hand to his, that letter went; straight from her
heart to his, that letter spoke; and Symon's comfort in it, lies
largely in the knowledge that she was alone when she wrote it, alone
when she sealed it, and that none in this world, saving they two, will
ever know exactly what the woman, whom he had loved so purely and
served so faithfully, said to him in this letter.

Bare facts, however, may be given.

She told him, as briefly as might be, of that morning's great
experience; of Hugh's return, and noble self-effacement; of the clear
light she had received, and the decision to which she had come; and of
how she was now going forward, with a free heart, to her great
happiness.

And then, in glowing words, she told him all she owed to his faithful,
patient friendship, to the teaching of long years, the trend of which
had always been life, light, liberty; a wider outlook, a fearless
judgment, a clear knowledge of God, based on inspired writings; and,
above all, belief in those words, often on his lips, always in his
heart: "Love never faileth."

"Truly, my dear lord," she wrote, "your love----"  Nay, it may not be
quoted!

She told him how his teaching, following along the same lines as that
of Father Gervaise years before, had prepared her mind for this
revelation of the ever-living Saviour.

"Now the mystery is unveiled to me also," she wrote, "I realise that
you knew it all along; and that, had I but been more teachable,
Reverend Father, you could have taught me more.  Oh, I pray you, take
heart of grace, and teach these great truths to others."

She blessed him for his faithfulness in striving to make her see her
duty to Hugh, and her life's true vocation.

She blessed him for her great happiness, yet thanked him for his care
in sending her cross of office, thus making all easy in order that, had
her conscience so required, she could have safely returned.  She
herewith sent him the cross, and begged that he would keep it,
remembering when he chanced to look upon it----

She also begged him to forgive her the many times when she had tried
his patience, and been herself impatient of his wise counsel and
control.

And, finally, she signed herself ---- ---- ----

Mora held the cross to her lips, then placed it within the letter,
folded the packet, sealed it with her own seal, addressed it with full
directions, and called for the messenger.

Thus, fully four days before he had looked to have it, the answer for
which he waited, reached the Bishop's hand.  As he opened it, and
perceived the gleam of gold and emeralds, he glanced across to the deed
chest, where lay the Knight's white stone.

The rose beside it had not yet faded.  It might have been plucked and
placed in the water that morning, so fair it bloomed--a red, red rose.
Ah, Verity!  Little Angel Child!

      *      *      *      *      *      *

It was said in sunny Florence in the years that followed, and, later
on, it was remarked in Rome, that if the Lord High Cardinal--kindest of
men--was tried almost beyond bearing, if even _his_ calm patience
seemed in danger of ruffling, or if he was weary, or sad, or
disheartened, he had a way of slipping his hand into the bosom of his
scarlet robe, as if he gently fingered something that lay against his
heart.

Whereupon at, once his brow grew serene again, his blue eyes kindly and
bright, his lips smiled that patient smile which never failed; and, as
he drew forth his hand, the stone within his ring, though pale before,
glowed deep red, as juice of purple grapes in a goblet.




CHAPTER LVII

"I CHOOSE TO RIDE ALONE"

Mora escaped from the restraining arms of old Debbie, and appeared at
the top of the steps leading down to the courtyard.

Framed in the doorway, in her green riding dress, she stood for a
moment, surveying the scene before her.

The two men bound for Worcester, bearing her packet to the Bishop, had
just ridden out at the great gates.  Through the gates, still standing
open, she could see them guiding their horses down the hill and taking
the southward road.

The porter was attempting to close the gates, but a stable lad hindered
him, pointing to Icon, whom a groom was leading, ready saddled, to and
fro, before the door; Icon, with proudly arched neck and swishing tail,
as conscious of his snowy beauty as when, in the river meadow at
Worcester, he found himself the centre of an admiring crowd of nuns.

At sight of his flowing mane, powerful forequarters, and high stepping
action, Mora was irresistibly reminded of the scene in the courtyard at
the Nunnery, when the Bishop rode in on his favourite white palfrey,
she standing at the top of the steps to receive him.  Never again would
she stand so, to receive the Bishop; never again would Icon proudly
carry him.  The Bishop had given her to Hugh and Icon to her.  A faint
sense of compunction stirred within her.  Perhaps at that moment she
came near to realising something of what both gifts had cost the Bishop.

Bending her head, she looked across the courtyard and under the
gateway.  The messengers were riding fast.  Even as she looked, they
disappeared into the pine wood.

Her letter to Symon was well on its way.  She remembered with comfort
and gladness certain things she had written in that letter.

Then--as the pine wood swallowed the messengers--with a joyous bound of
reaction her whole mind turned to Hugh.

Three steps below her, a page waited, holding a dagger which she had
been wont to wear, when riding in the forests.  She had sent it out to
be sharpened.  She took it from him, tested its point, slipped it into
the sheath at her belt, smiled upon the boy, descended the remaining
steps, and laid her hand upon Icon's mane.

Then it was that Mistress Deborah's agitated signals from within the
doorway, took effect upon old Zachary.

Coming forward, he bared his white head, and adventured a humble
expostulation.

"My lady," he said, "it is not safe nor well that you should ride
alone.  A few moments' delay will suffice Beaumont to saddle a horse
and be ready to attend you."

She mounted before she made answer.

She kept her imperious temper well in hand, striving to remember that
to old Debbie and Zachary she seemed but the child they had loved and
watched over from infancy, of a sudden grown older.  They had not known
the Prioress of the White Ladies.

Bending from the saddle, her hand on Icon's mane:

"I go to my husband, Zachary," she said, "and I choose to ride alone."

Then gathering up the reins, she turned Icon toward the gates and so
rode across the courtyard, looking, neither back to where Mistress
Deborah alternately wrung her hands and shook her fist at Zachary; nor
to right or left, where Mark and Beaumont, standing with doffed caps
waited till she should have passed, to yield to the full enjoyment of
Mistress Deborah's gestures, and of Master Zachary's discomfiture.

She rode forth looking straight before her, over the pointed ears of
Icon.  She was riding to Hugh, and, they who stood by must not see the
love-light in her eyes.

Grave and serene, her head held high, she paced the white palfrey
through the gates.  And if the porter marked a wondrous shining in her
eyes--well, the sun began to slant its rays, and she rode straight
toward the west.

Zachary mounted the steps and hastened across the hall, followed by
Deborah.

Mark thereupon enacted Mistress Deborah, and Beaumont, Master Zachary;
while the page sat down on the steps to laugh.

The porter clanged to the gates.

The day's work was done.




CHAPTER LVIII

THE WARRIOR HEART

As Mora turned off the highway, and pressed Icon deep into the glades,
she cried over and over aloud, for there was none to hear: "I go to my
husband, and I choose to ride alone."

How wondrous it seemed, this going to him; a second giving, a deeper
surrender, a fuller yielding.

When she went to him in the crypt, her body had recoiled, her spirit
had shrunk, shamed, humbled, and unwilling.  Her mind alone, governed
by her will, had driven her along the path of her resolve, holding her
upon the stretcher, until too late to cry out or to return.

Now--how different!  Free as air, alone, uncoerced, even unexpected,
she left her own home, and her own people, to ride, unattended,
straight to the arms of the man who had won her.

A wild joy seized and shook her.

The soft, mysterious glades, beneath vast, leafy domes, seemed
enchanted ground.  The hoofs of Icon thudded softly on the moss.  The
stillness seemed alive with whispering life.  Rabbits sat still to
peep, then whisked and ran.  Great birds rose suddenly, on whirring
wings.  Tiny birds, fearless, stayed on their twigs and sang.

There was scurrying among ferns and rocks, telling of bright, watchful
eyes; of life, safeguarding itself, unseen.  Yet all these varied
sounds, Nature disturbed in the shady haunts which were her rightful
home, did but emphasize the vast stillness, the utter solitude, the
complete remoteness from human dwelling-place.

Shining through parted boughs and slowly moving leaves, the sunlight
fell, in golden bars or shifting yellow patches, on the glade.

The joy which thrilled his rider, seemed to communicate itself to Icon.
He galloped over the moss on the broad rides, and would scarce be
restrained when passing between great rocks, or turning sharply into an
unseen way.

Mora rode as in a dream.  "I ride to my husband," she cried to the
forest, "and I choose to ride alone!"  And once she sang, in an
irrepressible burst of praise: "_Jesu dulsis memoria_!"  Then, when she
fell silent: "_Dulsis_!  _Dulsis_!" carolled unseen choristers in leafy
clerestories overhead.  And each time Icon heard her voice, he laid
back his ears and cantered faster.

Not far from her journey's end, the way lay through a deep gorge in the
very heart of the pine wood.

Here the sun's rays could scarce penetrate; the path became rough and
slippery; a hidden stream oozed up between loose stones.

Icon picked his way, with care; yet even so, he slipped, recovered, and
slipped again.

With a sudden rush, some wild animal, huge and heavy, went crashing
through the undergrowth.

Stealthy footsteps seemed to keep pace with Icon's, high up among the
tree trunks.

Yet this valley of the shadow held no terrors for the woman whose heart
was now so blissfully at rest.

Having left behind forever the dark vale of doubt and indecision, she
mounted triumphant on the wings of trust and certainty.

"I ride to my husband," she whispered, as if the words were a charm
which might bring the sense of his strong arms about her, "and I choose
to ride alone."

With a gentle caress on the arch of his snowy neck, and with soft words
in the anxiously pointing ears, she encouraged the palfrey to go
forward.

At length they rounded a great grey rock jutting out into the path, and
the upward slope of a mossy glade came into view.

With a whinny of pleasure, Icon laid back his ears and broke into a
swift canter.

Up the glade they flew; out into the sunshine; clear into the open.

Here was the moor!  Here the highroad, at last!  And there in the
distance, the grey walls of Hugh's castle; the portals of home.

      *      *      *      *      *      *

It was the Knight's trusted foster-brother, Martin Goodfellow, amazed,
yet smiling a glad welcome, who held Icon's bridle as Mora dismounted
in the courtyard.

She fondled the palfrey's nose, laying her cheek against his neck.  For
the moment it became imperative that she should hide her happy eyes
even from this faithful fellow, in whom she had learned to place entire
confidence.

"Icon, brave and beautiful!" she whispered.  "Thou hast carried me here
where I longed to be.  Thy feet were well-nigh as swift as my desire."

Then she turned, speaking quickly and low.

"Martin, where is my husband?  Where shall I find Sir Hugh?"

"My lady," said Martin, "I saw him last in the armoury."

"The armoury?" she questioned.

"A chamber opening out of the great hall, facing toward the west, with
steps leading down into the garden."

"Even as my chamber?"

"The armoury door faces the door of your chamber, Countess.  The width
of the hall lies between."

"Can I reach my chamber without entering the hall, or passing the
armoury windows?  I would rid me of my travel-stains, before I make my
presence known to Sir Hugh."

"Pass round to the right, and through the buttery; then you reach the
garden and the steps up to your chamber from the side beyond the
armoury."

"Good.  Tell no one of my presence, Martin.  I have here the key of my
chamber.  Has Sir Hugh asked for it?"

"Nay, my lady; nor guessed how often we rode hither.  We reached the
castle scarce two hours ago.  The Knight bathed, and changed his dusty
garments; then dined alone.  After which he went into the armoury."

"When did you see him last, Martin?"

"Two minutes ago, lady.  I come this moment from the hall."

"What was he doing, Martin?"

Martin Goodfellow hesitated.  He knew something of love, and as much as
an honest man may know, of women.  He shrewdly suspicioned what she
would expect the Knight to be doing.  He was sorely tempted to give a
fancy picture of Sir Hugh d'Argent, in his lovelorn loneliness.

He looked into the clear eyes bent upon him; glanced at the firm hand,
arrested for a moment in its caress of Icon's neck; then decided that,
though the truth might probably be unexpected, a lie would most
certainly be unwise.

"Truth to tell," said Martin Goodfellow, "Sir Hugh was testing his
armour, and sharpening his battle-axe."


As Mora passed into the dim coolness of the buttery, she was conscious
of a very definite sense of surprise.  She had pictured Hugh in his
lonely home, nursing his hungry heart, beside his desolate hearth.  She
had seen herself coming softly behind him, laying a tender hand upon
those bowed shoulders; then, as he lifted eyes in which dull despair
would quickly give place to wondering joy, saying: "Hugh, I am come
home."

But now, as she passed through the buttery, Mora had to realise that
yet again she had failed to understand the man she loved.

It was not in him, to sit and brood over lost happiness.  If she failed
him finally, he was ready in this, as in all else, to play the man,
going straight on, unhindered by vain regret.

Once again her pride in him, in that he was finer than her own
conceptions, quickened her love, even while it humbled her, in her own
estimation, to a place at his feet.

A glory of joy was on her face as, making her way through to the
terrace, now bathed in sunset light, she passed up to the chamber she
had prepared during Hugh's absence.

All was as she had left it.

Fastening the door by which she had entered from the garden, she
noiselessly opened that which gave on to the great hall.

The hall was dark and deserted, but the door into the armoury stood
ajar.

A shaft of golden sunshine streamed through the half-open door.

She heard the clang of armour.  She could not see Hugh, but even as she
stood in her own doorway, looking across the hall, she heard his voice,
singing, as he worked, snatches of the latest song of Blondel, the
King's Minstrel.

With beating heart, Mora turned and closed her door, making it fast
within.




CHAPTER LIX

THE MADONNA IN THE HOME

Hugh d'Argent had polished his armour, put a keen edge on his
battle-axe, and rubbed the rust from his swords.

The torment of suspense, the sickening pain of hope deferred, could be
better borne, while he turned his mind on future battles, and his
muscles to vigorous action.

Of the way in which the cup of perfect bliss had been snatched from his
very lips, he could not trust himself to think.

His was the instinct of the fighter, to bend his whole mind upon the
present, preparing for the future; not wasting energy in useless
reconsideration of an accomplished past.

He had acted as he had felt bound in honour to act.  Gain or loss to
himself had not been the point at issue.  Even as, in the hot fights
with the Saracens, slaying or being slain might incidentally result
from the action of the moment, but the possession of the Holy Sepulchre
was the true object for which each warrior who had taken the cross,
drew his sword or swung his battle-axe.

Was honour, held unsullied, to prove in this case, the tomb of his
life's happiness?  Three days of suspense, during which Mora
considered, and he and the Bishop waited.  On the third day, would Love
arise victorious, purified by suffering, clad in raiment of dazzling
whiteness?  Would there be Easter in his heart, and deep peace in his
home?  Or would his belovèd wind herself once more in cerements, would
the seal of the Vatican be set upon the stone of monastic rules and
regulations, making it fast, secure, inviolable?  Would he, turning
sadly from the Zion of hopes fulfilled, be walking in dull despair to
the Emmaus of an empty home, of a day far spent, holding no promise of
a brighter dawn?

But, even as his mind dwelt on the symbolism of that sacred scene, the
Knight remembered that the two who walked in sadness did not long walk
alone.  One, stepping silently, came up with them; knowing all, yet
asking tenderest question; the Master, Whom they mourned, Himself drew
near and went with them.

It seemed to Hugh d'Argent that if so real a Presence as that, could
draw near to him and to Mora at this sad parting of the ways, if their
religion did but hold a thing so vital, then might they have a true
vision of Life, which should make clear the reason for the long years
of suffering, and point the way to the glory which should follow.
Then, being blessèd, not merely by the Church and the Bishop but by the
Christ Himself--He Who at Cana granted the best wine when the earthly
vintage failed the wedding feast--they might leave behind forever the
empty tomb of hopes frustrated, and return together, with exceeding
joy, to the Jerusalem of joys fulfilled.

Hugh laid down his sword, rose, stretched himself, and stood looking
full into the golden sunset.

He could not account for it, but somehow the darkness had lifted.  The
sense of loneliness was gone.  An Unseen Presence seemed with him.  The
thought of prayer throbbed through his helpless spirit, like the
uplifting beat of strong white wings.

"O God," he said, "Thou seemest to me as a stranger, when I meet Thee
on mine own life's way.  I know Thee as Babe divine; I know Thee,
crucified; I know Thee risen, and ascending in such clouds of glory as
hide Thee from mine earthbound sight.  But, if Thou hast drawn near
along the rocky footpath of each day's common happenings, then have
mine eyes indeed been holden, and I knew Thee not."

Hugh stood motionless, his eyes on the glory of the sunset battlements.
And into his mind there came, as clearly as if that moment uttered, the
words of Father Gervaise: "He ever liveth to make intercession for us."

The Knight raised his right arm.  "Oh, if Thou livest," he said, "and
living, knowest; and knowing, carest; grant me a sign of Thy
nearness--a Vision of Life and of Love, which shall make clear this
mist of uncertainty."


Turning back to his work, so great a load seemed lifted from his heart,
that he found himself singing as he put a keener edge on his weapons.

Presently he went over to the corner where stood the silver shield.
Hitherto he had kept his eyes turned from it.  It called up thoughts
which he had striven to beat back.  Now, he set to work and polished it
until its surface shone clear as a mirror.

And as he worked, he thought within himself: "What said the Bishop?
That I saw reflected in my silver shield naught save mine own proud
face?  But I told my wife that I see there the face of God, or the
nearest I know to His face; and, behind Him, her face--the face of my
beloved; for, had I not put reverence and honour first, my very love
for her would have been tarnished."

Hugh stood the silver shield at such an angle as that it reflected the
sunset, yet as he kneeled upon one knee before it he could not see his
own reflection.

The sun, round and blood red, almost dipping below the horizon, shone
out in crimson glory from the deepest heart of the silver.

Hugh remembered two verses of a Hebrew poem which the Rabbi used to
recite at sunset.  "The Lord God is a Sun and Shield: The Lord will
give Grace and Glory; No good thing will He withhold from them that
walk uprightly.  O Lord of Hosts, blessèd is the man that trusteth in
Thee."

His eyes upon the shield, his hands clasped around his knee, Hugh said,
softly: "The face of God, my belovèd, or the nearest I know to His
face: and behind Him, thy face"----

And then his voice fell of a sudden silent; his heart beat in his
throat, his fingers gripped his knee; for something moved softly in the
shining surface, and there looked out at him from his own silver
shield, the face of the woman he loved.

How long he kneeled and gazed without stirring, Hugh could not tell.
At that moment life paused suspended, and he ceased to be conscious of
time.  But, at length, pressing nearer, his own dark head appeared in
the shield, and above him, bending toward him, Mora, shimmering in
softest white, as on her wedding morn, her hands outstretched, her eyes
full of a tender yearning, gazing into his.

"The Vision for which I prayed!" cried the Knight.  "O, my God!  Is
this the sign of Thy nearness?  Is this a promise that my wife will
come to me?"

He hid his face in his hands.

A gentle touch fell lightly on his hair.

"Not a promise, Hugh," came a tender whisper close behind him.  "A sign
of God's nearness; a proof of mine.  Hugh, my own dear Knight, lift up
your head and look.  Your wife has come home."

Leaping to his feet, he turned; still dazzled, incredulous.

No shadowy reflection this.  His wife stood before him, fair as on her
wedding morning, a jewelled circlet clasping the golden glory of her
hair.  But his eyes saw only the look in hers.

Yet he kept his distance.

"Mora?" he whispered.  "Home?  To stay?  Hath a true vision then been
granted thee?"

"Oh, Hugh," she answered, "I have seen deep into the heart of a true
man.  I have seen myself unworthy, in the light of thy great loyalty.
I have seen all others fail, but my Knight of the Silver Shield stand
faithful.  I have been shewn this by so strange a chance, that I humbly
take it to be the Finger of God pointing out the pathway of His will.
My pride is in the dust.  My self-will lies slain.  But my love for
thee has become as great a thing as the heart of a woman may know.  Thy
faithfulness shames my poor doubts of thee.  The richness of thy
giving, beggars my yearning to bestow.  Yet now at last thy wife can
come to thee without a doubt, without a tremor, all hesitancy gone, all
she is, and all she has, quite simply, thine.  Oh, Hugh, thine own--to
do with as thou wilt.  All these years--kept for thee.  Take
me--Ah! . . .  Oh, Hugh, thy strength!  Is this love, or is there some
deeper, more rapturous word?  Oh, dear man of mine, how strong must
have been the flood-gates, if this was the pent-up force behind them!"


He carried her to the hearth in the great hall, and placed her in the
chair in which his mother used to sit.

Then, his arms still around her, he kneeled before her, lifting his
face in which the dark eyes glowed with a deeper light than passion's
transient fires.

"The Madonna!" he said.  "The Madonna in my home."

He stooped and lifted the hem of her robe to his lips.

"Not as Prioress," he said, "but as my adored wife."

Again he stooped and pressed it to his lips.

"Not as Reverend Mother to a score of nuns," he said, "but as----"

She caught his head between her hands, hiding his glowing eyes against
her breast.

Presently: "And did thy people come with thee, my sweetheart?  And how
could a three hours' ride be accomplished in this bridal array?  Oh,
Heaven help me, Mora!  Thou art so beautiful!"

"Hush," she said, "thou dear, foolish man!  Heaven hath helped thee
through worse straits than that!  Nay, I rode alone, and in my riding
dress of green.  Arrived here, I changed, in mine own chamber, to these
marriage garments."

"In thine own chamber?"  He looked at her, with bewildered eyes.
"Here--here, in thine own chamber, Mora?"

The mother in her thrilled with tenderness, as she bent and looked into
those bewildered eyes.  For once, she felt older than he, and wiser.
The sense of inexperience fell from her.  For very joy she laughed as
she made answer.

"Dear Heart," she said, "I could scarce come home unless I had a
chamber to which to come!  Martin shewed me which had been thy
mother's, and daily in thine absence he and I rode over, and others
with us, bringing all things needful, thus making it ready, against thy
return."

"Ready?" he said.  "Against my return?"

She laid her lips upon his hair.

"I hope it will please thee, my lord," she said.  "Come and see."

She made for to rise, but with masterful hands he held her down.  His
great strength must have some outlet, lest it should overmaster the
gentleness of his love.  Also, perhaps, the primitive instincts of wild
warrior forefathers arose, of a sudden, within him.

"I must carry thee," he said.  "Not a step thither shalt thou walk.
Thine own feet brought thee to the crypt; others bore thee thence.  Thy
palfrey carried thee home; thy palfrey bore thee here.  But to our
chamber, my wife, I carry thee, alone."

She would sooner have gone on her own feet; but her joy this day, was
to give him all he wished, and as he wished it.

As he bent above her, she slipped her arms around his neck.  "Then
carry me, dear Heart," she said, "but do not let me fall."

He laughed; and as he swung her out of the seat, and strode across the
great hall to where the western glow still gleamed from the doorway of
his mother's chamber, she knew of a sudden, why he had wished to carry
her.  His great strength gave him such easy mastery; helped her to feel
so wholly his.

On the threshold of the chamber he paused.

Bending his face to hers, he touched her lips with exceeding
gentleness.  Then spoke in her ear, deep and low.  "Say again what thou
didst say ten nights ago when we parted in the dawning, on the
battlements."

"I love thee," she whispered, and closed her eyes.

Then Hugh passed within.




CHAPTER LX

THE CONVENT BELL

The slanting rays of the setting sun lay, in golden bands, upon the
flags of the Convent cloister.

Complete silence reigned.

The White Ladies had returned from Vespers.  Each, in the solitude of
her own cell, was spending, in prayer and meditation, the hour until
the Refectory bell should ring.

The great door into the cloisters stood wide.

Mother Sub-Prioress appeared in the far distance, moving down the
passage.  As she passed between the long line of closed doors, she
turned her face quickly from side to side, pausing occasionally to
listen, ear laid against the panelling.

Presently she stepped from the cool shadow into the sunny brightness of
the cloister.

She did not blink, as old Mary Antony used to blink.  Her small eyes
peered from out her veil as sharply in sunshine as in shadow.

Yet was there something curiously furtive about Mother Sub-Prioress,
when she entered the cloister.  Listening at the doors in the cell
passage, she had been merely official, acting with a precise celerity
which bespoke long practice.  Now she hesitated; looked around as if to
make sure she was not observed, and obviously held, with her left hand,
something concealed.

Moving along the cloister, she seated herself upon the stone slab in
the archway overlooking the lawn and the pieman's tree; then drew forth
from beneath her scapulary, the worn leathern wallet which had belonged
to the old lay-sister, Mary Antony.

At the same moment there came a gentle flick of wings, and the robin
alighted on the stone coping, not three feet from the elbow of Mother
Sub-Prioress.

Very bright-eyed, and tall on his legs, was Mary Antony's little vain
man.  With his head on one side, he looked inquiringly at Mother
Sub-Prioress; and Mother Sub-Prioress, from out the curtain of her
veil, frowned back at him.

There was a solemn quality in the complete silence.  No naughty tales
of bakers' boys or piemen.  No gay chirps of expectation.  Receiving
cheese from Mother Sub-Prioress, bestowed for conscience' sake, partook
of the nature of a sacred ceremony.  Yet the robin had come for his
cheese, and the Sub-Prioress had come to give it to him.

Presently she slowly opened the wallet, took therefrom some choice
morsels, and strewed them on the coping.

"Here, bird," she said, grimly; "I cannot let thee miss thy cheese
because the foolish old creature who taught thee to look for it, comes
this way no more.  Take it and begone!"

This was the daily formula.

The "jaunty little layman," undismayed--though the look was austere,
and the voice, forbidding--hopped gaily nearer, pecking eagerly.  No
gaping mouths now waited his return.  His nestlings were grown and
flown.  At last he could afford to feast himself.

Mother Sub-Prioress turned her back upon the coping and stared at the
archway opposite.  She had no wish to see the bird's enjoyment.

Then a strange thing happened.

Having pecked up all he wanted, the robin turned his bright eye upon
the motionless figure, seated so near him, wrapped in the aloofness of
an impenetrable silence.

Excepting in her dying moments, Mary Antony's much loved little bird
had never adventured nearer to her than to hop along the coping,
pecking at her fingers when, to test his boldness, she reached out and
with them covered the cheese.

Yet now, with a gentle flick of wings, lo, he alighted on the knee of
Mother Sub-Prioress!  Then, while she scarce dared breathe, for wonder
and amaze, hopped to her arm and pecked gently at her veil.

Whereupon something broke in the cold heart of Mother Sub-Prioress.
Tears ran slowly down the thin face.  She would not stir nor lift her
hand to wipe them away, and they fell in heavy drops upon her folded
fingers.

At length she spoke, in a broken whisper.

"Oh, thou little winged thing," she said, "who so easily could'st fly
from me!  Dost thou use those wings of liberty to draw yet nearer?  In
this place of high walls and narrow cells, they who have not full
freedom, use to the full what freedom they possess, to turn, at my
approach and fly from me.  Not one if she could choose, would choose to
come to me. . . .  Is there any honour so great as that of being feared
by all?  Is there any loneliness so great as by all to be hated?  That
honour, little bird, is mine; also that loneliness.  Who then hath sent
thee thus to essay to take both from me?"

Heavy tears continued to fall upon the clasped hands; the worn face was
distorted by mental suffering.  The frozen soul of Mother Sub-Prioress
having melted, the iron of self-knowledge was entering into it, causing
the dull ache of a pain unspeakable.  Yet she dared not sob, lest the
heaving of her bosom should frighten away the little bird perched so
lightly on her arm.

This evidence of the trust in her of a little living thing, was the one
rope to which Mother Sub-Prioress clung in those first moments, during
which the black waters of remorse and despair passed over her head--a
rope made of frail enough strands, God knows: bright eyes alert, small
clinging feet, a pair of folded wings.  Yet do the frailest threads of
love and trust, make a safer rope to which to cling when shipwreck
threatens the heart, than the iron chains of obligation and duty.

Presently a sordid doubt seized upon Mother Sub-Prioress.  Had the
robin finished the cheese, and come to her thus, merely to ask for more?

Very slowly she ventured to turn her head, until the stone coping at
her elbow came into her range of vision.

Then a glow of pride and happiness warmed her heart.  Three--four--five
fragments remained!  Not for greed or favour had this little wild thing
of his own free will drawn near.

For what, then? . . .

Mother Sub-Prioress whispered the answer; and as she whispered it, her
tears fell afresh; but now they were tears without bitterness; a
healing fount seemed to well up within her softening heart.

For love?  Yea, verily!  For love of her, those small brown wings had
brought him near, those bright eyes were unafraid.

"For love of me," she whispered.  "For love of me."

When at length he chirped and flew, she still sat motionless, listening
as he sang his evening song high up in the pieman's tree.

Then she rose and swept the untouched fragments back into the wallet.
There was triumph in the action.

"For love!" she said.  "Not of that which I brought and gave, but of
that which he thought me to be."

Slowly she left the cloister, moving, with bent head, until she reached
the open door of the empty chamber which had been the Reverend Mother's.

Before long this chamber would be hers.  At noon she had received word
from the Bishop that it was his intention to appoint her to be
Prioress, for the years which yet remained of the Reverend Mother's
term of office.

She had experienced a sinister pleasure in being thus promoted to this
high office by the Bishop, owing to the certainty that had the usual
election by ballot taken place, her name would not have been inscribed
by a single member of the Community.

Yet now, in this strangely softened mood, she began wistfully to desire
that there might be looks of pleasure and satisfaction on at least a
few faces, when the announcement should be made on the morrow.

Mother Sub-Prioress passed into the cell, and closed the door.

She was drawn, by the glow of the sunset, to the oriel window.  But on
her way thither she found herself unexpectedly arrested before the
marble group of the Virgin and Child.

Mother Sub-Prioress never could see a naked babe without experiencing a
feeling of irritation against those who had failed to provide it with
suitable clothing.  Possibly this was why she had hurriedly looked the
other way if her eye chanced to fall upon the beautiful sculpture in
the Prioress's cell.

Now, for the first time, she really saw it.

She stood and gazed; then knelt, and tried to understand.

The tenderness reached her heart and shook it.  The encircling arms,
the loving breast, the watchful mother-eyes; the exquisite human love,
called forth by the necessity, the dependence, the helplessness of a
little child.

And were there not souls equally helpless, and hearts just as dependent
upon sympathy and tenderness?

The Prioress had understood this, and had ruled by love.

But Mother Sub-Prioress had ever preferred the briers and the burning.

She recalled a conversation she had had a day or two before with the
Prior and the Chaplain, when they came to consult with her concerning
the future of the Community, and her possible appointment.  In speaking
of the late Prioress, the Prior had said: "She ever seemed as one
apart, who walked among the stars; yet full, to overflowing, of the
milk of human kindness and the gracious balm of sympathy."  He had then
asked Mother Sub-Prioress if she felt able to follow in her steps.  To
which Mother Sub-Prioress, vexed at the question, had answered, tartly:
Nay; that she knew no Milky Way!  Whereupon Father Benedict, a sudden
gleam of approval on his sinister face, had interposed, addressing the
Prior: "Nay, verily!  Our excellent Sub-Prioress knows no Milky Way!
She is the brier, which hath sharply taught the tender flesh of each.
She is the bed of nettles from which the most weary moves on to rest
elsewhere.  She is the fearsome burning, from which the frightened
brands do snatch themselves!"

These words, spoken in approbation, had been meant to please; and at
first she had been flattered.  Then the look upon the kind face of the
Prior, had given her the sense of being shut up with Father Benedict in
a fearsome Purgatory of their own making--nay rather, in a hell, where
pity, mercy, and loving-kindness were unknown.

Perhaps this was the hour when the change of mind in Mother
Sub-Prioress really had its beginning, for Father Benedict's terrible
yet true description of her methods and her rule, now came forcefully
back to her.

Putting out a trembling hand, she touched the little foot of the Babe.

"Give me tenderness," she said, and an agony of supplication was in her
voice; also a rain of tears softened the hard lines of her face.

Our blessèd Lady smiled, and the sweet Babe looked merry.


Mother Sub-Prioress passed to the window.  The sun, round and blood
red, as at that very moment reflected in Hugh d'Argent's shield, was
just about to dip below the horizon.  When next it rose, the day would
have dawned which would see her Prioress of the White Ladies of
Worcester.

She turned to the place where the Prioress's chair of state stood
empty.  During the walk to and from the Cathedral, she had planned to
come alone to this chamber, and seat herself in the chair which would
so soon be hers.  But now a new humbleness restrained her.

Falling upon her knees before the empty chair, she lifted clasped hands
heavenward.

"O God," she said, "I am not worthy to take Her place.  My heart is
hard and cold; my tongue is ofttimes cruel; my spirit is censorious.
But I have learned a lesson from the bird and a lesson from the Babe;
and that which I know not teach Thou me.  Create in me a new heart, O
God, and renew a right spirit within me.  Grant unto me to follow in
Her gracious steps, and to rule, as She ruled, by that love which never
faileth."

Then, stooping to the ground, she kissed the place where the feet of
the Prioress had been wont to rest.


The sun had set behind the distant hills, when Mother Sub-Prioress rose
from her knees.

An unspeakable peace filled her soul.  She had prayed, by name, for
each member of the Community; and as she prayed, a gift of love for
each had been granted to her.

Ah, would they make discovery, before the morrow, that instead of the
brier had come up the myrtle tree?

With this hope filling her heart, Mother Sub-Prioress hastened along
the passage, and rang the Convent bell.

      *      *      *      *      *      *

And at that moment, Mora stood within her chamber, looking over
terrace, valley, and forest to where the sun had vanished below the
horizon, leaving behind a deep orange glow, paling above to clear blue
where, like a lamp just lit, hung luminous the evening star.

Hugh's arms were still wrapped about her.  As they stood together at
the casement, she leaned upon his heart.  His strength enveloped her.
His love infused a wondrous sense of well-being, and of home.

Yet of a sudden she lifted her head, as if to listen.

"What is it," questioned Hugh, his lips against her hair.

"Hush!" she whispered.  "I seem to hear the Convent bell."

His arms tightened their hold of her.

"Nay, my belovèd," he said.  "There is no place for echoes of the
Cloister, in the harmony of home."

She turned and looked at him.

Her eyes were soft with love, yet luminous with an inward light, that
moment kindled.

"Dear Heart," she said--hastening to reassure him, for an anxious
question was in his look--"I have come home to thee with a completeness
of glad giving and surrender, such as I did not dream could be, and
scarce yet understand.  But Hugh, my husband, to one who has known the
calm and peace of the Cloister there will always be an inner sanctuary
in which will sound the call to prayer and vigil.  I am not less thine
own--nay, rather I shall ever be free to be more wholly thine because,
as we first stood together in our chamber, I heard the Convent bell."

One look she gave, to make sure he understood; then swiftly hid her
face against his breast.

Hugh spoke his answer very low, his lips close to her ear.

But his eyes--with that light in them, which her happy heart scarce yet
dared see again--were lifted to the evening star.